Thrice-Greatest Hermes
Thrice-Greatest Hermes
Studies in Hellenistic
Theosophy
and Gnosis
Being
Translation
of
the
Extant
Sermons
and
Fragments of the Trismegistic Literature, with
Prolegomena, Commentaries, and Notes
By
G. R.
Volume
III.
S.
Mead
Excerpts and Fragments
London
arid
The Theosophical
Benares
Publishing Society
1906
Contents
/.
Ex.
I.
EXCERPTS BY STOBMU&
...
Of Piety and True Philosophy
Commentary
Ex.
.14
.15
Of Truth
17
Commentary
Ex. IV. God,
23
Nature and the Gods
....
Commentary
Ex. V.
3
12
II. Of the Ineff ability of God
Commentary
Ex. III.
PAGE
24
25
Of Matter
26
Of Time
28
Ex. VI.
Ex. VII.
Of Bodies Everlasting and Bodies Perish-
able
30
Commentary
33
Ex. VIII.
Of Energy and Feeling
....
Commentary
43
Of the Decans and the Stars
Commentary
Ex. IX.
Ex. X. Concerning the
sity
and Fate
Commentary
34
...
45
54
Rule of Providence, Neces55
57
CONTENTS
VI
PAGE
Ex.
XL Of
Justice
58
Commentary
59
....
....
Of Providence and Fate
Ex. XII.
Ex. XIII.
Of the Whole Economy
Ex. XIV.
Of Soul,
Of Soul,
Ex. XV.
II
Of Soul,
Ex. XVII.
Ex. XVIII.
....
of Incarnation
III
Ex.
68
Of Soul, IV
75
77
Of Soul,
79
Of Soul, VI
80
Commentary
82
XX. The Power of Choice
84
Commentary
86
Ex. XXI.
Of
Isis
Ex. XXII.
Ex. XXIII.
Horus
to
Commentary
87
.
...
An Apophthegm
From "Aphrodite"
XXIV.
A Hymn
.87
.88
89
Commentary
Ex.
65
72
Commentary
Ex. XIX.
61
.63
The Embryonic Stages
Ex. XVI.
60
90
of the Gods
91
Commentary
92
Ex.
XXV. The Virgin of the World,
Ex.
XXVI. The Virgin of the World,
I.
II.
.93
.125
Commentary
Argument
134
146
Sources?
The Direct Voice and the Books
of
Hermes
.147
CONTENTS
Vll
PAGE
Kamephis and the Dark Mystery
Kneph-Kamephis
Hermes I. and Hermes II
The Black Eite
Black Land
The Pupil of the World's Eye
The Son of the Virgin
The Mystery of the Birth of Horus
"Ishon"
The Sixty Soul-Regions
.149
151
152
.155
158
.159
.162
160
165
168
169
171
Plutarch's Yogin-
The Plain of Truth
The Boundaries of the Numbers which
Pre-exist
173
175
in the Soul
The Mysterious " Cylinder "
The Eagle, Lion, Dragon and Dolphin
.180
Momus
182
The Mystic Geography
Ex.
of
Sacred Lands
XXVII. From the Sermon of
Isis to
.184
Horus
188
Commentary
Argument
....
The Habitat o|;Encarnate Souls
II.
ii.
iii.
204
206
207
209
210
REFERENCES AND FRAGMENTS IN
THE FATHERS
I.
i.
and Ordering
The Books of Isis and Horus
The Watery Sphere and Subtle Body
Title
JUSTIN MARTYR
The Most Ancient of Philosophers
The "Words of Amnion"
The Ineffability of God
Hermes and Asclepius Sons of God
Hermes the Word who brings Tidings from God
The Sons of God in Hellenistic Theology
.
An Unverifiable
II.
.215
215
216
.217
.217
.218
218
Quotation
ATHENAGORAS
....
220
CONTENTS
Vlll
III.
CLEMENT OF ALEXANDRIA
PAGE
Many Hermeses and
i.
Aselepiuses
The Apotheosis of Hermes and Asclepius
The Books of Hermes
The General Catalogue of the Egyptian Priestly Library
ii.
iii.
i.
iii.
iv.
Hermes the Master of all Physics
Hermes the Writer of Scripture
Hermes the First Preacher of Reincarnation
Hermes on Metempsychosis
Frag.
V.
God
is
beyond
all
of
ii.
Thoyth-Hermes and
iv.
vi.
vii.
viii.
228
229
ARNOBIUS
230
LACTANTIUS
his
Books on the Gnosis
231
233
The Historical Origin of the Hermetic Tradition
Uranus, Cronus and Hermes, Adepts of the Perfect
233
....
Divine Providence
On Mortal and Immortal Sight
Man made
after the
Image
III.
of
God
Hermes the First Natural Philosopher
The Daimon-Chief
234
235
235
236
237
237
Devotion in God-Gnosis
Frag. IV.
ix.
226
227
227
CYPRIAN
Frag.
v.
221
222
222
225
Frag. II
Science
iii.
Hermes
VII.
i.
Understanding
VI.
The School
TERTULLIAN
IV.
ii.
The Cosmic Son
of
238
God
Frag.
239
CONTENTS
....
The Demiurge of God
The Name of God
x.
xi.
IX
Frag. VI.
240
241
The Holy Word about the Lord
xii.
PAGE
of All
Frag. VII.
His
xiii.
Own
Own
Father and
241
Mother
242
242
242
243
243
The Power and Greatness of the Word
The Fatherless and Motherless
Piety the Gnosis of God
The Only Way to Worship God
The Worthiest Sacrifice to God
xiv.
....
xv.
xvi.
xvii.
xviii.
Frag. VIII.
Man made
xix.
in the Image of
God
244
244
245
xx. Contemplation
The Dual Nature
xxi.
Man
of
Frag. IX.
xxii.
245
Wonder the Beginning of Philosophy
The Cosmic Eestoration
Frag. X.
xxiii.
Of Hermes and
xxiv.
A Eepetition
246
247
his Doctrine Concerning
God
247
248
248
xxv. Plato as Prophet follows Trismegistus
VIII.
i.-iii.
Three Quotations from the Old Latin Version
" Perfect
Sermon
IX.
i.
ii.
AUGUSTINE
Cyril's
Corpus
"
249
CYRIL OF ALEXANDRIA
of
XV. Books
251
The Incorporeal Eye
Frag. XI.
iii.
of the
253
The Heavenly Word Proceeding Forth
Frag. XII..
254
Frag. XIII.
254
The Pyramid
CONTENTS
PAGIE
The Nature
of God's Intellectual
Frag.
The Word
Mind
of
He
All
XIV
255
XV
256
of the Creator
Frag.
iv.
Word
Mind
Frag. XVI..
is
Frag.
.257
XVII
258
Concerning Spirit
Frag. XVIII
The
v.
"
To Asclepius "
From " The Mind "
Osiris
vi.
of Cyril's
258
Corpus
.259
260
and Thrice-greatest Agathodaimon
XIX
261
XX
262
Frag.
XXI
262
Frag.
XXII
263
Frag.
"Let there be Earth!"
Frag.
The Generation
of the
Sun
"Let the Sun be!"
The Firmament
vii.
Frag. XXIII
viii.
From
ix.
x.
the "
To
The Sole Protection
The. Supreme Artist
Frag.
xi.
263
Asclepius "
An
XXIV
266
Unreferenced Quotation
Frag.
X.
Hermes speaks
An
264
265
Orphic
XXV
266
SUIDAS
of the Trinity
268
269
Hymn
XI.
ANONYMOUS
....
270
CONTENTS
XI
REFERENCES AND FRAGMENTS IN
TEE PHILOSOPHERS
III.
I.
ZOSIMUS
PAGE
On
the Anthr5pos-Doctrine
273
273
274
The Processions of Fate
" The Inner Door "
Against Magic
Frag.
Thoth the
The
First
XXVI.
275
....
276
277
278
279
Man
Libraries of the Ptolemies
Nikotheos
From the Books
Man the Mind
of the Chaldseans
Frag.
The
....
XXVII
......
Daimon
Counterfeit
His Advice to Theosebeia
II.
Abammon the
Hermes the
285
286
288
289
291
Those of the Hermaic Nature
The Books of Hermes
The Monad from the One
of the Trismegistic Literature
Bitys
Ostanes-Asclepius
From
the Hermaic Workings
The Cosmic Spheres
III.
The
.291
294
296
297
299
JULIAN THE EMPEROR
Disciples of
IV.
281
283
JAMBLICHUS
Teacher
Inspirer
The Tradition
280
Wisdom
303
FULGENTIUS THE MYTHOGRAPHER
Frag.
XXVIII
305
XU
CONTENTS
IV.
CONCLUSION
PAGE
An
Attempt
at Classifying the
Extant Literature
Asclepius
306
306
308
310
Ammon
311
Of Hermes
To Tat
To
To
Of Asclepius
Of Isis
From the Agathodaimon Literature
Of Judgments of Value
The Sons of God
Concerning Dates
The Blend of Traditions
Of Initiation
A Last Word
V.
INDEX
....
312
312
313
314
316
319
321
323
325
Excerpts by Stobseus
VOL.
III.
EXCEEPT
I.
OF PIETY AND [TRUE]
PHILOSOPHY
(Title
from Patrizzi
(p.
4);
preceded by
"Of
Thrice-
greatest Hermes."
Text:
of
Phys.,
Stobaeus,
Hermesfrom
190-194; W.
xxxv.
1,
under
heading:
"Of
the [Book] to Tat"; G. pp. 273-278; M.
i.
273-278. 1
i.
Menard, Livre
IV.,
Hermes
Son Tat,"
to his
JSTo. i.
of "
Fragments from the Books
pp. 225-230.)
Her. Both for the sake of love to man, and
piety 3 to God, I [now], my son, for the first
I.
time take pen in hand. 4
1
G.
Gaisford (T.), Joannis
1822), 4 vols.
Io.
Stobm Florilegium (Oxford,
Stob. Ec. Phys. et Ethic. Libri
Duo
(Oxford,
1850), 2 vols.
M.
vols.
Meineke
(A.), Joh. Stob. Flor. (Leipzig, 1855, 1856),
Joh. Stob. Ec. Phys.
W. = Wachsmuth
.
Ec. Phys.
H.
vol.,
et
Hense
et
Ethic. Lib.
Duo (Leipzig,
(O), Io. Stob. Anthologii Lib.
Duo
Priores
Ethic. (Berlin, 1884), 2 vols.
(0.), I. Stob.
Anth. Lib.
Tert. (Berlin,
1894), 1
incomplete.
2
I have numbered the paragraphs in
convenience of reference.
3 euo-ejSe/as,
4
1860), 2 vols.
it
might
r6de arvyypd(pw t
also be rendered
all
the excerpts for
by worship.
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
For there can be no piety more righteous
than to know the things that
Him who made
thanks for these to
and to give
are,
them,
which
never cease to do.
I will
By
Tat.
2.
doing what,
may
naught be true down here,
Her. Be pious,
son
reach the height of
one live wisely
Who
pious
philosophy
[all]
then,
father,
is,
2
;
if
?
doth
without
philosophy the height of piety cannot be scaled.
But he who learns what are existent
things,
and how they have been ordered, and by whom,
and
all
whose
for
sake,
he
give thanks for
will
unto the Demiurge, as unto a good
nurse [most]
excellent,
never break his
Who
3.
trust.
And
is,
as he
who doth
he
be
learns,
will
will [get
Truth, and what
is
sire,
steward
giveth thanks,
and he who pious
where
he
it
pious
know both
to]
is.
more and more
will
pious grow.
For never, son, can an embodied soul that
has once leaped
the truly
aloft, so as to
Good and True,
get a hold upon
slip
back again into
the contrary.
For when the soul [once] knows the Author
of its Peace,
'tis filled
with wondrous love, 5 and
Or
give worship unto God,
In
its
Gf. G. H., xiii. (xiv.) 3,
Of P.
euo-eflei.
true sense of wisdom-loving.
S.
A.
ix. 1
Comment.
xii. 3.
4mrp67ccp m<rr$.
OF PIETY AND TRUE PHILOSOPHY
with forgetfulness x of every
and can no
ill,
more keep from the Good.
Let this
4.
to
which
nobly
[my]
be,
thou
if
son, the goal of piety
whither
This
should wing
it
for
life,
be ignorant of
will
its flight again.
the only [Way],
is
both
shalt
and happily depart from
live,
thy soul no longer
that
thou
attain,
my
son,
the
Path
[that leads] to Truth, [the Path] on which our
forebears,
did set their feet, and, setting
too,
them, did find the Good. 3
Solemn and smooth
to tread for soul while
For
5.
make
first it
this
Path, yet
still
in body.
hath to fight against
a great dissension, and
own
and
itself,
manage
victory should rest with the one
difficult
that the
part [of
its
self].
For that there
the two,
the
a contest of the one against
is
former trying to
flee,
the latter
dragging down.
1
Where
X'fjOri
(forgetfulness)
is
opposed to epos
(love),
that
is
to say, reminiscence, the secret of the fiddrjcis (mathesis) of the
Pythagoreans, the knowledge of the Author of our being or
of our "race" within,
Ex.
2
Of.
L,
T).
^vx^l /xaOoxxra
eavTrjs
rbv irpoirdropa
(cf.
iii. 6).
i.
H".,
x.
Lack,
the rational element (to \oytK.6v) and the
"two"
(xi.)
P. S. A., xi. 4
xxxvii. 3
11.
Cf. G.
The
K,
xi. (xii.) 21.
" one"
is
are the passional (to 6vfwc6p)
and desiderative
(to
itrtOvfjiTiTiKSy)
elements of the irrational nature (to &\oyov, or to ala-drjrbv as
below), the "heart "and the "appetite."
Cf. Ex. xvii. ; see also
" Orphic Psychology" in
my
Orpheus (London, 1896), pp. 273-275.
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
And
and
there's great strife
battle [dire] of
these with one another. --the
one desiring to
escape, the others striving to detain.
The
6.
others
victory, moreover, of the one or of the
not resemblant.
is
For that the one doth hasten [upwards] to the
Good, the others
[downwards] to the bad.
settle
The one longs
to be freed
the others love
their slavery.
If
[now] the two be vanquished, they remain
deprived of their
but
own
and of their ruler 2
selves
the one be worsted,
if
'tis
harried
by the
two, and driven about, being tortured by the
down
life
This
here.
is,
[my]
upon the Thither
who
son, the one
4
leadeth thee
Path.
Thou must, [my]
body, before the end [of
out victor in the
thy
son, first leave behind
it
is
reached], and
of conflict,
life
come
and thus as
wend thy way towards home.
And now, [my] son, I will go through
victor
7.
things that are
by heads
stand the things that
remember what thy
All
things that
5
7
Lit. of the two.
K?o-
Cf.
that
Ex.
to the
is,
be
said,
is,
is
in
cf.
thou
motion
exempt from
the one.
fj
if
it.
Sc.
the one.
Sc.
the Path.
Good and True, or God.
ix. 12.
Or summarily
thou wilt under-
are [then]
not,
That
the
have heard.
ears
is
for
will
are,
alone the that which
16 below.
OF PIETY AND TRUE PHILOSOPHY
Every body
in a state of change
is
bodies are not dissolvable
[but]
all
some bodies [only]
are dissolvable.
Not every animal
is
mortal
not every animal,
immortal.
That which can be dissolved, can
destroyed
the permanent
What
doth become
destroyed
more destroyed, nor does
some other thing.
First
8.
man.
God
[is]
the eternal.
for ever, for ever also is
what once for
it
becomes,
all
is
never
[ever more] become
second the Cosmos
be
the unchangeable
[is]
the that which doth not change,
1
[also]
third [is]
The Cosmos, for man's sake and man, for God's.
its
The soul's irrational part 4 is mortal
;
rational part, immortal.
All
essence
immortal
[is]
all
essence, free
from change.
All that exists
[is]
twofold
naught of existing
things remains.
Not
all
1
x.
moved by
that doth exist.
Or
is
"
The Lord
4 Lit.
5 irap
soul
the soul moves
born.
irpSorov 6 dibs,
Cosmos
are
all
SeuTepov 6
itScr/ios,
rpirop 6
tkvBpooiros.
of the Eternity (iEon) is the first
Or
Gf.
God
dies.
P. S.A.
second
is
man's the third."
sensible part,
rb
ov,
rb
oX(xQt\t6v.
as opposed to
The meaning
obffia (essence).
of esc-istence, being the
into the state of becoming.
coming out
of
pure being
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
All that suffereth [is] sensible
9.
sensible,
doth
not
all that's
suffer.
All that feels pain, doth also have experience
a mortal
of pleasure,
life
not
experience pleasure, feeleth
all
that doth
[also] pain,
life
immortal.
Not every body's
subject to disease
all
bodies
subject to disease are subject [too] to dissolution.
10.
The
faculty's
The
mind's
in
God
in
the
reasoning
man.
reason's in the
mind
the mind's above
all suffering.
Nothing
free
is
all
all
in the bodiless
from what's untrue.
All that becomes,
not
in body's true
[is]
subject unto change;
that doth become, need be dissolved.
Naught['s] good upon the earth
bad
naught['s]
in heaven.
11.
God['s] good
[and]
man
[is]
bad.
Good [is] free-willed bad is against the will.
The gods do choose what things are good, as
;
good; ...
The good law of the mighty [One] 5
good law
1
is
the
good law's the law.
Or animal
perhaps this and the following interjection are
glosses.
2 5 \oyurix6s,
perhaps a mistake for \6yos, as Patrizzi has
it.
Or real.
4 But see
and cf. G. JET., x. (xi.) 12.
15 below
5 The text is faulty
as is also apparently that of the following
None of the conjectures yet put forward are satisfactory.
sentence.
;
OF PIETY AND TRUE PHILOSOPHY
Time's for the gods
Bad
is
the stuff that feeds the world
the thing that brings
1 2.
all
on the earth
Naught
man
heaven
All in the
the earth
the law for men.
is
time
is
to an end.
is
free
subject unto
from change
it.
in the heaven's a slave
naught on
is free.
Nothing can not be known in heaven
can be
known on
naught
earth.
The things on earth do not consort with things
in heaven. 2
All things in heaven are free from blame
all
on the earth are blameworthy.
The immortal
is
not mortal
the mortal, not
immortal.
That which
forth;
is
sown,
is
but that which
not invariably brought
brought forth, must
is
have invariably been sown.
13.
[there
[Now]
are]
for a
body that can be
two "times":
[the
and from
dissolved,
period]
from
its
sowing
its
death; but for an everlasting body, the time
till its
birth,
its
birth until
from birth alone. 3
Things
subject
unto
dissolution
wax and
wane.
The matter
1
Or time
that's dissolved,
doth undergo two
is divine, the law is man's.
have not adopted W.'s lengthy emendations.
3
This is the idea of sempitemity of things which have a
beginning but no end.
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
10
contrary transformings
death
and birth
but
everlasting [matter], doth change either to
own
self,
The
or into things like to
birth
dissolution
of
man
[is]
its
itself.
the beginning of his
man's dissolution the beginning of
his birth.
That which departs, 1 [returns
turns] departs [again].
Of things
14.
some
in forms,
existent,
and some
Body['s] in forms
and what
re-
some are
in
bodies,
[are] in activities.
and form and energy in
body.
The deathless shares not
in the mortal [part]
the mortal shares in the immortal.
The mortal body doth not mount 4
deathless one
into
the
into
the deathless one descends
the mortal frame.
Activities do not ascend, but they descend.
The things on earth bestow no
15.
things in heaven
benefit
on
the things in heaven shower
every benefit on things on earth.
Of bodies
everlasting heaven
is
the container
of those corruptible, the earth.
Earth
[is] irrational
The things
in
the heaven
[is] rational.
heaven [are] under
it;
the
things on earth above the earth.
1
Or
Or
dies.
There
energies.
Lit. go.
Lit. comes.
is
a lacuna in the text.
OF PIETY AND TRUE PHILOSOPHY
Heavenf's] the
first
element
11
earth['s] the last
element.
Fore- knowledge
Ne-
Order;
God's
[is]
cessity^] handmaiden to Fore-knowledge.
Fortune['s]
the course of the disorderly,
3
the image of activity, untrue opinion.
What, [then]
God ?
is
The Good that naught
can change.
What, man
16.
wilt
The bad that can be changed. 4
rememberest these heads, 5 thou
If thou
remember
what
also
have already
set
forth for thee with greater wealth of words.
For these are summaries 6 of
those.
Avoid, however, converse with the
things]
these
not
that
many
[on
thou
would that
shouldst keep them selfishly unto thyself, but
rather that thou shouldst not seem
unto the multitude.
For that the
ridiculous
like's
acceptable unto the like
the unlike's never friend to the unlike.
Such words
give
them
as these
ear;
have very very few to
nay, probably, they
even have the few.
They have, moreover, some
1
Ex.
Or Providence.
not
will
Gf. P.
&
[strange
force]
;
and
faptirrov of the text.
Gf.
A. xxxix. 2
9
17 below
xi. 1.
3
rvxV'
Beading rp^rhv for the hopeless
Or
energy.
11 above.
5
7
Gf.
7 above.
6/. C. #., xiii. (xiv.)
13 and 22.
veptoxai
Gf. P. S.
A.
xxii. 1.
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
12
peculiar unto themselves
evil all the
more
for
they provoke the
to bad.
many
Wherefore thou shouldst protect the
[from themselves], for they ignore the power of
what's been said.
Tat What meanest
17.
Her. This, [my] son
animal,
nay,
it
with
it.
Now
is
doth cohabit with
it,
because
all
man
is
it is
in love
in
all,-
it is
come and go
things
according to Fore-knowledge
worse than
in
animal should learn that Cosmos
if this
Fate ruling
that
proner unto bad [than unto good];
subject to genesis, and
is
All
father?
thou,
and by Necessity,
no long time
it
would grow
now, [and] thinking scorn of the
whole [universe] as being subject unto genesis,
and unto Fate referring
[all]
the causes of the
bad, would never cease from every evil deed.
Wherefore, care should be taken of them, in
order that being
become
less
[left] in
bad through
ignorance, they
fear of the
may
unknown.
COMMENTARY
Patrizzi thought so highly of this excerpt that he
chose
it
Book I. of his collection. He, however,
made the persons of the dialogue Asclepius
instead of Hermes and Tat an unaccountable
for
erroneously
and Tat,
1
Or Providence
cf.
15 above.
Lit.
than
itself.
OF PIETY AND TRUE PHILOSOPHY
13
mistake, in which he has been followed by all the editors
of StobaBus
except Wachsmuth.
In the introduction the
written to Tat,
treatise purports to be a letter
a new departure,
for it is " for the first
time " on the other hand the form of the treatise is
the usual one of oral instruction, of question and answer
;
( 2).
tions
we
Nevertheless in 16
7-15
given in
summaries of previous sermons.
But already in C. H., x. (xi.)
ment
or
epitome
learn that the defini-
intended
are
1,
rather a
(or
as
heads or
we have an abridgsummation) of the
General Sermons delivered to Tat, just as we have in
summing up and
C. H., xvi., " the
all
digest, as it were, of
the rest " of the Sermons of Asclepius to the King,
under the traditional title, "The Definitions of Asclepius."
The headings in our sermon, then, may probably have
been intended for the summary of the teaching of the
Expository Sermons to Tat (see in Cyril, Frag. xv.).
Some
of
our definitions, however, are strikingly similar
to those in G. H.,
x, (xi.),
by supposing that
the continuation
but this
The Key
"
may
" itself
be accounted for
was one of, or rather
the Expository Sermons. 1
of,
The warning to use great discretion in communicating
the instruction to the " many," because of the danger of
teaching the Gnosis to the morally unfit, seems to be an
appropriate ending to
fairly confident that
tractate of "
title,
The
however,
[?
is
the sermon;
we have
we may then be
in the above a complete
Expository] Sermons to Tat
"
the
the invention of Patrizzi, and not
original.
1
Of.
R. (p. 128),
Hermes."
who
calls
them
a " Collection of Sayings of
EXCEEPT
[OF
(I
II.
THE INEFFABILITY OF GOD]
have added the
title,
the excerpt not being found in
Patrizzi.
Text: Stob., Flor., lxxx.
"Of Hermes from
[lxxviii.]
9,
under the heading:
iii. 135; M. iii.
the [Book] to Tat"; G.
104, 105. 1
Menard, Livre IV., No. x. of "Fragments from the Books
Hermes to his Son Tat," p. 256.)
of
[Her.']
[of
To understand
Him]
God
is difficult,
to speak
impossible.
For that the Bodiless can never be expressed
in body, the Perfect never can be
by that which
is
imperfect,
for the Eternal to
The one
is
comprehended
and that
'tis
difficult
company with the ephemeral.
for ever, the other
doth pass
the
one is in [the clarity of] Truth, the other in the
shadow of appearance.
So far off from the stronger
1
Hense's text ends with xlii.
apparently never been published.
Or think
of.
14
17
[is]
the
the weaker,
second
part
has
OF THE INEFFABILITY OF GOD
the lesser from the greater
[is
15
so far], as [is] the
mortal [far] from the Divine.
It is the distance, then,
between the two that
dims the Vision of the Beautiful.
For
'tis
with eyes that bodies can be seen, with
tongue that things seen can be spoken of
That which hath no body, that
and
figureless,
out of matter,
and
is
is
but
unmanifest,
not made objective [to us]
cannot
be comprehended by our
sense.
I
have
it
in
my
mind,
Tat, I have
mind, that what cannot be spoken
of, is
it
in
my
God.
COMMENTAEY
Justin Martyr quotes these opening words of our
excerpt verbatim, assigning them to
Otto,
ii.
Hermes
{Cohort.,
38
122). 1
The substance of the second sentence is given twice
by Lactantius in Latin (Div. Institt., ii. 8 Ep. 4) in
the second passage the Church Father also quotes
verbatim the first sentence of our excerpt, and from his
introductory words we learn that they were the beginning
of a written sermon from Hermes to his son (Tat).
The first four sentences are also quoted in almost
identical words (there being two variants of reading
and two slight additions) by Cyril, Contra Julianum, i.
31 (Migne, col. 549 b), who, moreover, gives some
;
additional lines, beginning (Frag, xi.)
be an incorporeal eye,"
1
Which
see for
" If, then, there
etc.
Commentary under " Fragments."
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
16
If,
furthermore,
xv. (Cyril, ilid ty
this
sermon
is
i.
we
are right in supposing that Frag,
33)
is
from the same sermon, then
the "First Sermon of the Expository
[Sermons] to Tat," and the Stobaean heading, " From the
[Book] to Tat," will mean the collection of Expository
Sermons
(see
Comment, on Frag.
xv.).
EXCEKPT
III.
OF TEUTH
from Patrizzi
(Title
greatest
Hermes
(p.
46b), preceded
by
" Of Thrice-
to Tat,"
Text Stob., Flor., xi. 23, under heading " Of Hermes
from the [Sermons] to Tat"; G. i. 307-311; M. i. 248251 ; H. iii. 436-441.
:
Menard, Livre IV., No. ix. of "Fragments from the
Books of Hermes to his Son Tat," pp. 251-255.)
[Her.']
1.
Concerning Truth,
Tat,
it
not
is
man should dare to speak, for man's
an animal imperfect, composed out of imperfect
possible that
members, his tabernacle * patched together from
many
bodies strange [to him].
But what
that
is
Truth
possible
is
and
right, this
do
I say,
be found] in the eternal
[to
bodies only, [those things] of which the bodies
nothing
air
very
else,
air
incyvos.
VOL.
III.
Gf.
very
and
earth very earth and nothing
else,
true,
and nothing
water and naught
1
fire
themselves are
in
Ex.
vii.
fire
else,
and water very
else.
3 note, and also 5 below.
17
Or
real.
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
18
Our frames, however,
For they have
these.
have
1
them]
of
all
and they
fire,
and
air
but
nor earth, nor water, nor
fire,
nor any [element that's] true.
And
if
our composition has not had Truth for
beginning,
its
[in
compound
also earth, they've water, too,
they are neither
air,
are a
how can
it
either see or speak the
Truth?
Nay,
that too]
2.
can only have a notion of
it
if
God
it,
[and
will.
All things, accordingly, that are on earth,
Tat, are not the Truth
they're copies [only]
of the True.
And
them]
these
are
not
things, but
all
the rest consist of falsity and error, Tat,
and shows of seeming
like
unto images.
Whenever the appearance doth
influx from above,
Truth
few [of
without
its
turns into a copy of the
it
2
receive the
energizing from above,
it
is
left false.
Just as the portrait also indicates the body
in the picture, but in itself
spite
not a body, in
appearance of the thing that's
the
of
is
seen.
having eyes
'Tis seen as
hears naught
The
but
it
sees naught,
all.
picture, too, has all the other things,
they are
1
at
false, tricking
Compare
Lact.,
D.
I., ii.
but
the sight of the beholders,
12.
That
is,
Truth's.
OF TRUTH
these thinking that they
what they see
see what's true, while
really false.
is
who do not
then,
All,
19
see what's false see
truth.
we thus do comprehend, or see, each
1
these just as it really is, we really com-
then,
If,
one of
prehend and
But
see.
[we comprehend, or
if
trary to that which
nor shall we
the earth
we
know aught
There
[_Tat.~]
3.
is,
is,
shall
see, things] con-
not comprehend,
true.
then, father, Truth e'en on
Not
[Her.~]
son, art thou at
inconsiderably,
fault.
Truth
can
is
in
no wise, Tat, upon the
earth, nor
be.
it
But some men
should
vision.
God
can, [I say,] have an idea of
it,
grant them the power of godly
Thus there
nothing true
is
on earth,
[so
know and say. All are appearances
and shows, I know and speak true [things].
much]
We
ought not, surely, though, to
call
the know-
ing and the speaking of true things the Truth
4.
[Jto.]
Why, how on
know and speak
of
nothing's true on earth
1
things
being
we
true,
to
yet
This presumably refers to the simple elements of things in
themselves.
2
earth ought
T^V
dtOTTTtK^jV
S6vHfA.IV.
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
20
[Her.] This [much]
know aught
it
son
be,
that we
here.
do not
How
could
is
highest Good,
less,
down
that's true
For Truth
the most perfect virtue, the very
by matter undisturbed, uncircum-
by body,
scribed
true,
is
naked, [and]
evident, change-
august, unalterable Good.
But things down
they
are,
not
son, thou seest
here,
able
to
receive
what
Good,
this
corruptible, [and] passible, dissolvable, changeful,
and ever
altering, being
born from one another.
Things, then, that are not true even to their
own
selves,
For
in
all
what
how can they
that alters
it is,
is
[possibly] be true
untrue
but shows
it
itself to
does not stay
us by changing
into one another its appearances.
5.
[Tat.']
father
And
he not
is
As man,
that the True
is
he
is
not true,
that which has
itself alone,
and
its
son.
and does not stay
in itself stays as
in his
changes and he
own
it is.
alters,
from age to
too,
he's still in [one and] the [same] tent.
fail
Taking
Gf. 1 above.
ivddbe
things,
self.
from form to form, and that
Nay, many
For
composition
But man has been composed of many
He
true,
[Her.]
from
even man,
to recognize
age,
even while
2
their children,
with the preceding clause.
OF TRUTH
when
21
a brief space of time comes in between
and so again of children with their parents.
That,
which
then,
longer recognized,
changes so that
can that be
Is it not, rather, false,
the
[all]
varied shows of
But do thou have
thing
is
" is
" Man's
not true.
6.
Tat
coming and going, 1
its
in
[continual] changes
mind
in thy
that a true
that which stays and lasts for aye.
is
But " man
ance
it
true,
no
it's
not for ever
"
wherefore
And
an appearance.
it
is
appear-
extreme untruth.
[Tat] But these external bodies, 3
[jffer.]
change,
All that
is
father,
they change, are they not true
too, in that
unto genesis and
subject
is
verily not true
but in as much as
they are brought to being by the Forefather 4
them all], they have their matter true.
But even they have something false in that
[of
they change
its
own
for
naught that doth not stay with
self is true.
[ Tat.~\
True, father [mine]
then, that the
Sun
measure than the
alone,
rest
in
of
one to say,
that in greater
them he doth not
change but stayeth with himself,
[Her.~]
Is
is
Truth
[Nay, rather, but] because he,
Lit.
Neuter, that
and
becoming.
is,
the series of temporary appearances of the
true man.
3
The heavenly bodies presumably.
rov irpoirdropos
cf.
Ex.
i.
3.
;;
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
22
he only, hath entrusted unto him the making of
1
things in cosmos, ruling
all
whom
to
all
and worship pay
reverence give,
and making
all
unto his Truth, and recognise him as the Demiurge after the One and
\Tat.~]
is
the
What
first
[Her."]
father, should'st
then,
Truth
First.
thou say
The One and Only, Tat,
He who
is
not
of matter, or in body, the colourless, the figure-
the changeless [One],
less,
not,
who
ever
He who
doth alter
is.
But the untrue, son, doth perish. All things,
however, on the earth that perish, the Forethought of the True hath comprehended [them],
and doth and
For
will
encompass [them].
without
birth
corruption
corruption followeth on every
that
it
may be
be
cannot
in
birth,
order
born again.
For that things that are born, must of necessity
3
be born from things that are destroyed
and things that have been born, must of necessity
be [once again] destroyed, in
genesis of things existent
as the
that
see
First, [then],
Demiurge
may
order that the
not stop.
thou recognize him
birth-and-death
for
of [all]
existent things.
1
Gf.
Ex.
Or
That
vii. 2,
and
7 below.
Or
Lit. genesis.
perishing.
are corrupted, or perish.
is,
the
Sun
cf.
6 above.
OF TRUTH
23
Things that are born out of destruction,
8.
must of necessity be
then,
false,
in
that they
are
becoming now these things, now
'tis
impossible they should become the same.
But that which
possibly be true
is
not " same,"
we
for instance, if
how
For
can
it
Such things we should, then,
[my] son
those.
call
appearances,
give the
man
his
proper designation, [we ought to designate him]
a man's
appearance
[and
so] the child a child's
appearance, the youth a youth's appearance, the
man
a man's appearance, the old
man an
appear-
ance of the same.
For man
is
not a man, nor child a child, nor
youth a youth, nor grown up
man, nor aged man a
But
pre-existent things
a grown up
aged man.
[single]
as they change
man
they are untrue,
and things
But thus think of them,
both
existent.
son,
as even these
untruths being energies dependent from above
from Truth
And
itself.
this being so, I say
in-working,
untruth
is
Truth's
COMMENT
The excerpt seems complete
lay before Stobaeus as a single
sermon
1
Lit.
it is
in itself, but
sermon or
whether
impossible to say.
manhood's.
it
as a part of a
Or operation
evepyrj/xa.
EXCEEPT
IV.
NATURE AND THE GODS]
[GOD,
(Patrizzi(p. 51b) gives
no
title;
but simply the heading
"In Another [Book]."
Text: Stob., Phys., xxxv. 11, under the heading:
"Of
296; M. i. 206; W. i. 293.
Menard, Livre IV., No. iv. of "Fragments Divers,"
Hermes"; G.
pp. 295,
p.
274).
There
[Her.']
1.
scends being, 1
That
then,
is,
beyond
all
which
tran-
things existent, and
that really are.
all
For That-transcending-being
is
[that mystery]
because of which exists that being-ness
called universal,
really are,
common unto
which
is
intelligibles that
and to those beings which are thought
of according to the law of sameness.
Those which are contrary to these, according
law of otherness, are again themselves
to the
according to themselves. 3
Or the
pre-existent
ov(tl6ttis
rb
irpb ov i
or rb
irpo6v,
or essentiality.
This seems to refer to the seven spheres of difference or
otherness
(/caret
rb erepov)
moving symbolically
against, or " cross-
wise with," the all-embracing sphere of sameness
or
it
may mean
(icad'
kavr6)
that they have a sameness in the fact that their
motions enter into themselves "again."
24
AND THE GODS
GOD, NATCTRE
And Nature
an essence which the senses
is
can perceive, containing in
Between these
2.
25
itself all sensibles.
the intelligible
are
and
the sensible gods.
Things that pertain to the intelligence, share
in [the nature of] the
only
Gods that are
intelligible
while things pertaining to opinion, have
their part with those that are the sensible.
These latter are the images of the intelligences 3
the
Sun,
instance,
for
is
the
image
of
the
Demiurgic God above the Heaven.
For just
He
as
hath made the universe, so
doth Sun make the animals, and generate the
plants,
and regulate the breaths. 4
COMMENT
I
have supplied the
we compare our
If
title for
the sake of uniformity.
extract with Ex. vii, and especially
the last sentence of the former with the
first
sentence
and note that in Stobaeus the one
excerpt follows almost immediately on the other, we
shall be fairly well persuaded that they both come from
the same collection namely, the Sermons to Tat.
of 2 of the latter,
Presumably God and Nature.
vorjfiariKoi,
very
rare
form,
and may possibly mean
perceptible.
3
poqindrtav,
Or
spirits.
The
last clause,
"and
regulates," etc., is absent
from some MSS., and is, therefore, considered spurious by some
editors; but its unexpectedness is a strong guarantee of its
genuineness.
The
logical psychology
2,
xix. 3.
"spirits" are the pr ana's of
;
c/.
C. U., x. (xi.) 13,
Hindu
physio-
Comment., and Exs. xv.
EXCERPT V
MATTER]
[OF
have added the
(I
being the same as that of the
title, it
main section
of Stobseus, Patrizzi (p. 51) giving only the
simple heading " From the [Sermons] to Tat."
Text
Stobaeus,
Phys.,
xi.
Hermes from the [Sermons]
85; W. i. 131.
Menard, Livre
Books
of
Hermes
IV.,
No.
viii.
of
has been [before
Matter
mode
is
i.
84,
"Fragments from the
to his son Tat," p. 250.)
Her. Matter both has been born,
it
"Of
under the heading
Tat"; G. p. 121 ; M.
2,
to
it
came into existence]
the vase of genesis,
and
of energy of God, who's
and
son,
;
for
genesis, the
free
from
all
necessity of genesis, and pre-exists.
[Matter], accordingly,
by
its
reception of the
seed of genesis, did come [herself] to birth, and
[so]
1
The
became subject to change, and, being shaped,
Or
receptacle or field of genesis, or birth (ayyetov ycveo-eoos).
idea of a vessel or vase of birth was a familiar symbol with
ix^rayyitr^s (from the simile of pouring water
;
out of one vessel into another) being one of their synonyms for
metempsychosis.
the Pythagoreans
26
OF MATTER
took forms
27
for she, contriving the forms of her
[own] changing, presided over her own changing
self.
The unborn
lessness
2
;
its
state
of Matter, then,
genesis
is its
was form-
being brought into
activity.
1
of
ayevvr]<ria.
Compare this with the Christian Gnostic commentator
Document, quoted by Hippolytus (Philos.
and the comment of Hippolytus on him " Their first and
afioptpia.
the Naassene
v. 7),
Blessed Formless Essence (ao-xw^TKTTos
forms " (" Myth of Man,"
1).
ov<ria),
the cause of
all
EXCEEPT
VI.
OF TIME
(Title
Same
from Patrizzi
38b); followed by:
(p.
"To
the
Tat."
Text Stob., Phys., viii. 41, under heading "Of Hermes
from the [Sermons] to Tat " ; G. p. 93 ; M. i. 64.
Menard, Livre IV., No. v. of " Fragments from the Books
:
of
Hermes
1.
Now
for
to his
Son Tat,"
p. 241.)
to find out concerning the three times
they are neither by themselves, nor [yet] are
they at-oned
and [yet] again they are at-oned,
and by themselves
[as well].
For should'st thou think the present
the past,
it
is
without
can't be present unless it has
become
already past.
For from the past the present comes, and from
the present future goes.
But
let
we have
us argue
2.
is
if
to scrutinize
more
closely, thus
Past time doth pass into no longer being
That
is,
apparently, you cannot think of the present until
already past.
it
OF TIME
this,
29
and future [time] doth not
being present
nay, present even
exist, in its
is
not
not present,
in its continuing.
Time, then, which stands not [steady]
but which
is
on the turn, without a central point
which to stop,
at
how can
((Wtco?), 2 seeing even that
stand
(rn/ice),
be called instant
it
it
hath no power to
(ecrTcti/at) ?
Again, past joining present, and present [joining] future, they [thus] are one
without them
ness,
in their sameness,
for
they are not
and their one-
and their continuity.
Thus, [then], time's both continuous and discontinuous, though one and the same [time].
1
That
is,
apparently, " present."
The usual term in Greek for
lated it by "instant" in order
2
" present," but I
to
have here transkeep the word-play, which
would otherwise entirely vanish in translation.
3
That is, apparently, any one without the other two, or any
two without the other one.
EXCEEPT
VII.
OF BODIES EVERLASTING [AND
BODIES PERISHABLE]
(Title (first half)
Same
the
from Patrizzi
(p.
45b), followed
by "To
Tat."
under the curious heading
Ammon to Tat w
where "to Tat" is evidently a marginal correction for an
erroneous "to Ammon." G. pp. 292-294 ; M. i. 204, 205 ;
W. i. 290-292.
Menard, Livre IV., No. iii. of "Fragments from the
Books of Hermes to his Son Tat," PP- 238, 239.)
Text
" Of
1.
Stob., Phys., xxxv. 8,
Hermes From
the [Sermons] to
[Uer.] The Lord and Demiurge of
all
eternal
when He had made them once for
made them no more, nor doth He make them
bodies, Tat,
all,
[now].
Committing them unto themselves, and
co-
them with one another, He let them
go, in want of naught, as everlasting things.
If they have want of any, it will be want of
one another and not of any increase to their
number from without, in that they are immortal.
uniting
30
BODIES EVERLASTING AND BODIES PERISHABLE
For that
Him
by
it
31
needs must be that bodies made
should have their nature of this kind.
Our Demiurge, 1 however, who
already] in a body, 2 hath made us,
2.
is
[himself
he makes
for ever,
and
will [ever]
make, bodies corruptible
and under sway of death.
For 'twere not law that he should imitate the
Maker
of himself,
all
the more so as
im-
'tis
possible.
For that the latter did create from the
essence which
bodiless
is
from the bodying
the former
first
made
as
brought into existence [by his
Lord].
3.
It follows, then, according to right reason,
that while those bodies, since they are brought
into existence from incorporal essence, are free
from death, ours are corruptible and under sway
of death,
bodies,
in
as
that our matter
may
composed of
is
be seen from their being weak
and needing much
For how would
assistance.
it
continuity
should
nutriment
imported
be possible
last,
unless
[into
it]
it
our bodies'
had
from
some
similar
elements, and [so] renewed our bodies day
by
day?
For that we have a stream of earth, and water,
1
That is, the Demiurge of our bodies, which are not everlasting.
The Sun, perhaps cf. G. H. xvi. 18 and Ex., iii. 6 and iv.
2 and Lact., D. I., iv. 6.
4
3 a-wfxardxrews,
8c. the elements.
cf. Ex. viii. 5.
2
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
32
and
fire,
flowing into us, which
air,
our bodies, and keeps our tent
We
renovates
together.
weak to bear the motions [of our
enduring them not even for one single
are too
frames],
day.
For know, [my] son, that
with foreknowledge of
the
may
animal
greatest [calm
last a single day.
being good, and
our Maker,
Wherefore,
4.
our bodies did not
if
we should not
rest at night,
all
things, in order that
hath
given
sleep,
the
of the fatigue of motion,
and
last,
hath appointed equal time to each, or rather more,
for rest.
Ponder
sleep,
well,
the
the mightiest
son,
opposite to the soul's [energy], but
not inferior to
it.
For that just as the soul
bodies
energy of
is
motion's energy, so
cannot live without [the help of]
also
sleep.
For
the
1
'tis
the relaxation and the recreation of
limbs;
jointed
(tktjvos,
goreans
used by Plato
(Timseus
Platonists,
for the
(ap.
100
Locr.,
body
as
operates
also
it
within,
Clem. Alex., 703), and the Pythaa,
101,
c,
e),
and
the
the tabernacle of the soul.
especially the response of the Oracle at Delphi,
when
Later
See
consulted
concerning the state of the soul of Plotinus after death, as quoted
by Porphyry in
his Life of Plotinus
"
But now
since thou hast
struck thy tent, and left the tomb of thy angelic soul " (see my
" Lives of the Later Platonists " in The Theosophical Review (July,
1896), xviii. 372.
Of Ex.
iii.
and 5
and
12 and 15.
2
Added by Heeren
to complete the sense.
C. H., xiii.
(xiv.)
BODIES EVERLASTING AND BODIES PERISHABLE
33
converting into body the fresh supply of matter
that flows
[kind],
in,
the
apportioning to each
bones and marrow, the
the
its
proper
water to the blood, the earth to
fire to sight.
air to
nerves and veins,
Wherefore the body,
too, feels
keen delight in
sleep, for it is sleep that brings this [feeling of]
delight into activity.
COMMENT
Patrizzi's title is by no means descriptive of the
main contents of the excerpt, which is evidently from
the Sermons of Hermes to Tat, and from the same
collection of these from which Stobseus has taken the
previous two extracts, that is, presumably, the Ex-
pository Sermons.
1
VOL.
III.
Of. C.
H.
xvi. 7, note.
EXCEEPT
VIII.
OF ENERGY AND FEELING
(Title
from Patrizzi
44)
(p.
preceded by
"Of
Thrice-
greatest Hermes."
Text: Stob., Phys., xxxv.
6,
under the heading: "From
i.
198-203;
the [Sermons] to Tat"; G. pp. 284-291; M.
W.
i. 284-289.
Menard, Livre
IV.,
of
Hermes
Son Tat,"
1.
Tat
to his
No.
ii.
of
"Fragments from the Books
pp. 231-237.)
thou
Rightly hast
Now
father [mine].
things,
explained
give
me
these
further
teaching as to those.
For thou hast said somewhere 1 that science
and that
art
do constitute the rationale energy. 2
But now thou
say'st that the irrational lives,
through deprivation of the rational, are and are
called ir-rational.
According
to
this
reasoning,
[therefore],
it
follows of necessity that the irrational lives are
in some previous sermon.
That
Action or operation,
is
ivepyeiav
below.
3
Or animals.
34
ehai rov \oyiKou.
Gf.
11
OF ENERGY AND FEELING
without any share in science or in
35
art,
through
deprivation of the rational.
2.
Her.
Tat.
[It follows] of necessity,
How,
father,
then,
[my]
irrational [creatures] using [both]
and art?
the
son.
do we see some of
intelligence,
ants, for instance, storing their
food for winter, and in like fashion, [too,] the
creatures of the air building their nests, and the
four-footed
holes.
beasts
[each]
knowing
own
their
Her. These things they do,
son, neither
by
by art, but by [the force of] nature.
but none of
Science and art are teachable
science nor
these irrationals is taught a thing.
Things done by nature are [so] done by reason
of the general energy of things.
Things [done] by art and science are achieved
by those who know, [and] not by all.
Things done by all are brought into
activity
by nature.
3.
For instance,
all [are]
all
]ook up [to heaven]
not musicians, or [are]
all
but
archers, or
hunters, or the rest.
But some of them have learned one thing,
1
Kal ra aepia C& a ofioiws Ka\ias savrois crvvridevTa, ra Se rerpdnoda
Compare Matt. viii. 20 Luke
yvwpi(ovTa robs (pa>\eovs robs ISiovs.
58 (word for word) at a\(airKes <pa>Aeobs exovfftv Kal ra ireTeij/a
rov ovpavov KaTacx^arets " The foxes have holes and the birds of
the air nests." The first and third Evangelists here copy verbally
ix.
from their ". Logia " source.
2 Or energized.
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
36
another thing],
[others
active
science
and
[in them].
In the same way,
thing, and others
some ants only did
if
not, thou would'st
stored their
by
they
if
against their will,
by
4.
science or
science,
and
without distinction are driven
all
their nature to [do] this,
or
this
have rightly
by [the light] of
food by means of art.
said they acted
But
art being
by
though
may
[it
be]
plain they do not do
'tis
it
art.
For Tat, these energies, though [in them-
selves] they are incorporal, are [found] in bodies,
and act through
bodies.
Tat, in that they are incorporal,
Wherefore,
thou sayest that they are immortal
without
as
far
activity,
but, in so
they cannot
bodies
manifest
say that they are ever in a body.
Things once called into being for some purpose,
or
some
cause, things that
come under Provi-
dence and Fate, can never stay inactive of their
proper energy.
For that which
[being]
5.
is
It
is,
shall ever be
[the very]
body and the
follows
from
for that this
life
of
it.
this reason, [then,] that
these are always bodies.
Wherefore
I say that "
bodying
"
itself is
an
eternal [exercise of] energy.
1
Or
(TtafAdraxriv,
energizing.
cf.
Ex.
vii.
cf.
Lit. energize.
also the ^i>xocris of
K. K.,
9.
OF ENERGY AND FEELING
If bodies are
dissolution
on
subject unto
earth, they're
yet must these [ever] be [on earth
and
to serve] as places
The
as organs for the energies.
and the
energies, however, [are] immortal,
immortal
making,
[that
eternally,
is
ever
if it
is,
is
not appearing
Some
all
them
of
body-
that]
is,
energy.
[The energies] accompany the
6.
37
soul,
though
at once.
energize the
man
the
moment
that he's born, united with the soul round
irrational [parts]
its
whereas the purer ones, with
change of age, co-operate with the
soul's rational
part.
But all these energies depend on
godly
From
bodies.
bodies they descend to mortal [frames],
these body-making [energies]
is [ever] active, either
each one of them
around the body or the
soul.
Yea, they are active with the soul
They
out a body.
The
are for ever in activity.
however,
soul,
body, for
it
with-
itself
is
not for ever in a mortal
can be without the body
whereas
the energies can never be without the bodies.
1
That
2 KOTct
is, if it
seventh year.
me
goes on continually.
futraPoAfr
ttjs
7]\ucias,
generally
Compare the apocryphal
me
supposed to be the
logos
"He who
seeks
from the age of seven years
quoted by the Christian Overwriter of the Naassene Document
from the Gospel according to Thomas (Hipp., Philos., v. 7 7 in
"Myth of Man").
shall find
55
in children
Or
divine,
the bodies
of the Gods, the heavenly bodies, or
the spiritual and immortal bodies of the soul.
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
38
This
a sacred saying (logos), son
is
apart from soul cannot persist
What
Tat.
7.
[mine]
thou
dost
leaves body,
body
itself
But [even] the body
remains,
made
mean,
father
Her. Thus understand
it
being can. 1
its
Body-
is
it,
Tat
When
soul
remains.
so
abandoned, 2 as long as
in activity, being broken
up and
to disappear.
For body without [the exercise
could not experience these things.
of]
energy
This energy, accordingly, continues with the
body when the soul has gone.
This, therefore,
is
body and a mortal
the difference of an immortal
one,
that the immortal doth
consist of a one single matter, but this [body
does] not.
The
former's active,
and the
latter's passive.
For every thing that maketh active
stronger
and [every thing] that
is
made
is
the
active
the weaker.
is
The
stronger,
doth lead
free,
too,
;
the
being
in
authority and
[weaker] follows [as] a
slave.
8.
The
energies, then, energize not only bodies
that are ensouled, but also [bodies] unensouled,
1
"its
being"
(o-w/jLaTwo-is)
2
(robfia x w P^ s ^ V X^ S v Mvarai, rb 8e e?vot Btfvarai,
presumably refers to the abstract "bodying"
crvveardvai fiev
referred to above.
Lit. this body.
Sc. dissolution
and disappearance.
OF ENERGY AND FEELING
stocks,
stones,
making [them]
and
such things
all
to grow,
39
and to bear
both
and
fruits,
ripening [them], dissolving, melting, rotting and
crumbling [them], and setting up [in them]
all
which bodies without souls can
like activities
undergo.
For energy's 2 the name,
thing that's going on,
And many
becoming
that
is
Cosmos
things, but being borne
bears
it
existent
is
becoming.
needs must for ever be
things
nay, rather,
For never
son, for just the
all
things [must].
bereft of
3
any of existent
own
for aye in its
things,
[things]
that
never cease from being destroyed again.
9.
Know,
shall
then, that energy of every kind
ever free from death,
in
self,
no
matter what
it is,
is
or
what body.
And
of the energies,
some are of godly
bodies,
and some of those which are corruptible some
and some special. Some [are] of
;
[are] general,
genera, and
some
The godly
are of the parts of every genus.
ones, [accordingly], are those that
exercise their energies through everlasting bodies.
And
these are perfect [energies], in that [they
energize] through perfect bodies.
But
partial [energies are] those [that energize]
through each one of the [single] living things.
1
Naassene Document, 4, and
i
Reading
Or conceived.
Of.
2
Or activity.
13 below.
aZOts for uvtov, with Heeren.
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
40
And
special [energies are those that energize]
through each one of existent things.
10. This argument, accordingly,
that
For though
needs must be that energies
it
should be in bodies,
in the Cosmos,
more than
and there
many
bodies
say that energies are
many
be
bodies.
For often in one body there
general ones I
not counting
come with
in the general ones that
mean
[found] one,
is
and a second and a third [activity],
By
son, deduces
things are full of energies.
all
it.
the purely corporal
ones, that exercise themselves through the sensa-
tions
and the motions
[of the body].
For that without these energies the body [of
an animal] can not
11.
The
souls of
class of energies,
themselves]
practices,
persist.
men, however, have a second
the
through
special ones [that exercise
arts,
and
and [purposed] doings.
sciences,
and
For that the feelings 3 follow on the energies
or rather are completions
Know,
and of
then,
of the energies.
son, the difference of energy
sensation.
[Thus] energy
is
sent
down from above
whereas
sensation, being in the
ing
existence from
its
Or
Or
it,
body and hav-
receives the
feelings.
hipyn^aTwv^
sensations.
Or
effects
cf.
energy
1 above,
airoT\<riJ.ara,
OF ENERGY AND FEELING
and
makes
embody
manifest,
it
41
though
as
did
it
it.
Wherefore
say sensations are both corporal
and mortal, and
doth the body
last as long as
[only].
Nay, rather,
its
sensations are born together
with the body, and they die with
it.
12. But the immortal bodies in themselves
have no sensation,
[one], as
[not
even
though they were composed out of
some essence of some
kind.
For that sensation doth
naught
good
immortal
an]
else
that's
entirely from
arise
than either from the bad or
added to the body, or that
else the
on the
is,
contrary, taken [from it] again.
But with
eternal bodies there
is
no adding to
nor taking from.
Wherefore, sensation doth not occur in them.
Tat.
13.
body
Is,
then,
sensation
felt
every
in
Her. In every body, son
and energies are
active in all [bodies, too].
Even
Tat.
[mine]
in bodies without souls,
father
Her. Even in them,
son.
There
are,
how-
ever, differences in the sensations.
The
feelings of the rationals occur with reason
those of irrationals are simply corporal
as for
the things that have no soul, they [also] have
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
42
sensations, but passive ones,
crease [only]
and decrease.
experience
of in-
Moreover, passion and sensation depend from
one [same] head, 2 and they are gathered up again
and
into the same,
Of
14.
lives
that, too,
by the
energies.
with souls there are two other
energies which go with the sensations and the
passions,
And
of
all
grief
and
joy.
without these, an ensouled
a
rational
not
could
one,
and most
life,
experience
sensation.
Wherefore,
passions,
rational lives
The
say that there are
[and]
forms
that
more [than the
forms
dominate
of
the
rest].
energies, then, are the active forces
[in
sensations], while the sensations are the indica-
tions of the energies.
Further, as these
15.
motion by the
in
soul; wherefore,
are corporal, they're set
irrational parts of [a man's]
say that both of them are
mischievous.
For that both joy, though
provides
it
sensation
[for the
joined
immediately becomes a cause of
1
Of.
moment]
with
many
pleasure,
ills
to
8 above, and note.
2 &irb fiias Kopvfirjs tfpTrivrat.
Compare this with Plato, Phcedo,
60 B, where Socrates speaks of the pleasant and the painful as
" two (bodies) hanging from one head " (&c pias Kopv<f>r}s ffwrmixcvw).
i.
Or
That is, the sensation
Sc. by contrast.
animals.
of pleasure
and pain.
OF ENERGY AND FEELING
tiim
who
feeleth it
while grief
[itself]
43
provides
greater pains and suffering.
[still]
both would
they
Wherefore,
seem
[most]
mischievous.
Tat Can,
16.
then, sensation be the
and body, father [mine] ?
Her. How dost thou mean,
same
in
soul
soul,
[my] son
it
cannot be that soul's incor-
and that sensation
sensation which
is
a body, father,
is
sometimes in a body and
sometimes not, [just as the soul]
Her.
If
in the
Tat Surely
poral,
sensation
we should put
should [then] represent
it
in a body, son,
it
as like the soul or
For that we say these
[like] the energies.
we
are
incorporals in bodies.
But
[as] sensation's neither
energy nor soul,
nor any other thing than body, according to
what has been said above,
it
cannot, therefore,
it
must be body.
be incorporal.
And
if it's
not incorporal,
For of existing things some must be bodies
and the
rest incorporal.
COMMENT
Again, as with the last excerpt, the earlier editions
of Stobaeus
have Asclepius and Tat as the persons
1
That
is,
soul
and
energies.
of
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
44
the dialogue instead of
them correctly.
The second sentence
Hermes and
Tat.
Wachsmuth
gives
us presumably to
G.
great interest, for
is of
H.
x.
use a figure, are his energies
(xi.),
The Key "
is
an Epitome
Tat, the statement
may
"
it refers
God's rays, to
the Cosmos's are natures
the arts and sciences are man's. "
"
22
Seeing, however, that
General Sermons to
have been made in one of
of the
also
these sermons.
In either case the existence
is
presupposed, and,
excerpt
is,
of these
therefore,
it
General Sermons
may
again, one of the Expository
be that our
Sermons
to Tat.
The beginning of the Sermon has clearly been omitted
by Stobseus, and apparently the end also.
EXCEKPT
IX.
OF [THE DECANS AND] THE STARS
(Patrizzi (p. 38b) does not give the first third of the
text ( 1-5), and his title, " Of the Stars," is evidently incomplete; it is followed by "To the Same [i.e. Tat]."
Text Stob., Phys., xxi. 9, under the heading " Of Hermes
from the [Sermon] to Tat," pp. 184-190; M. i. 129-133;
:
W.
i. 189-194.
Menard, Livre IV., No. vi. of "Fragments from the
Books of Hermes to his Son Tat," pp. 242-247, under the
sub-heading, " Of the Decans and the Stars.")
Tat
1.
(Logoi
Since in thy former General Sermons
[father,]
),
thou didst promise
me an
explanation of the Six-and-thirty Decans, 2 explain, I prithee,
activity.
now
concerning them and their
Her. There's not the slightest wish in
not to do
1
4v
roh
and
and Ex. xviii. 1.
These are the "Horoscopes"
Origen, G.
3
Tat,
this should
Zfxirpoadsv yeviKois \6yois.
xiii. (xiv.) 1
2
so,
Gf.
me
prove the
G. H., x. (xi.)
and 7
Gels., viii.
58
of P. S. A., xix. 3.
R. 225, n.
Or energy.
45
1.
Gf. also
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
46
most
sermon
authoritative
chiefest of
We
them
So ponder on
all.
and
(logos)
the
it well.
have already spoken unto thee about the
Circle of the Animals, or the Life-giving one, 1 of
the Five Planets, and of
the Circle
Sun and Moon, and
of each one of these.
Thou hast done so,
Her. Thus would I have
2.
Tat.
Thrice-greatest one.
thee understand as
well about the Six-and-thirty Decans,
the former things to mind, in order
that
sermon on the
by
of
latter
may also be
calling
the
well understood
thee.
Tat.
have recalled them,
father,
[to
my
mind].
Her.
We
said,
which encompasses
Conceive
it,
[my]
son,
there
is
Body
all things.
then, as being in itself a kind of
figure of a sphere-like shape
so is the universe
conformed.
Tat.
thought of such a figure in
I've
mind, just as thou dost describe,
3.
Her.
Beneath
embracing] frame
the
Circle
my
father [mine].
of
this
[all-
are ranged the Six-and-thirty
Decans, between this Circle of the Universe and
one
that
the
of
Animals,
determining
boundaries of both these Circles, and, as
1
The
zodiac
the second
2
Or
irepl
member
sphere.
is
rod (wdiaKov kvk\ov ^ rod
probably a gloss
<i)o<f>6pov,
it
the
were,
of which
but see 8 below.
3
Or body.
OF THE DECANS AND THE STARS
47
holding that of the Animals aloft up in the
and
[so] defining
air,
it.
They 1 share the motion
Planetary
the
of
Spheres, and [yet] have equal powers with the
Whole, 2 crosswise
[main] motion of the
the
Seven.
They're
checked by nothing but the All-
encircling Body, for this
must be the
in the [whole grades of] motion,
own
final
itself
thing
by
its
self.
But they speed on the Seven other
because they
move with
than the [Circle] of the
Let
us,
then,
Circles,
a less rapid motion
All.
think of them as though of
Watchers stationed round [and watching] over
both the Seven themselves and
the All,
or rather over
all
o'er
the Circle of
things in the World,
2
is, the Decans.
Or Universe.
This refers to the astronomical system underlying the
Pythagoreo-Platonic tradition, as, for instance, set forth allegorically and symbolically by Plato in the famous passage in The
"The entire compound he (the Demiurge)
Timceus (36 b, c).
divided lengthways into two parts, which he joined to one another
1
That
and bent them into a circular
them with themselves and each other at the
at the centre like the letter X,
form, connecting
point opposite to their original meeting point
and, comprehending them in a uniform revolution upon the same axis, he
made the one the outer and the other the inner circle. Now the
motion of the outer circle he called the motion of the same, and
the motion of the inner circle the motion of the other or diverse"
(Jowett's
Translation,
"crosswise,"
" inverse to."
4
8c.
iii.
454,
which in terms
the Decans.
of
455).
motion
The X symbolizes
may
the
be translated as
5
The Decans.
48
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
holding
together
order of
4.
things.
all
Thus do
Tat.
and keeping the good
all,
from what thou
have
my mind,
father, in
it,
say'st.
Her. Moreover, Tat, thou should'st have in
thy mind that they are also
necessities laid
on the other
from
free
the
Stars.
They are not checked and settled in their
nor are
course,
made
they [further]
own
to tread in their
they kept away from
and
hindered
steps again
nor are
[all of]
the Sun's light,
which things the other Stars endure.
But
above them
free,
inerrant
as
all,
though they were
Guards and Overseers of the w hole,
T
they night and day surround the universe.
5.
Tat.
Do
3
an influence
these, then, also, further exercise
upon us
[my]
Her. The greatest,
4
act in
as well,
them,
how should they
both on each one
[my]
Thus,
of
son,
fail
of us
all
For
son.
if
they
to act on us
and generally
those things that
happen generally, the bringing into action
from these
I say,
1
is
and ponder what
downfalls of kingdoms,
states' rebellions,
Referring, presumably, to the fixed stars and the planets.
Reading fab
Or
That
The
for vir\
referring to
is,
eclipses.
4
energy.
Or
energize.
the Seven Spheres.
rest of the
under the
7
as for example,
title
Or energy.
"
fragment
Of the
is
also
found in Patrizzi
(p.
38b),
Stars,"
8
Sc,
the Decans,
OF THE DECANS AND THE STARS
49
plagues [and] famines, tidal waves [and] quakings of the earth
no one of these,
place without their action.
Nay, further
bear this in mind.
still,
rule over them,
son, takes
and we
If
they
are in our turn beneath
the Seven, dost thou not think that some of
their activity extends to us as well,
[who
are]
assuredly their sons, or [come into existence] by
their
means
Tat.
6.
What,
[then,]
may be
the type
body that they have,
father [mine]
Her. The many
them daimones
are not
some
call
of
but they
special class of daimones, for they
have not some other kind of bodies made of
some
special kind of matter, nor are they
by means
of soul, as
we
are [simple] operations
[are
moved
moved], but they
of these Six-and-thirty
Gods.
Nay, further,
still,
their operations,
have in thy mind,
that
the seed of those
whom
Tat,
they cast in the earth
[men]
call
Tangs, some
playing the part of saviours, others being most
destructive.
1
Of. G.
#., xvi. 10.
The question concerning the spiritual and other spaces
"Of what type are they?" occurs with
great frequency in the Bruce and Askew Gnostic Codices.
3 Or energies.
2
rimos.
and
their inhabitants,
*6ri Kcil
its
tV yrjv
ffir^pfiarl^ovcriv ks KaXovari rdvas,
rhs
fihv <ra>T7}-
Neither Patrizzi nor Gaisford, nor
Meineke, nor Wachsmuth, nor Menard, has a word to say on this
piovs,
ras Be d\edpi(>TaTas.
most interesting passage.
VOL.
III.
would suggest in the
first
place that
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
50
Further the Stars
7.
heaven as well do in
in
their several [courses] bear
them 2 underworkers 3
and they 4 have ministers and warriors 5
And
they
in [everlasting] congress with
them 7
speed on their course in aether floating,
filling [all] its
They
full-
no space
space, so that there is
above empty of
stars.
are the cosmic engine of the universe,
having
own
their
too.
peculiar
action,
which
is
subordinate, however, to the action of the Thirtysix,
from
whom
the deaths of
and hosts of
throughout
the other lives
[all]
10
lands arise
with
souls,
[lesser] lives that spoil the fruit.
And under them 11
8.
[all]
is
what
is
called the
and that we should read " ots KaXovo-i TdVas, robs
and in the second that TdVas
is a shortened form of Tiravas or Titans.
Tavas (? from TaV) is
connected with ravads, " stretched out," from \Jrav, just as Tir&v
the text
is faulty,
fiky croorriplovs,
robs 5e dXedpioordrovs"
Tiraves thus
connected with nraivw,
is
signifying the Stretchers
may, however, also be connected with riras (rirris)
from TtVco, and so mean Avengers. Of. J. Laurent. Lydus, Be
Me7isibus, iv. 31 (W. 90, 24), as given in note to P. S. A., xxviii. 1.
1
The planetary spheres, presumably.
or Strivers.
It
8c.
vTro\LTovpyovs
the Decans.
Si
aVa
XeySfjLGi/ov.
ever, is of frequent occurrence in the
See,
for instance,
" Atque
Se/cai/ot
Pistis
The Decans.
o-TpaTidras
soldiers
of the Mithriac mysteries
(Bruxelles
The
^Ether's.
10
(Schwartze's
Trans.),
p.
10
apxoprwv eorumque Xeirovpyoi."
(F.), Textes et
Sophia
The term Xeirovpyoi, howAskew and Bruce Codices.
one of the most famous of the degrees
of the Soldier.
See Cumont
was that
Monuments Figures
1899),
i.
Star-spheres.
Or animals.
relatifs
aux Mysteres de Mithra
315, and especially 317, n.
7
1.
The Decans.
u The Decans.
OF THE DECANS AND THE STARS
Bear, 1
just in
Animals,
the middle of the Circle of the
composed of seven
s
another corresponding [Bear]
energy
Its
as
is
it
nowhere and nowhere
producing
above
Circle,
head.
its
setting
axle's,
but stopping [ever]
and turning round the
proper motion
its
and with
stars,
were an
rising,
in the self-same space,
same, giving
51
the Life-
to
and handing over
whole
this
universe from night to day, from day to night.
And
after this
to which
names
there
is
another choir of
we have not thought it proper
but they who will come after
imitation, will give
to give
us,
them names themselves.
Again, below the Moon, are other
9.
corruptible, deprived of energy,
gether for a
exhaled out of the earth
which
which hold
itself
into
in
stars,
while, in that they've
little
above the earth,
stars,
to-
been
the
air
ever are being broken
up, in that they have a nature like unto [that
of]
useless
lives
on
which come into
earth,
existence for no other purpose than to die,
such as the tribe of
and other things
1
The Great Bear.
circles
2
like
flies,
and
fleas,
and worms,
them.
Compare " Behold the Bear up
The
zodiac.
The
4 Lit.
energy.
Gf. 1 above.
6 Sc.
8
there that
round the Pole."
the Bear.
That
is,
apparently, invent
Gf.
them out
Little Bear.
P.
S. A., xii.
of their
xiv.
1.
own heads hap-
hazard.
9
Referring, presumably, to the
phenomena of
" shooting stars."
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
52
For these are
the world
useful, Tat, neither to
but,
us nor to
on the contrary, they trouble
and annoy, being nature's by-products, 1 which
owe
their birth to her extravagance. 2
Just in the same way, too, the stars exhaled
from earth do not attain the upper space.
They cannot do
from below
they are sent forth
so, since
and, owing to the greatness of their
weight, dragged
down by
their
own
matter, they
quickly are dispersed, and, breaking up,
fall
back
again on earth, affecting nothing but the mere
disturbance of the air about the earth.
10.
There
another
is
Tat, that of the
class,
so-called long-haired [stars],
appearing at their
proper times, and after a short time, becoming
once again invisible
they
neither rise nor set
nor are they broken up.
These are the
brilliant
messengers and heralds
of the general destinies of things
They occupy
that are to be.
the space below the Circle of the
Sun.
When,
some chance
then,
is
going to happen
to the world, [comets] appear, and, shining for
some days, again return behind
the Sun, and stay invisible,
1
icapaico\ov6'f)fjLaTa
the Circle of
some
showing in
sequellcB.
See the same idea in Plutarch,
De
Is. et Os., iv.
5,
concerning
lice.
3
The comets
airoTcAcorfAdruy.
rcov
KaKov^vwv
KO/JLerwy.
5
Lit. below.
OF THE DECANS AND THE STARS
53
the east, some in the north, some in the west, and
We
them Prophets. 1
the nature of the stars.
The stars,
others in the south.
Such
11.
however,
The
is
differ
call
from the star-groups. 2
stars are
they which
sail
in
heaven
the
on the contrary, are fixed in heaven's
star-groups,
4
frame, and they are borne along together with the
heaven,
Twelve out
He who knows
clearly of [what]
say
of which
we
God
is
and,
if
the Zodia. 5
some notion
these can form
becoming [thus] a seer
so,
call
one should dare
for himself, [so]
contemplate Him, and, contemplating Him, be
blessed.
Tat. Blessed,
12.
[mine],
he,
father
son, that
one in
is
who contemplateth Him.
Her. But
body
in truth,
impossible,
'tis
should have this good chance.
Moreover, he should train his soul beforehand,
here and now, that
space] where
may
it
it is
not miss
when
reacheth there, [the
possible for
its
it
to contemplate,
way.
But men who love
will never
it
their bodies,
such
men
contemplate the Vision of the Beautiful
and Good.
1
fuLvTis, seers
2 a(TTepS
or diviners.
forpoov dia<f>opav exovonv.
8e
planets, aerolites
and comets
The
acrTepes
are
the
the forpa are the sidera, signs of the
fixed stars or constellations.
3
5
Or float (alcapovfxcvoi), lit. are raised aloft.
The zodiac lit. the animal signs, or signs
;
Of.
Ex.
i.
6.
of lives.
Or body.
54
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
For what,
Beauty which
son, is that [fair]
hath no form nor any colour, nor any mass
Tat Can
from these
there be aught that's beautiful apart
Her. God only,
which
is still
[my] son
greater,
or rather that
the [proper] name of God.
COMMENTAEY
The
earlier editors of Stobaeus (apparently following
the mistake of Patrizzi) have Asclepius instead of Tat
as the second person of the dialogue, which is clearly
wrong according to the text itself (see the first sentence
given to Hermes, and 9 and 10). 2
The excerpt is from a sermon in the Collection to
Tat.
It belongs to the further explanation of things
referred to only generally in the General
therefore, again probably
is,
from one
Sermons
of the
it
Expository
Sermons, in which series already a sermon has been
given on the Zodiacal Twelve and on the Seven Spheres.
Seeing also that
it is
stated that this sermon
authoritative and the chiefest of
suppose that
it
came
at the
end
of
them
all,"
is
"
most
we must
one of the Books
of
the Expository Sermons.
We
seem
to
have the beginning of the sermon, but
not the end, for Stobaeus breaks
off in
an aimless and
provoking fashion in the midst of a subject.
For a list of the Egyptian names of the Decans, with
their Greek transcriptions and symbols, see Budge,
Gods of the Egyptians, ii. 304-308.
1
Or body.
Menard and Wachsmuth have
similar nature
cf.
Exx.
i.
and
viii.,
Tat.
and
For other changes of a
ii. (iii.), and xvii.
G. H.,
EXCEEPT
X.
[CONCERNING THERULE OF PROVIDENCE, NECESSITY AND FATE]
(Title in Patrizzi (p. 38), "
'
From
Text
Of Fate," simply
followed by
the [Sermons] to Tat."
Stob., Phys. 9 iv. 8,
his
Son"; G. pp.
1.
[Tat.~]
under heading
" Of
Hermes
to
62 ; M. i. 42, 43 ; W. i. 73, 74.
Menard, Livre IV., No. vii. of "Fragments from the
Books of Hermes to his Son Tat," pp. 248, 249.)
all
61,
Rightly,
now
father, hast
further, [pray,] recall
thou told
unto
my
me
mind
what are the things that Providence doth rule,
and what the things ruled by Necessity, and in
under Fate.
like fashion also [those]
\Her.~\ I said there
were in
Tat, three
us,
species of incorporals.
The
it
first's
thus
a thing the
colourless,
is
mind
alone can grasp
figureless,
massless,
ceeding out of the First Essence in
by the mind
And
alone.
itself,
pro-
sensed
there are also, [secondly,] in us, opposed
Or an
That
intelligible something.
is,
the intelligible essence.
55
Or
bodiless.
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
56
1
2
to this, configurings,
the receptacle.
of
But what has once been
Primal
which
this serves as
set in
motion by the
Essence for some [set] purpose of the
Reason (Logos), and that has been conceived 5
[by
it],
straightway doth change into another
form of motion
urgic Thought.
2.
And
this is the
image of the Demi-
there
is
[also] a third species of in-
which doth eventuate round bodies,
corporate,
space, time, [and] motion, figure, surface, 7 size,
[and] species.
Of these there are two [sets of] differences.
The first [lies] in the quality pertaining
specially unto themselves
the second [set
is]
of the body.
The
special qualities are figure, colour, species,
space, time, movement.
[The differences] peculiar to body are figure
1
Sc. of opposite
nature to the
first
incorporal, as negative to
positive, say.
2
arxmar6rriTs
that
than figures or shapes,
is,
the "somethings"
types,
some kind.
3 That is, plays the part
more
subtle or ideal
or prototypes, or paradigms of
of matter,
"womb,"
or "nurse" to
these.
4
Lit. intelligible.
Or Mind.
Heeren
(as also all
Or
received.
editors subsequent to
him)
thinks that something has here fallen out of the text, because he
finds no second incorporal specifically mentioned ; but the duality
and passive, creative and condo very well for the second.
of the demiurgic thought, active
ceptive, will
7
Or appearance.
CONCERNING THE RULE OF PROVIDENCE,
configured,
and colour coloured
form conformed, surface and
size.
ETC.
57
there's
also
The latter with the former have no part.
3. The Intelligible Essence, then, in company
with God, 2 has power
[power] to keep
the corporal nature
world.
is
its
that
own
it
self,
keeps
and
itself,
not under Necessity.
by God,
'tis left
by Providence,
its
another, in that
since Essence in itself
But when
o'er
it
takes unto itself
choice of
is,
its
it
being ruled
choosing
of
the
the irrational
All
is
moved to-wards some
reason.
Reason [comes] under Providence
[falls]
under Necessity
is
unreason
the things that happen
under Fate.
in the corporal [fall]
Such
the Sermon on the rule of Providence,
Necessity and Fate.
COMMENT
1
have taken the
title
from the concluding words,
which are evidently the end of the sermon.
thus seems to have reproduced the whole of
Stobaeus
this little
which should be read in connection with Exx.
xi., xii. and xiii.
0. H. xii. (xiii.) 6 (see Commentary),
seems to presuppose this sermon.
tractate,
The distinction seems to be between colour, form, etc., "in
and differentiated colours, forms, etc.
3
irpbs r$ 06$ yevofjLwri.
Or save, preserve.
itself,"
2
4
This sentence seems to be corrupt.
:;
EXCERPT
XI.
[OF JUSTICE]
(I
have added the
title,
the excerpt not being found in
Patrizzi.
Text
Phys.,
Stob.,
iii.
under the vague heading
52,
50 M. i. 33, 34; W. i. 62, 63.
Menard, Livre IV., No. iv. of " Fragments from the
Books of Hermes to his Son Tat," p. 240.)
"Of Hermes";
[my]
p.
For there hath been appointed,
[Her.']
1.
G.
son, a very
mighty Daimon turning in
the universe's midst, that sees
men do on
all
things that
the earth.
Just as Foreknowledge 1 and Necessity have
been
way
act
set o'er the
is
Order of the gods, in the same
Justice set o'er men, causing the same to
on them.
For they rule
o'er
the order of the things
existing as divine, which have no will, nor any
power, to
err.
For the Divine cannot be made
from which the incapacity to
1
Or Providence.
Gf,
58
to
wander
err accrues [to
Ex.
i.
15, note.
it].
OF JUSTICE
But Justice
is
men commit on
appointed to correct the errors
earth.
For, seeing that their race
2.
death,
errs],
and made out
and
to those
sway.
is
under sway of
of bad matter, [it naturally
failure is the natural thing, especially
who
the Divine.
'Tis
59
are without the
power of seeing
over these that Justice doth have special
They're subject both to Fate through the
activities of birth,
and unto Justice through the
mistakes [they make] in
life.
COMMENT
The
in the
title
and place
of this excerpt has been discussed
Commentary on
C.
H.
xii. (xiii.) 6.
It belongs
to the Tat-Sermons, and in the collection of Lactantius
probably stood prior to the Sermon of Hermes to Tat,
"
About the General Mind." 4
1
This recalls Philo's description of the Therapeuts, who
were "taught ever more and more to see," and strive for the
"intuition" or "sight of that which is," rrjs rod 6vtos 6eas
(Philo, D. V. a, 891 P., 473 M.).'
2 That is, through the natural accidents that attend
life in a
body.
3
That is, in their way of living eV r$
Compare with it Exx. x., xii., xiii.
friy.
EXCERPT
XII.
OF PROVIDENCE AND PATE
from Patrizzi
(Title
[Sermons] to
38)
(p.
followed by
"
From
the
Ammon."
Text: Stob., Phys., v. 20, under heading: "Of Hermes
from the [Sermons] to Ammon " ; G. p. 70 ; M. i. 48, 49
W.
82.
i.
Menard, Livre IV., No.
of
Hermes
All
to
Ammon,"
ii.
of "
Fragments
things are born by Nature and
there
is
Books
by
Fate,
Providence
And
of this
taneous powers,
is
the Self-perfect
Reason.
[Reason] there are two spon-
Necessity and
Fate.
Fate doth minister to Providence and to
Necessity
while unto Fate the Stars 2 do minister.
For Fate no one
himself from their
is
able to escape, nor keep
shrewd scrutiny. 4
For that the Stars are instruments of Fate
at its behest that they effect
is
and
not a [single] space bereft of Providence.
Now
And
of the
p. 258.)
all
nature and for men. 5
1
avror\^s \6yos,
That
Biv6r7jTos.
is,
complete in
itself.
3
the Seven Spheres.
5
With
this extract
60
Sc. of
compare Exx.
it
things for
the Stars.
x., xi., xiii.
EXCEKPT
XIII.
OF THE WHOLE ECONOMY
no
(Patrizzi (p. 38) gives
" To the
Same Amnion
Text: Stob., Phys.,
but only the heading
title,
Afifnova)."
under sub-heading: "Of the
"Of Hermes from the
(Apovv 1 )" G. p. 68; M. i. 47;
v.
16,
Whole Economy," followed by:
Ammon
[Sermons] to
W.
i.
79, 80.
Menard, Livre IV., No.
Hermes
Now
to
i.
of "
Fragments
of the
what supporteth the whole
Providence
all
what holdeth
about,
eircleth it
drives
Books
of
Ammon ").
is
it
[called]
World, 2
is
together and en;
what
is
Fate,
Necessity
on and drives them round, 3
bringing Necessity to bear on them (for that
its
nature
Necessity)
death
of
the
is
;
[it
20,
bringing into play of [this]
is]
cause
the
of
and
birth
life.
So, then, the
1
The only
place in
and xxxv.
4, 7, 8.
beneath the sway of
Cosmos
is
which
form occurs in Stobaeus
this
Or Cosmos.
Fate
fifLapfAtvri.
61
Or makes them
Or destruction.
cf.
to revolve
v.
;.
62
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
Providence
(for
but Providence
'tis
the
[itself]
For which cause,
extends
too, the
round [Heaven],
speed
meet with
to
first
itself to
Gods
Heaven.
revolve,
possessed
of
it)
and
tireless,
never-ceasing motion.
But Fate [extends
which cause,
Cosmos].
And
too,
Cosmos];
for
Necessity [encompasses
the
itself
in
Providence foreknows
but Fate's the
reason of the disposition of the Stars. 6
Such
which
1
is
things are ordered.
all
Lit.
the law that no one can
"first
has
Providence."
escape,
by
The
following
parentheses seem to be the gloss of a scribe
who was
words
in
puzzled by
Usener, however, would detect a lacuna after the
new excerpt after that, and
Wachsmuth agrees with him. This seems to me to be unnecessary
the sentence.
parentheses and the beginning of a
2
3
That
That
is,
is,
avrdv.
The
pure Providence unmixed with Necessity and Fate.
because of Providence, the law of heaven.
text is hopeless,
being simply
elfxaptxevq
8e,
dt6n
tea)
avdyKT}.
G
That
is,
the Seven Spheres.
Of.
Exx.
x., xi., xii.
EXCEEPT
XIV.
OF SOUL
[I.]
from Patrizzi (p. 40) ; preceded by " Of Thrieegreatest Hermes," and followed by " To the Same Amnion."
Text: Stob., Phys., xxxv. 9, under heading " Of Hermes
from the [Sermons] to Amnion"; G. pp. 282, 283; M. i.
(Title
196, 197;
of
W.
281, 282.
Menard, Livre IV., No. iii. of " Fragments
Hermes to Amnion," pp. 259, 260.)
The
1.
essence,
Soul
is
further
and even when
[in
in
of the
incorporal
itself]
body
it
Books
by no means
doth depart from the essentiality peculiar to
itself.
Its nature
for ever
is,
according to
moving, according to
not
self-motive [purely],
its
essence to be
thought [to bej
its
moved
in something,
nor towards something, nor [yet]
because
of
something.
For
it is
prior [to
them] in power, and prior
stands not in any need of consequents.
"In something," furthermore,
and time, and nature
[this]
means harmony, and form, and
"because of something,"
'tis
means
space,
" towards something,"-
[this]
because of body that there
and nature.
63
is
figure
means body,
time,
for
and space,
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
64
Now
these things are in connection with
all
each other by means of a congenital relationship.
For instance, now, the body must have
2.
space, for
it
would be past
body should
contriving that a
all
exist without a space.
and
It changes, too, in nature,
for
'tis
impossible
change to be apart from time, and from the
movement nature makes
possible for there to be
nor
is
further
it
composing of a body
apart from harmony.
It is
because of body, then, that space exists
for that
body,
it
by
reception of the changes of the
its
does not let a thing that's changing pass
away.
changing,
But,
it
thing to another, and
doth alternate from
is
one
deprived of being in a
permanent condition, but not of being body.
For body, qua body, remains body
special
moment
of
its state
does not remain.
The body, then, keeps changing
3.
And
so, space is incorporal,
natural motion
its
in its states.
and time, and
but each of these has naturally
own peculiar property.
The property of space is
receptivity
of time
and number; of nature [it is]
harmony ['tis] love of body, change.
interval
['tis]
motion
The
of
special
nature of the Soul, however,
essential thought.
1
but any
Or thinking according
to essence,
ko.t
ova-iav v6ri<ris.
is
EXCERPT XV.
[OF SOUL,
(Patrizzi (p. 40) runs this
II.]
on to the preceding without a
break.
Text Stob., Phys., xxxv. 7, under heading " Of Hermes
from the [Sermons] to Ammon " G. pp. 291, 292; M. i.
203, 204 ; W. i. 289, 290.
Menard, Livre IY., No. iv. of " Fragments of the Books
:
of
Hermes
to
Ammon,"
That which
1.
moved
moved according to
the motion that doth move
is
the operation of
the
pp. 261, 262.)
is
all.
For that the Nature of the
with
motion,
according to
one
its
all
supplies the
[motion being] the
all
[one]
Power, the other that according
to [its] Operation.
The former doth extend itself throughout the
whole of Cosmos, and holdeth it together from
within
the latter doth extend
and encompasseth
it
III.
all
65
Or energy.
5
it],
these
things.
2
Sc. Nature's.
VOL.
And
from without.
go everywhere together through
1
[around
itself
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
66
Now
the [Productive] Nature
of all things
supplies the things produced with [power of re-]
production, sowing the
[and] having
seeds of its
own
self,
becomings 2 by means of moving
its
matter.
2.
And
Matter being moved was heated and
did turn to Fire and Water,
the
one [being]
strong and active, and the other passive.
And
by Water was dried up by
Fire opposed
and did become Earth borne on Water.
it,
And when
it
was excessively dried up, 4 a
vapour rose from out the three,
Earth and Fire,
and became
The [Four] came
from
Water,
Air.
into congress, [then,] accord-
hot
ing to the reason of the Harmony, 5
cold, [and]
with
dry with moist.
And from
the union
of these [four]
is
spirit
born, and seed proportionate to the surrounding
Spirit.
This [spirit] falling in the
womb
does not
remain inactive in the seed, but being active
transforms
the
seed,
and
transformed, develops growth and
1
<t><xns
words
simply
it
being [thus]
[this]
size.
but as there is a play in the original on the
0uV, and <pvofi4vois, I have tried to retain it
<j>6<ris } <f>{fou(ra y
in translation by a series of allied words.
2
6
3 Sc. Fire.
yspecrets.
Or law
6 Lit.
play on
of
Harmony,
Kark rhv
4 TrGpilrjpaivo^hov.
rrjs ap/xovlas
" breathing with one breath,"
Trvevfia
(spirit).
Comment., and Exx.
xix. 3
For
;
e/c
"spirit,"
iv. 2.
\6yov.
rrjs o-vfjiirvoias
cf.
G.
fi".,
x.
word-
(xi.)
13,
op soul
And
as
it
grows in
copy of a model, and
And on
by means
an image
Now,
draws unto
size, it
3.
67
is
the model
modelled.
the form supported,
is
of which that which
is
womb had
since the spirit in the
causeth fermentation
[life]
never changes from
It
the
Harmony com-
[only], the
its
of rational
life.
and changeless
indivisible
is
not the
but that which
life,
posed the latter as the receptacle
by
represented
is
so represented.
motion that maintaineth
This
itself
it
changelessness.
ruleth the conception of the thing within
womb, by means
and bringeth
it
of numbers, delivereth
into the outer
it,
air.
not owing
The Soul 6 dwells very near to it 7
to some common property, but under the con;
straint of Fate
body.
for that it has
no love to be with
Wherefore,
[the
Harmony 9 ]
according unto
Fate doth furnish to the thing that's born
1
Or image
tV
TTjs BiayorjTtKvs fays,
of a figure,
Be Ppao-Tucfiv.
eX8o\ov
[its]
10
cx^aros.
Or
vehicle,
of the purposive rational
viroBoxhv.
life,
otherwise
Harmony.
6 Reading
5
Sc. the Harmony.
tyvxh for ^v%V7 The new-born babe.
8
Compare Plutarch, Frag., v. 9 (ed. Didot) "For you should
know the intercourse and the conjunction of the soul with body is
called the
contrary to nature."
9
It is not easy to disentangle the subjects of
clauses.
10
jS'c.
the thing's.
some
of the above
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
68
rational motion,
the
and the
intellectual essence of
life itself.
For that
spirit,
and
the
life.
[this
*]
set
doth insinuate
it
itself into
the
moving with the motion
of
COMMENTAEY
Patrizzi is evidently at fault in running this on to Ex.
xiv.
"
The subject again is not so much
Of Conception and Birth," but as the
without a break.
Of Soul
" as "
general exposition
falls in
very well with the nature of
the subjects treated in Exx. xiv. and xvi,
the same general
title,
though we
may
we may keep
be quite certain
it was not that of the original.
The exposition in 2 is reminiscent of an apocalyptic
style, and seems to be a Greek overworking of Egyptian
ideas; for though the details are different and the
precise meaning difficult to disentangle, the general
point of view may be compared with the embryonic
that
stages of incarnation given in the Pistis Sophia (pp.
344
fit).
The Embryonic Stages of Incarnation
"Then the Eulers summon the workmen of their
number of three hundred and sixty-five,
and hand over to them the soul and the counterfeit of
seons, to the
the spirit bound together, the one to the other, the
counterfeit of the spirit being outside the soul, and the
1
Sc.
CTt/cs,
the rational movement.
this may perhaps have some reference
of lives, or the zodiac.
to the circle
OF SOUL
compound
of
the power within the soul being inside
both, that they
And
"(345)
69
may
hold together.
commandment
the Eulers give
to
the
workmen, saying
This is the type which ye shall set
in the body of the matter of the world.
Set ye the
compound of the power which is in the soul within all
'
may
them, that they
of
hold together, for
it is their
support, and outside the soul place the counterfeit of
the spirit/
their
This
the order which they have given to
is
workmen, that they may
the antitypes in
set
bodies.
"
Following this plan the workmen of the Eulers
bring the power, the soul and the counterfeit of the
spirit,
and pour them
through the world
"
all
three into the world, passing
of the Eulers of the Midst.
The Eulers of the Midst also inspect the counterfeit
and also the destiny. The latter, whose
of the spirit
name is the destiny, leadeth on
him killed by the death which
man
until it
destined
is
for
hath
him.
This the Eulers of the Great Fate have bound to the
soul.
"
And
the
workmen
Sphere bind the soul
of the
with the power, with the counterfeit of the spirit and
with the destiny. And the whole is divided so as to
form two
woman
for
parts,
to
surround the
in the world, in
them
to be sent
one part to
whom
man and
also
the
the sign hath been set
unto them.
the man and the other
(346)
to the
And they give
woman in the
food of the world, either in the aery, or watery, or
etheric substance
"Now,
which they imbibe.
therefore,
when
the
workmen
of the
Eulers
have cast one part into the woman and the other into
the man in the manner which I have just related, even
though [the pair] be removed to a great distance from
one another, the workmen compel them secretly to be
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
70
Then the
united together in the union of the world.
counterfeit of the spirit which
unto the part [of
sacrificeth it
which hath been sent into the
body [of the man], and
itself]
world in the matter
male cometh
in the
is
of the
and casteth
womb of the woman,
And forthwith the
into the
it
a deposit of the seed of iniquity.
workmen
three hundred and sixty-five
of the Eulers
enter into her, to take up their abode in her.
workmen
"
of the
And
(347)
cometh
from
two parts are
all
workmen check
the
the nourishment
all
eateth or drinketh, and keep
woman
it
The
there together.
the blood that
that the
in the
womb
woman
of the
And after forty days, they work
for forty days.
the blood [that cometh] from the essence of
nourishment, and work
all
the
together carefully in the
it
woman's womb.
"
After forty days they spend another thirty days
in building its
man
members
in the likeness of the
each buildeth a member.
the decans
who
I will tell
thus build [the body]
body
you
of
when
of
explain the emanation of the pleroma.
" Afterwards,
when
body entirely with
they
summon
first
the counterfeit of the
into the body
of the
which they have builded,
spirit,
and
power within the
soul within those,
pound
workmen have completed the
members in seventy days,
the
all its
they place outside
finally
all,
summon the
summon the com-
next they
they
soul,
and the destiny
with them,
for it is not blended
but followeth after and accompanieth them."
(An elaborate account of the " sealing " of
members
"
of the
And when
conception
plasm
the
is full,
is
number
of the
the babe
the power being small in
and the counterfeit
of
the
then given.)
it,
is
months
born, the
of the child's
compound
the soul being small in
the spirit being small in
of
it,
it;
OF SOUL
whereas the destiny, being
71
vast, is
not mingled with the
body, according to the regulation of the three (350),
but followeth after the
feit of
the
spirit, until
soul, the
body and the counter-
the soul passeth from the body
according to the type of death whereby he shall die
according to what hath been decreed unto
Eulers of the Great Fate."
him by the
EXCEEPT
XVI.
[OF SOUL,
(I
have added the
heading
"
III.]
Patrizzi (p. 40b) having only the
title,
To the Same Ammon."
Text: Stob., Phys.,
"Of Hermes";
xli.
under the simple heading:
3,
G. pp. 323, 324;
M.
i.
227, 228;
W.
i.
320, 321.
Menard, Livre IV., No.
Hermes
of
to
Ammon,"
1.
The
it
should have body,
Soul
of
v.
"Fragments
of the
then, incorporal essence
is,
Books
pp. 263, 264.)
it
for if
would no longer have
the power of being self-maintained. 1
For every body needeth being;
also ordered life
it
needeth
as well.
For that for every thing that comes to
change also must succeed. 4
birth,
For that which doth become, 5 becomes in
for in becoming it hath increase.
1
Or
Ms
of saving
rrjs eV
size
itself.
rd&i
Keiju.evr)s,
lit.
distinguished from intellectual
or cosmic
life set, or
life),
that
is,
placed, in order (as
presumably, sensible
life.
Or has becoming,
Or is born.
or genesis
72
Or
follow.
OF SOUL
73
Again, for every thing that doth increase,
decrease succeedeth
and on increase destruction.
For, sharing in the form of
life,
it
lives
it
shares, also, in being through the Soul.
2.
But that which
another,
And by
and taking part
tellectual
It
living
through
rational
in intellectual
life.
supply this
in-
life.
called
is
now mean becoming
doth
Soul that
the
is
to
first itself.
[this] " being " I
in reason,
It
being
is
the cause of being
is
through
the
the
and
intellect,
and
life,
mortal
through the body.
Soul
is,
possessing
from
all
accordingly,
[in
power
the
itself]
it
if
no [living] essence to furnish
Nor, any more, would
rational [living] thing,
it
life?
be possible to say a
were there no ratiocina-
It is not to all [lives]
;
freedom
that there were
tive essence to furnish intellectual
tends
of
be possible to talk about
intellectual living thing,
3.
incorporal,
change.
For how would
an
thing
[it
that
life.
intellect
ex-
doth depend] on the relationship of
body's composition to the Harmony.
1
ettovs
fo>f/s,
that
is,
formal
life,
or life set in order.
body, or that which comes to birth.
3 (wop (subs.) according to Gaisford,
that is, an animal
prefer (<a6v (adj.), taking it with the following hoy why and
2
Sc.
Or animal.
but I
Qvt\r6v.
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
74
For
if
the hot in the compost be in excess,
1
light
he's
heavy and
and fervid; but
if
the cold, he's
he's dull.
For Nature makes the composition
fit
the
Harmony.
There are three forms of the becoming,
and medium.
hot, the cold,
It
makes
the
it fit
according to the ruling Star
in the star-mixture.
And
Soul receiving
plies this
of]
it,*
as Fate decrees, sup-
work of Nature with [the proper kind
life.
Nature,
accordingly,
assimilates
harmony unto the mixture
unites
its
the
body's
of the Stars, and co-
complex mixtures with their Harmony,
so that they are in
mutual sympathy.
For that the end of the
Stars'
Harmony
is
to
give birth to sympathy according to their Fate.
1
Kovcpos (mas.),
the
subject
is,
therefore,
man, the rational
animal.
2
Sc.
Nature.
Sc.
the body-compost.
Or, presumably, planetary sphere.
EXCERPT
XVII.
[OF SOITL,
(Patrizzi (p. 41)
IV.]
runs this on to the preceding without a
break.
Text
Stob., Phys.,
" Of
that is,
229; W.
xli. 4,
Hermes "
Menard, Livre IV*, No.
Hermes
1.
Soul,
Same "
" Of the
324, 325
G. pp.
M.
i.
228,
of the
Book
321, 322.
i.
of
under heading
to
Ammon,"
Ammon,
vi.
then,
own end within itself in
way of life
;
itself
essence containing
is
to itself the
draws also unto
"Fragments
of
pp. 265, 266.)
beginning taking
[its]
by
allotted it
Fate,
it
a reason like to matter,
possessing "heart" and "appetite."
" Heart," too,
its
doth make
its
state accordant with the Soul's intelligence,
it,
is
matter
if it
becometh courage, and
[then,]
is
not led away
by cowardice.
And
make
power,
1
" appetite "
state accord
its
it
is
matter, too
if
with the Soul's rational
[then] becometh temperance, and
In a metaphorical
sense,
doth
it
Ovpbv
teal iiridv/nia
not
is
terms originally
belonging to a primitive stage of culture, and often translated
"anger and concupiscence"
"too much" and the " too
paralleled with the vovs
i.
5 and xviii.
positive and
little" of the
and
negative, denoting the
animal nature, and
ivivoia of the rational nature.
3.
75
to
Gf.
be
Ex.
76
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
moved by
pleasure,
reasoning
for
up the
fills
" appetite's" deficiency.
And when
2.
both [these]
are harmonized,
and equalized, and both are made subordinate to
the Soul's rational power, justice
For that their
born.
doth take
state of equilibrium
" heart's " excess,
away the
is
and equalizes the
deficiency of " appetite."
The source
of these, however,
ing essence of
self,
all
[working] in
thought,
its
own
round everything, with
its
reason
thinks about
3.
is
the penetrat-
by
its self
its
own reason
own
as its rule.
doth lead and guide as
as 'twere its counsellor
all things.
The reason
is
reason that doth think
its
It is the essence that
ruler
who
of the essence, then,
is
gnosis
of those reasonings which furnish the irrational
[part]
with reasoning's conjecturing, 7
thing as compared with reasoning
faint
[itself],
but
reasoning as compared with the irrational, as
echo unto voice, and moonlight to the sun.
And "heart" and
upon a
rational plan
"appetite" are harmonized
;
they pull the one against
the other, and [so] they learn to
own
1
selves a circular intent.
$c. virtues,
t)
courage and temperance.
that the essence
diavoTjTiK^ ovcia,
know
in their
is,
#c.
which
two
pervades, all things by means of thought.
4
iv
Or power,
6 Trepivor}TiK6s.
avTTjs irepwor}TiK(p \6ycp.
or ruling principle.
7
eUacrfiSu
virtues.
penetrates, or
didvoia.
EXCEEPT
XVIII.
[OF SOUL,
(Patrizzi (p. 41)
Text
Stob.,
V.]
runs this on to the last without a break.
" Of the
xli. 5,
under heading
Phys.,
Same "that is, " Of Hermes
230 W. i. 322-324.
"
G. pp. 325-327
M.
i.
229,
Menard, Livre IV., No.
of
1.
Hermes
to
Ammon,"
of
vii.
"Fragments
of the
Books
pp. 267, 268.)
[Now], every Soul
is
from death and
free
in perpetual motion.
For in the General Sermons 1 we have said
some motions
are
by means of the
activities,
others are owing to the bodies.
We
say, moreover, that the Soul's
out of a certain essence,
poral
itself,
Now
produced
not a matter,
just as its essence
incor-
is.
every thing that's born, must of necessity
be born from something.
All things,
moreover, in which
followeth on birth,
must
of necessity
kinds of motion with them
1
Gf. G.
Or
H., x. (xi.) 1
and 7
energies.
77
destruction
the
xiii. (xiv.) 1
have two
[motion] of
and Ex.
ix. 1.
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
78
moved
the Soul, by which they're
and body's
by which they wax and wane.
Moreover, also, on the formers dissolution,
[motion],
the latter
dissolved.
is
This I define, [then,] as the motion of bodies
corruptible.
The
2.
in that perpetually it
[its]
is
in perpetual motion,
moves
itself,
free
so,
according to this reason, every Soul
from death, having
active of
for
motion the making
itself.
The kinds of Souls are three
human, [and] irrational.
Now
in
the divine
[is
which there
is
the
moved
in
it,
For
and makes
motion active [too] in other things.
And
is
Soul, however,
it is
For when
separates
it is
itself
divine, [and]
that] of its divine body,
making
and moves
set free
active
of
itself.
from mortal
lives, it
godlike
perpetual motion,
body, and as
moved
'tis
in
self,
with the same motion as the universe.
3.
heart.
the
[parts]
Of.
irrational,
has joined to
the
own
something of
appetite
latter also are immortal, in
The former
and waning.
2
it
also
in its
it
as
and
These
1
is
The human [kind] has
the godlike [body], but
well
itself.
from the irrational portions of
departs unto the
itself,
Ex.
xvii.
is
here the body
that they
the latter, the motion of waxing
OF SOUL
happen
79
be activities
also in themselves to
but
[they are] the activities of mortal bodies.
they are removed far from the
Wherefore,
godlike portion
godlike body
frame, they
but when this
when
of the Soul,
also cling to
it,
it is
in its
enters in a mortal
and by the presence
[of these elements] it keeps
on being a human
Soul.
But that of the
and
And
appetite.
of heart
irrationals consists
for
this
cause
these
lives
are also called irrational, through deprivation of
the reason of the Soul.
4.
You may
consider, too, as a fourth [kind]
that of the soulless, which from without
the
them moving.
But this should [really] be the moving of
itself within its godlike body, and the moving
of these [other] things as it were by the way.
bodies operates in them, and sets
COMMENT
The mention
of the
General Sermons
( 1) raises
question as to whether or no our extract
may
the
not be
from one of the Sermons to Tat, for in all other cases
these General Sermons are referred to in the Tatliterature.
The contents, however, are so similar to the
extracts from the Sermons to Ammon that we keep
this excerpt with them.
2
Sc.
The other kinds presumably operating
the divine part.
The
irrational parts.
in bodies
from within.
EXCEEPT XIX.
[OF SOUL, VI.]
(Patrizzi (p. 41b) runs this
on to the
without a
last
break.
Text
Stob.,
Same"that
229, 230
W.
Phys.,
i.
xli.
Hermes
to
Ammon,"
Soul, then,
1.
under heading
G.
is
viii.
an eternal intellectual essence,
1
the reason
2
it
itself]
the Harmony's intention. 4
makes,
thinks with
itself in
it
it
bideth in and by
It ruleth its
thought
1
of itself;
Lit. the physical
and
doth attract [unto
itself,
body Nature
the maker of
world.
own
reason, bearing in its
by the name
2
Sc.
a motion (called
it
vSrjfia.
up
[it,]
leaves behind the
the noetic
328; M. I
" Fragments of the Books
of
when
"Of the
pp. 269, 270.)
having for purpose
But when
327,
pp.
324, 325.
Menard, Livre IV., No.
of
6,
"Of Hermes";
is,
the reason.
own
of life)
ffvvvoovaa.
Znkvoiav.
body.
This might here be translated " the self-purposive," to pick
the word-play on
Or purpose^
p6r)fia
and
hi&voia.
vo^ucm.
80
81
OF SOUL
unto [that
like
life.
For that the thing peculiar to the Soul
2.
this],
[is
like
is
peculiarity.
There
what
to furnish other things with
own
its
cometh into
that which
of]
are, accordingly,
two
lives,
two motions
one, that according to the essence of the Soul
the other, that according to the nature of the body.
The former
more partial]
more
the
[life]
latter
general, [the
that
has no authority but
essence
other
[is]
is
is
according unto
own
its
the
self,
under necessity.
[is]
For every thing
moved,
that's
moveth
necessity of that which
is
under the
[it].
The motion that doth move, however,
is
in
close union with the love of the noetic essence.
For Soul must be incorporal,
essence
that
hath no share in any body Nature makes.
For were
it
reason nor intelligence.
For every body
when
it
would have neither
corporal, it
is
without intelligence; but
doth receive of essence,
it
doth obtain
the power of being a breathing animal.
3.
The
the body
spirit
;
[hath the power to contemplate]
the reason of the essence hath the
power to contemplate the
That
is,
Beautiful.
presumably, of the same nature as the motion of the
soul in incarnation or perhaps of the animal soul,
2 p6rj(Tiy.
3
Cf. G. if., x. (xi.) 13,
VOL.
III.
Comment.
and Exx. xv.
2, iv. 2.
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
82
The
sensible
the
spirit
discern appearances.
various sense-organs
by means
we
is
that which can
It is distributed into the
x
;
a part of it becometh spirit
we
of which
we
of which
see,
hear, [a part]
[a part]
by means
by means of which
by means of which we
smell, [a part]
taste,
by means of which we touch.
This spirit, when it is led upwards by the
[a part]
understanding, discerns that which
but
if 'tis not, it
For
of
it is
of the body,
[impressions].
4.
The reason
is
of the
that which
is
and
3
;
itself.
that, too, receptible
essence,
on the other
possessed of judgment.*
The knowledge of things worthy
co-existent with the reason
is
sensible
only maketh pictures for
all
hand,
is
[to
be known]
[that which
is
co-
existent] with the spirit [is] opinion.
The
latter has its operation
ing world
the former, from
from the surround-
itself.
COMMENT
As Exx.
xvi.-xix. follow one another in Stobseus, it is
highly probable that they are
group
and as
Exx. xiv. and
of sermons,
to those of
1
Lit. organic senses
Lit. spirituous sight.
That
is,
cf.
all
taken from the same
their contents are so similar
xv.,
and these are stated by
G. H., x. (xi.) 17.
the sensible or phenomenal world.
rb <ppovovv.
83
OF SOUL
Stobaeus to be from the " Sermons to
fairly justified
in
grouping them
Ammon," we
all together.
are
How
to Ammon there may have been in the
by Stobaeus we have no means of knowthey may also perhaps have had no distinctive title
many Sermons
collection used
ing
but as Stobaeus usually leaves out the
titles in
quoting,
even when we know them from other sources, there
no
definite conclusion to be
drawn from
his silence.
is
EXCEKPT XX.
[THE POWER OF CHOICE]
(Patrizzi (p. 42) runs this
Text
Stob.,
Hermes"; G.
ffihica,
(ii.)
on to Ex. xix. without a break.
" Of
31, under heading
vii.
654, 655;
pp.
M.
W.
100, 101;
ii.
ii.
160, 161.
Menard, Livre IV., No.
i.
of
"Fragments Divers," pp. 271,
272.)
There
ception.
is,
and
per-
Opinion
ception
then, essence, reason, thought,
and sensation move
towards
per-
reason directs itself towards essence
thought
sends
own self.
And thought
is
itself
forth
through
its
interwoven with perception,
and entering into one another they become one
form,
which
Opinion
is
that of the Soul
and
Soul's perception
the
same
state.
falling short,
1
and
[itself].
move towards
sensation
the
but they do not remain in
Hence
is
there
excess,
difference with them.
*
v6i)(jLa.
84
dtdyoia.
and
THE POWER OP CHOICE
When
tion,
85
they are drawn away from the percep-
they deteriorate
but when they follow
and are obedient, they share
it
in the perceptive
reason through the sciences. 1
We
2.
have the power to choose
within
it is
our power to choose the better, and in like
[to choose] the worse, according to our will.
And
if
[our] choice clings to the evil things,
doth consort with the corporeal nature
it
way
for this cause Fate rules
[and]
him who makes
o'er
this choice.
Since, then, the intellectual essence
absolutely
embraces
free,
all
law unto
[namely]
in thought,
itself
and
and
it
sent
forth
it
first
in us
reason
that
it
self-identical,
account Fate does not reach
Thus furnishing
the
ever
on
is
that
is
this
4
it.
from the First God,
the perceptive reason, and the
whole reason which Nature hath appointed unto
them that come to birth.
With these the Soul
with their
fates,
though
consorting,
consorteth
[in herself] she
hath no
part [or lot] in their fates' nature.
1
Sto
rav
ijlo&hh&twv.
Reading ckovo-Icos for the meaningless aKovtrlws of the text.
3 Reading yorifxariK^ with
Patrizzi, instead of aw nanny
with G. W. prefers aff^aros (incorporal).
4
Sc,
as
the reason.
The Soul, or intellectual essence. The text is very obscure,
and Wachsmuth does not seem to have improved it. Cf. C. iff.,
6
xii. (xiii.) 8.
THRICE-GREATEST HERMtfS
86
(Patrizzi (p. 42) adds the following
it is
to
the preceding;
not found in Stobseus, and appears to be a scholium.
What
is
harmony
necessitated
by
the
of [all] the parts, in no
from that which
is
interwoven
way
differs
fated.
COMMENT
I
have supplied a temporary heading for the sake of
Our extract, however, seems to be taken
uniformity.
from a lengthy
Sermons
treatise,
and was probably one
to Tat.
1
Lit. interweaving.
of the
EXCEKPT
OF
TO HORUS
ISIS
(Title in Patrizzi (p. 45) is "
Text: Stob., Flor.,
xiii.
Hermes from the [Sermon]
M.
i.
265
H.
iii.
XXI.
50,
of
From
Isis."
under the heading: " Of
Isis to Horus " ; G. i. 328
467.
Schow gives another heading, which Gaisford (in a note)
" Of Hermes from
is from the Vienna codex, namely
thinks
the Intercession (or Supplication,
Menard,
Livre IV., No.
ii.
of
Il/occr/^cias) of Isis."
"Fragments Divers,"
p.
272.)
refutation, when
King, carries the
it is
recognized,
man who
is
the desire of things he did not
refuted
know
greatest
towards
before.
COMMENT
This fragment
is
clearly
not in the style of the
"Sermon of Isis to Hermes" (Ex.
it is far more closely reminiscent of 0. H., xvi.
and is, therefore, probably from the Sermon of
excerpt from the
xxvii.)
or
xvii.,
Asclepius to the King.
1
R. (p. 134, n. 3) says simply that the last word (" Horus") is
missing in the Vindobonensis, and finds no difficulty in recognizing a type of literature in which King (Amnion) is a pupil of
Isis.
87
EXCEEPT
XXII.
[AN APOPHTHEGM]
(Text
Hermes on being
replied:
W.,
asked,
The Demiurge
most wise and
i.
What
of wholes,
everlasting.
88
34, 5.)
is
God?
Mind
the
EXCERPT
XXIII.
FROM " APHRODITE "
(Title in Patrizzi (p. 45) is "The Likeness of Children,"
by " From Aphrodite."
followed
Text:
Phys.,
Stob.,
Hermes from
'
xxxvi.
Aphrodite
'
208 ; W. i. 295, 296.
Menard, Livre IV., No.
2,
under
iii.
"Of
heading:
G. pp. 297, 298; M.
i.
207,
"Fragments Divers,"
of
p. 273.)
How,
[then,] are offspring born like to
their parents?
own]
[their
species
[Aphrodite.']
When
Or how
are
they returned 1 to
set
will
forth
mass
1
reason.
generation stores up seed from the ripe
3
blood being sweated forth,
that
the
somehow
4
there's
it
comes to pass
exhaled from the whole
of limbs a certain essence, following the
aTroSteoTcu,
referring,
presumably, to the idea of
metem-
psychosis.
2
Or
ia<t>e$povfjLevov.
families.
following
Pcedagog.,
*
Lit.
the
vi. 48.
body.
But W. has
emendation
of
Qa<f>povfjLvov
Usener,
(turned into foam),
on Clem. AL
based
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
90
law of a divine
though the
activity, as
man
him-
were being born; the same thing also in
self
the woman's case apparently takes place.
When,
then,
what floweth from the man hath
the ascendancy, and keeps
intact,
the young
one's brought to light resembling its sire
trary wise, in the same
con-
way, [resembling]
its
dam.
Moreover,
any
if
there should
part, [then] the
be ascendancy of
resemblance [of the young]
will favour that [especial] part.
But sometimes
also for long generations the
offspring favoureth the husband's form, because
his
decan has the greater influence 1 at that
[particular]
moment when
the wife conceives.
COMMENT
This fragment belongs to a type of Hermetic literature
which it is the sole surviving specimen. It is in
form identical with the Isis and Horus type but what
of
the
been
name
of the questioner of
is difficult to say.
1
\6yov.
Aphrodite could have
EXCEEPT XXIV.
HYMN OF THE
[A
GODS]
under the simple heading " Of
65; M. i. 45 ; W. i. 77. The same verses
are read in the appendix to the Anthologia Palatina, p.
(Text
Stob., Phys., v. 14,
Hermes"; G.
p.
768, n. 40.)
Seven Stars far varied in their course revolved
upon the [wide] Olympian plain; with them
for ever will Eternity
by
shines
spin [fate]
2
:
Mene that
gloomy Kronos, [and]
night, [and]
sweet Helios, and Paphie who's carried in the
shrine,
courageous Ares, fair-winged Hermes,
and Zeus the primal source 4 from
whom
Nature
doth come.
Now
1
they themselves have had the race of
Or Mon.
But the Anthology reads " Kal ro?<rtv ail Kavovi&rai "
iEon is for ever regulated or measured
by the Seven which seems to have no sense unless it means that
the Seven are the instruments, whereby Eternity is divided into
2
ivivfoercu.
that
is
to say, Eternity or
;
time.
3
That
is,
Venus, the image of
in a small shrine in processions.
91
whom
was, presumably, carried
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
92
men
entrusted
there
is
to
their
care
so
us
that in
a Mene, Zeus, an Ares, Paphie, a Kronos,
Helios and Hermes.
Wherefore we are divided up [so
from the
setherial spirit,
draw
as] to
tears, laughter, anger,
birth, reason, sleep, desire.
Tears
Kronos, birth
are
Zeus,
reason
[is]
Hermes, courage Mars, and Mene
sleep, in sooth,
and Cytherea
[is]
for
'tis
desire,
and Helios
laughter
because of him that justly every mortal
thinking thing doth laugh and the immortal
world.
COMMENT
This
the only
is
known specimen
to the Trismegistic tradition.
ever,
under
tion,
" vvfcricpavris"
of verses attributed
Liddell and Scott, how-
do not question this attribu-
while Clement
of
Alexandria (Strom.,
[this is a reference
of
Wachsmuth s which
verify]) praises the "
Hymns
On
of
is
ascribed to
p.
633
I cannot
the Gods " of Hermes.
the contrary, in Anthol. Palat.
seventh verse
vi.
Theon
p.
442, n. 491, the
of Alexandria.
Meaning the one element or ether simply.
EXCERPT XXV.
THE VIRGIN OF THE WORLD
in
(Title
Patrizzi
(p.
27b),
[I.]
the Latin translation,
in
"Minerva Mundi." 2
Text
Stob., Phys.,
xli.
44,
under heading
Greatest Hermes' Sacred Book
"
From Thrice'
The Virgin of the World "
G. pp. 395-419 M. i. 281-298; W. i. 385-407.
Menard, Livre III., No. i. of " Fragments of the Sacred
Book entitled 'The Virgin of the World/" pp. 177-200.)
*
I.
So speaking
sweet
the
Isis
doth pour forth for Horus
draught
(the
first)
of
deathless-
1
Or "Apple of the Eye of the World" see Commentary.
Referred to as K. K., i.e. K6pr) K6ff}xov.
2 Curiously enough, though the page-headings throughout have
"Minerva Mundi," the heading of p. 28 still stands "Pupilla
Mundi" showing that Patrizzi himself was puzzled how to
translate the Greek, and had prohahly in the first place translated
it throughout "Pupilla Mundi," or "Apple of the Eye of the
World."
In his Introduction
(p.
3),
however, Patrizzi writes
"
But there is extant also another [book of Hermes] with the title
of The Sacred Book/ which we found in Cyprus, in a monastery
called Enclistra, at the same time as the rest of the books, and
which John Stobseus has inserted in his Physical Eclogues
'
This would seem to suggest that
Sermon, and that its main title was
together with other fragments."
Patrizzi had seen the original
" The Sacred Book."
3
have numbered the paragraphs
93
for convenience of reference.
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
94
ness 1 which souls have custom to receive from
Gods, and
(logos)
thus
her holiest
begins
discourse
Seeing that. Son Horus, Heaven, adorned with
many
a wreath [of starry crowns],
every nature of
nowhere
it
o'er
set
things beneath, and that
[all]
lacketh aught of anything which the
whole cosmos now doth hold,
it
is
in
every
way
needs must be that every nature which
underneath, should be co-ordered and
by those that
lie
above
for things
lies
full-filled
below cannot
of course give order to the ordering above.
needs must, therefore, be the less should
It
give
place
to
the
The
mysteries.
greater
ordinance of the sublimer things transcends the
lower
'neath
it is
both sure in every way and
no
mortal's
thought.
f alleth
Wherefore the
[mysteries] below did sigh, fearing the wondrous
beauty and the everlasting durance of the ones
above.
'Twas worth the gazing
and the pains to
see
Heaven's beauty, beauty that seemed like God,
God
who was
yet unknown,
and the
rich
majesty of Night, who weaves her web with
3
rapid light, though
it
of the other mysteries
be less than Sun's, and
4
in turn that
move
in
Heaven, with ordered motions and with periods
1
rb irp&TOV apPpocrias.
Sc.
The weft and warp
of stars.
Or contemplation, Qteoplas.
The planetary spheres.
THE VIRGIN OF THE WORLD
of times, with certain hidden influences
95
*
bestow-
ing order on the things below and co-increasing
them.
2.
Thus
succeeded
fear
fear,
and searching
search incessant, and for so long as the Creator
of the universals willed, did ignorance retain its
grip
on
manifest
But when He judged
all.
Him who He
Gods the Loves, and
He had
which
fit
to
breathed into the
poured the splendour 2
within His heart, into their minds,
in ever greater
and
still
greater measure
that
they might have the wish to seek, next
firstly
they might yearn to
win success as
to
He
is,
freely
it
find,
and
finally
But
well.
this,
have power
my
Horus,
wonder-worthy son, could never have been done
had that seed 3 been subject to death, for that
as
yet had no existence, but only with a soul that
could vibrate responsive to the
mysteries
of
Heaven.
3.
Such was all-knowing Hermes, who saw
things,
and seeing understood, and understanding
had the power both
explanation.
stone
all
to
disclose
and to give
For what he knew, he graved on
yet though he graved them onto stone
he hid them mostly, keeping sure silence though
in speech, that every
1
cLTrSpoiai,
the
of
or emanations.
pure
Egyptian
younger age of cosmic time
Cf.
R. 16, n. 4, for the conflation
doctrine with astrological
emanation
considerations.
2
Radiance or
light.
Sc. the race of the
Gods.
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
96
might seek
for them.
And
thus, with charge
unto his kinsmen of the Gods to keep sure
watch, he mounted to the Stars.
To him succeeded
Tat,
who was
at once his
son and heir unto these knowledges
and not
long afterwards Asclepius-Imuth, according to
who is Hephaestus, 1 and
who were to make enquiry of the
the will of Ptah
rest
the
all
faithful
of heavenly contemplation, as Fore-
certitude
knowledge 2
willed,
Foreknowledge queen of
all.
Hermes, however, made explanation to sur-
4.
rounding [space], how that not even to his son
(because of the yet newness of his youth) had he
been able to hand on the Perfect Vision.
when
Sun did rise for me, and with all-seeing
gazed upon the hidden [mysteries] of
the
eyes I
that
But
New Dawn,
came
there
to
and contemplated them, slowly
me
but
it
was
sure
con-
viction that the sacred symbols of the cosmic
elements were hid away hard by the secrets of
Osiris.
5.
[Hermes], ere he returned to Heaven,
on them, and spake these words.
voked a
spell
(For
not meet,
'tis
in-
my
son, that I should leave
this proclamation ineffectual, but [rather] should
speak forth what words [our] Hermes uttered
1
'
For the restored text, see R. 122.
Or Providence, irpovoia.
3
The masculine is here used, the writer forgetting
moment that he had assumed the person of Isis.
for
the
THE VIRGIN OF THE WORLD
when he hid
said
Thus then he
books away.)
his
97
"
who have been made by my
holy books,
immortal hands, by incorruption's magic
.
from
free
.*
decay
throughout
remain and incorrupt from time
seeable, unfindable,
every one
for
spells,
eternity
Become unwhose
foot
shall tread the plains of this [our] land, until
Heaven doth bring
old
whom
for you,
meet instruments
forth
the Creator shall call souls."
Thus spake he
and, laying spells
on them
by means of his own works, he shuts them safe
away in their own zones. And long enough the
2
time has been since they were hid away.
And
6.
my
Nature,
was barren,
son,
till
they who then were under orders to patrol the
Heaven, approaching to the God of
all,
their
King, reported on the lethargy of things.
The
was
time was come for cosmos to awake, and this
no one's task but His alone.
"
We
pray Thee, then," they
said, " direct
Thy
thought to things which now exist and to what
things the future needs."
When
7.
said
The
they spake thus, God smiled and
" Nature, arise
text
is
"
And from His word
Meineke's emendation
here again hopeless.
which makes
Hermes smear the books with some magical ointment is ingenious, but hardly satisfactory, though Wachsmuth adopts it.
(Adnot.yip. cxxx.) hs
This
VOL.
is
III.
(pap/xdicq)
purely conjectural
xp'uras etwcpaTip
the text
is
utterly corrupt.
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
98
came
there
a marvel,
feminine,
possessed
Gods stood
perfect beauty, gazing at which the
And God
all-amazed.
name
be
the
of Nature, honoured
Fore-father,
her,
of
with
and bade her
prolific.
Then gazing
He
fixedly on the surrounding space,
spake these words as well
filled
with
all
things
" Let
Heaven be
Air,
and iEther
and
full,
God spake and it was so. And Nature
with herself communing knew she must not
disregard the Sire's command so with the help
of Toil she made a daughter fair, whom she did
call Invention.
And on her * God bestowed the
!
too "
gift of being,
and with His
them that had been
mysteries, and to
gift
He
set apart all
them with
Invention gave the power of
so-far
made,
filled
ruling them.
8.
But He, no longer
above should be
full
it
inert,
but thinking good to
fill
of breaths, so that its parts should not
remain immotive and
these
willing that the world
inert,
He
thus began on
with use of holy arts as proper for the
bringing forth of His
own
special work.
For taking breath from His own Breath and
blending this with knowing Fire, 3
them with
He mingled
certain other substances which have
Sc.
Invention.
Sc.
the breaths or
irvp voep6v
Later Platonists
spirits.
term in frequent use subsequently among the
cf. Porphyry, ap. Euseb., Prcep. Ev., XV. xi. 16
THE VIRGIN OF THE WORLD
no power to know
either with other
He
of power,
thoroughly
1
and having made the two
99
one, with certain hidden
thus set
all
words
the mixture going
until out of the compost smiled a
substance, as
it
were, far subtler, purer
and
far,
more translucent than the things from which
came
was so
it
could detect
And
9.
set
unto
clear that
it
no one but the Artist
it.
since it neither
it (for it
thawed when
was made of
Fire),
was
fire
nor yet did
when it had once been properly produced
it was made of Breath), but kept its mixture's
freeze
(for
composition a certain special kind, peculiar to
itself,
of special type and special blend,
composition, you must know,
chosis, after the
name and from
1
Sc.
is
called
more auspicious meaning
the similarity of
its
Psy-
of the
behaviour 2 )
knowing and unknowing primal elements.
the
P.S.A^vi.
2
The text
the writer
God
(which
is
Cf.
very involved and obscure, and the meaning of
by no means
clear.
Psychosis
(\|/*$xw<ns)
means
either
animation (quickening) or " making cold " (cf. ^x^> and ^vx<* w )
the name Psychosis is thus apparently supposed by the writer to
have some connection with the term eij/vxe ("freeze," or grow
cold), which he has just employed in his description of the behaviour of the mixture. In its less auspicious sense fyvx* meant
" grow cold " ; in its more auspicious meaning it signified
" breathe." But even so it must be said that the further reason
(viz.,
similarity of behaviour) given for the choice of the
Psychosis
is
the exact opposite of what
of the soul-stuffs nature
we
and
is
term
stated in the description
this is all the
more puzzling when
Origen and his predecessors that the soul
($vxh) was so-called precisely because it had grown cold and
fallen away from the Divine heat and life.
With the term cf.
the o-afidTaxns of Exx. viii. 5, vii. 2.
recall the theory of
100
it
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
was from
He
this coagulate
enough in myriads,
fashioned souls
moulding with order and
with measure the efflorescent product of the
mixture for what
He
willed,
with skilled experi-
ence and fitting reason, so that they should not
be compelled to
10.
differ
any way one from another.
you must know, the
For,
that exhaled out of the
was not
movement God
For that
like to itself.
escence was greater,
fuller,
than was
its
to the first,
And
its
but greater
every
its
induced,
first
flor-
way more
pure,
second was far second
far
than was
its
third.
thus the total number of degrees reached up
to sixty.
law,
second
efflorescence
He
In spite of
ordered
it
this, in
that
all
laying
down the
should be eternal, as
though from out one essence, the forms of which
Himself alone could bring to their completion.
11.
and reservations
1
He
Moreover,
Gf. Plato,
in the height of
Tim., 41
number
appointed for them limits
"
He
upper Nature, 4
divided the whole mixture into
and assigned each soul to a
So also Philo, who speaks of the souls as " equal in number
M. 642, P. 586 (Ri. iii. 244).
to the stars"De Bom., i. 22
2
" They [the souls] were not, however, pure as
Gf. Plato, ibid.
before, but diluted to the second and third degrees.
souls equal in
to the stars,
star."
See 56 below.
Of the Nature Above
Above"
(tt)s
of the "Gnostics."
&m> Strews)
Gf. also
cf.
the "Jerusalem
Tim., 41 D:
"And
having
them as in a chariot, he
showed them the nature of the universe, and declared to them
the laws of destiny, according to which their first birth should be
one and the same for all, no one should suffer a disadvantage at
they were to be sown in the instruments of time
his hands
there [that
is,
among the
stars]
placed
THE VIRGIN OF THE WORLD
that they might keep the cylinder
101
a- whirl in
proper order and economy and [thus] might
And so in that all-fairest
He summoned unto Him
please their Sire.
station of the iEther
the natures of
things that had as yet been
all
made, and spake these words
"0
ye
Souls,
of
fair
My solicitude, whom
Breath and
My own
children
Hands brought
My own
consecrate to
Mine own
have now with
to successful birth
and
world, give ear unto these
words of Mine as unto laws, and meddle not
with any other space but that which
for
you by
My
" For you,
for
ye keep steadfast, the Heaven,
have ordained
now they are
any way attempt
with virtue, shall stay as
you; but
if
ye
shall in
some innovation contrary to
you by
to
appointed
will.
if
with the star-order, and thrones
full-filled
is
My
My
decrees, I swear
most holy Breath, and by
mixture out of which
this
brought you into being,
and by these Hands of Mine which gave you
3
life, that I will speedily devise for you a bond
and punishments."
12.
And having
said these words, the God,
and to come forth the most religious of
nature was of two kinds, the superior
severally adapted to them,
animals; and as
race
human
would hereafter be
called man."
With
the last sentence, cf
also 12 below.
i
Gf.
P. 8. A., xix.
Gf.
Hermes-Prayer,
2
iii.
3,
and
note.
Gf.
31 below.
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
102
who
my
is
Lord, mixed the remaining cognate
elements (Water and Earth
together, and, as
*)
on them certain occult words,
before, invoking
words of great power though not so potent as
the
first,
He
them moving
set
and
rapidly,
breathed into the mixture power of
life
and
taking the coagulate (which like the other floated
when
to the top),
it
had been well steeped and
had become consistent,
He
modelled out of
those of the [sacred] animals
like
it
possessing forms
unto mens.
The mixtures' residue He gave unto those
souls that had gone in advance and had been
summoned
to the lands of Gods, to regions near
the Stars, and to the [choir of] holy daimones.
He
said
"My
13.
fashion
My
things
art hath
ye children of
sons,
!
Nature,
Take ye the residue of what
made, and
let
each fashion something
which
shall
These
will I further give to
He
My
bear resemblance to his
own
nature.
you as models."
took and set in order fair and
fine,
agree-
ably to the motions of the souls, the world of
sacred animals, appending as
resembling
men
those which
and on these types
1
We have had
of
it
lives
previous mention of
were to those
came next
He
in order,
did bestow
fire, (aether)
and
air,
the
psychosis heing the quintessence.
2
These are presumably the types of
symbolized by the zodiac.
life in
the upper world,
THE VIRGIN OF THE WORLD
the
103
and all-contriving pro-
all-devising powers
creative breath of all the things which were for
ever generally to be.
And He
the
withdrew, with promises to join unto
productions
visible
hands breath
of their
that cannot be seen, and essence of engendering
its
might give birth
like to each, so that they
And
to others like themselves.
no necessity to do aught
did at
than what they
first.
[And Horus asked
14.
else
these are under
What did the
And Isis said
:]
souls do, mother, then
Taking the blend of matter, Horus,
first
it,
son, they
looked at the Father's mixture and adored
and
tried to find out
whence
it
was composed
but this was not an easy thing for them to
know.
They then began
to fear lest they should fall
beneath the Father's wrath for trying to find out,
and so they
set to
work
to do
what they were
bid.
Thereon, out of the upper stuff which had
topmost layer superfluously
the race of birds
light,
its
they formed
while they were doing this
the mixture had become half-hardened, and by
this
time had
taken on a firm consistency
thereon they fashioned out the race of things
1
So Meineke
in
traditional " visible."
notes,
following
Cantor,
instead
of
the
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
104
which have four feet; [next they did fashion
forth] the race of fish
and needing
less light
a moist substance of a different kind to swim
and as the residue was of a cold and heavy
nature, from it the Souls devised the race of
in
creeping things.
They
15.
then,
my
son, as
though they had
done something grand, with over-busy daring
armed themselves, and acted contrary to the
commands they had received and forthwith they
;
began to overstep their proper limits and their
reservations,
same
place,
and would no longer stay in the
but were for ever moving, and
thought that being ever stationed in one place
was death.
That they would do
my
this thing, however,
son (as Hermes says when he speaks unto
me), had not escaped the
the
God and Lord
Eye
of universal
Him who is
things and He
of
searched out a punishment and bond, the which
they
now
in misery endure.
Thus was
that the Sovereign
it
resolved to fabricate with art the
in order that in
might be
16. "
spake
of all
frame,
the race of Souls throughout
it
chastised.
Then sending
'
King
human
Soul of
own Mind, 1 up
1
My
to
for
me/' Hermes says, "
He
and holy mind of
My
Soul,
what
point, the nature of the
Cf. Cyril, G. J.,
i.
15 (Frag. xvi.).
THE VIRGIN OF THE WORLD
things beneath, shall
be seen in gloom
it
and be destitute
Me
hither to
Heaven/
said
now,
God
And when
"
My
and
looked
in
saith.
understood
And when He
He, "upon the Earth,
said
And
beneath."
all
Hermes
Gods
they came obedient to His com-
mand, "Look down,"
and
Bring
praise?
of
son, all of the
as
How
now been made remain
long shall what has up to
inactive
105
they forthwith both
the
Sovereign's
human
spake to them on
behalf, they [all] agreed to furnish
will.
kind's
who
those
were to be, with whatsoever thing they each
could best provide.
17.
Sun
said
"
Moon promised
I'll
shine unto
to pour light
my
full."
upon the
after-
the-sun course, and said she had already given
birth to Fear,
Memory
Cronus
for
and
also Sleep,
and
them. 1
announced
himself
already
sire
of
and Necessity.
Zeus said
may
Silence,
thing that would turn out to be
most useful
Justice
and
" So that the race which
is
to be
not for ever fight, already for them have I
made Fortune, and Hope, and
Peace/'
Ares declared he had become already
sire of
Struggle, Wrath, and Strife.
Nor yet did Aphrodite hesitate she also said
" I'll join to them Desire, my Lord, and Bliss,
;
Of. Plat.
Grit, 108.
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
106
and Laughter
our kindred souls,
[too], so that
in working out their very grievous condemnation,
may
not exhaust their punishment unto the
full."
Full pleased were
all,
my
son, at Aphrodite's
words.
"And
my
for
part,"
said
Hermes, "I
will
make men's nature well endowed I will devote
to them Prudence and Wisdom, Persuasiveness
;
and Truth, and never
with
Invention,
mortal
life.
of
life
will I cease
but
ever
will
from congress
the
benefit
men born underneath my
types of
For that the types our Father and Creator
hath set apart for me, are types of wisdom and
and more than ever
intelligence,
what time the motion
[is
this
of the Stars set over
so]
them
doth have the natural power of each consonant
with
itself."
18.
And
God, the Master of the universe,
rejoiced on hearing this,
race of
" I,"
men
and ordered that the
should be.
Hermes
says, "
was seeking
which had to be employed, and
Monarch
for
His
aid.
for the stuff
calling
And He gave
on the
order to
the Souls to give the mixture's residue
taking
found
it I
it
and
utterly dried up.
" Thereon, in mixing
it,
used more water far
than was required to bring the matter back unto
1
Sc. " signs of
the zodiac," so-called.
THE VIRGIN OF THE WORLD
former
its
way
and weak and powerless,
might
it
moulded
it,
seeing mine
at
addition to
not, in
sagacity, be full of
" I
power as
and
it
own
was
did look on
it,
in order
natural
its
well.
fair
and
I rejoiced
work, and from below I
upon the Monarch
called
plasm was in every
state, so that the
relaxable,
that
107
and was
And He
to behold.
rejoiced,
and ordered that
the Souls should be enfleshed.
"
Then were they
first
plunged in deep gloom,
and, learning that they were condemned, began
to
wail.
was myself amazed at the
Souls'
utterances."
Now
19.
being
art
give good heed, son Horus, for thou
told
Kamephis, our
the
Mystic
forefather,
Spectacle
was
privileged
hear from Hermes, record- writer of
and
which
all
to
deeds,
from Kamephis, most ancient of [us]
when he did honour me with the Black
[Rite] that gives perfection
hear thou it now
all,
from
me
For when,
wondrous son of mighty fame,
they were about to be shut in their prisons, some
simply uttered wails and groans
self-same
liberty,
way
in
just the
as beasts that once have been at
when torn from
their accustomed haunts
they love so well, will be bad slaves, will fight
1
There
completed.
is
a lacuna in the text, which I have thus conjecturally
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
108
and make
their masters
serve, will
them.
and be in no agreement with
revolt,
nay more,
circumstance should
if
even do to death those that oppress
Others with louder outcry hissed like snakes
another one shrieked
shed
many
tears,
shrilly,
"
ere he spake
and, turning up and down
what things served him
20.
and
as eyes, he said
Heaven, thou source of our begetting,
Hands and holy Breath
iEther, Air,
ye most
our Monarch,
the Gods,
God
brilliant Stars, eyes of
Sun and Moon,
tireless light of
nurslings of our origin,
of
reft
from [you]
all
co-
we
suffer piteously.
"And
this the more, in
that from
spacious
realms of light, from out [thy] holy envelope
and wealthy dome, and from the blessed govern-
ment we shared with Gods, we shall be thus shut
down into these honourless and lowly quarters.
" What is the so unseemly thing we miser-
What [crime] deserves
How many sins await us
these punishments?
wretched ones? How many are the things we
ables
done?
have
have to do in
this our hopeless plight, necessities
to furnish for this watery frame that
dissolved
21.
1
is
so soon
" For that no longer shall our eyes behold
The reading
emended, so that
of this sentence
its
translation
is
has not yet been properly-
somewhat
conjectural.
THE VIRGIN OF THE WORLD
109
the souls of
God; when through such wateryspheres as these we see our own forefather Heaven
grown small and tiny, we shall dissolve in sighs,
nay, there'll be times we shall not see at all, 1
for sentence
hath been passed on us poor things
the gift of real sight hath not been given to us,
in that
it
hath not been permitted us to see with-
Windows they are, not eyes 2
" How wretchedly shall we endure to hear our
kindred breaths breathe in the air, when we no
longer shall be breathing with them
For
out the
light.
home, instead of this great world high in the
a heart's small mass awaits us.
Set
air,
Thou us
from bonds so base as these to which we
free
have sunk down, and end our grief
"
Lord, and Father, and our Maker,
if
so
it
be Thou hast thus quickly grown indifferent
unto the works of Thine own Hands, appoint for
us some limits
deem us worthy of some
words, though they be few, while yet we can see
!
Still
through the whole world-order bright on every
side
Thus
22.
speaking,
gained their request
Horus,
for
son,
that
the
the
Souls
Monarch
came, and sitting on the Throne of Truth made
answer to their prayers.
An Orphic verse has here crept into the, text from the margin.
runs "By light it is we see ; by eyes we naught behold."
Fragm. Monad., x., p. 504, Herm.
2
Gf. Plat., Men., 76 ; Seneca, Qucest. Nat, iv. 9.
1
It
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
110
"
Souls,
lords,
Me
all.
Know,
My unageing
free of sin,
all
you who are
of
ye shall dwell in the
of
under
set
long as ye keep you
rule, that as
some cause
if
be your
shall
they who are lords and marshals after
of
but
Love and Necessity
blame
for
fields of
Heaven
aught attach
itself
to you, ye shall dwell in the place that Destiny
condemned
allots,
"
be
If,
wombs.
to mortal
then, the things imputed to your charge
slight, leaving
the
bond of
subject to death, ye shall again
[father]
shall
frames
fleshly
embrace your
Heaven, and sigh no more; but
commit some greater
sins,
if
ye
and with the
end appointed of your frames be not advanced,
no longer
ye dwell in Heaven, nor even in
shall
the bodies of mankind, but shall continue after
that to wander round in lives irrational."
1
Gf.
Tim. 42 a
by necessity
2
Gf.
" When they should be implanted in bodies
and love."
sensation
they should have
:
Frag, xxiii.
3
"He who lived well during his appointed
Gf. Tim., 42 B
time was to return and dwell in his native star, and there he
would have a blessed and congenial existence. But if he failed
in attaining this, at the second birth, he would pass into a woman,
and if, when in that state of being, he did not desist from evil, he
would be continually changed into some brute who resembled
him in the evil nature which he had acquired, and would not
cease from his toils and transformations until he followed the
revolution of the * same and the like within him, and overcame
:
'
'
by the help of reason the turbulent and irrational mob of later
accretions, made up of fire and air and water and earth, and returned to the form of his first and better state." Notice the
omission of any reference to the inferior status of woman in the
Egyptian tradition.
THE VIRGIN OF THE WORLD
111
Thus speaking, Horus mine, He gave
23.
to
the gift of breath, and thus continued
all
"It
is
not without purpose or by chance
have laid down the law of your transformings 2
but as
[it will
be] for the worse
unseemly, so for the better,
if
ye shall
if
ye do aught
will
what's worthy of your birth.
" For
and no one
I,
else, will
Know,
and the Watcher.
then,
be the Witness
it is
for
what ye
have done heretofore, ye do endure this being
shut in bodies as a punishment.
"
The
difference in your rebirths, accordingly,
for you, shall
be as
and their
bodies,
have
[final]
said, a difference of
dissolution
[shall
be]
a benefit and a [return to] the fair happiness of
former days.
" But
if
ye think to do aught
of Me, your
mind
think the contrary [of what
punishment
the
unworthy
else
shall lose its sight so as to
for
benefit
is
;
true],
the
and take
change
to
better things for infamous despite.
"
But the more righteous of you, who stand
upon the threshold of the change to the diviner
state, shall
among men be
genuine philosophers,
lawgivers,
Lit.
and
"their spirits"
Reading
founders
real seers,
their bodies.
jueratfoAci*.
righteous kings, and
which
of
states,
and
and true herb-knowers,
apparently link the souls with
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
112
and prophets of the Gods most
excellent, skilful
musicians, skilled astronomers, and augurs wise,
consummate sacrificers, as many
worthy of things fair and good.
"Among
24.
winged
you
of
as are
[they shall be]
tribes
away their kind
nor feed on them nay more, when they are by,
no other weaker beast will be allowed by them to
suffer wrong, for what will be the eagles' nature
eagles, for these will neither scare
;
is
too just [to suffer
"Among
four-footed
of strength
lions,
life
measure
it].
practising
needs
the
things [they will be]
no
and of a kind which
exercises
they nor weary grow nor
"
And among
dragons, in
in
sleep,
of immortal
sleep.
in
mortal body
life
for
creeping things [they will be]
that this
animal
have great
will
strength and live for long, will do no harm, and
in a
way be
tamed
it will
its skin,
friends with
man, and
let itself
be
possess no poison and will cast
as is the nature of the Gods.
Manetho, cited in the Orthography of Chceroboscus (Cramer,
iElian, H. A., v. 39, who follows Apion ;
ii. 235, 32
R. 145, n. 3). But indeed this queer belief is a commonplace of
the Mediaeval Bestiaries, which all go back to their second
century Alexandrian prototype, the famous Physiologus, which
was doubtless in part based on Aristotle's History of Animals and
1
Cf.
Anecd. Ox.,
Pliny's Natural History.
2
ida-ei 5e koi
The reading is corrupt. But if we read
we have in the writer's ornate and somewhat
ynpdaav.
yrjpas for ynpdffav,
strained style eav yrjpas for the usual yrjpas e/c5iWv found in
Aristotle (J9T. V., 5. 7. 10 ; 8. 17. 11) for the changing of a serpent's
THE VIRGIN OF THE WORLD
"
Among
dolphins
who
into
fall
swim [they will be]
take pity upon those
the things that
for dolphins will
113
and
the sea,
they are
if
breathing bear them to the land, while
dead they
if
still
they're
not ever even touch them, though
will
they will be the most voracious tribe that in the
water dwells."
Thus speaking God became imperishable
25.
Mind. 1
Thereon, son Horus, from the Earth
uprose a very Mighty Spirit which no mass of
body could
his
contain,
whose strength consisted in
And though
intellect.
he knew
the things on which he questioned
man was
with which
type, a
body
much and
fair
of
full
and
full well
the
body
clothed according to his
dignified, yet savage over-
fearimmediately he saw the
souls were entering the plasms, he cried out
"
What
Hermes, Writer of
are these called,
the Records of the Gods
And when
he said, "it
he answered "
Men
"
" Hermes,"
a daring work, this making man,
is
with eyes inquisitive, and talkative of tongue,
with power henceforth to hear things even which
skin.
The phrase "as
is
the nature of the Gods"
explained as referring to the parallel between
may then
the
be
anciently
supposed rejuvenescence of the serpent and the perpetual growing
young of the Gods.
1
" This when he'd said, the Shepherd mingled
Of. G. H., i. 27
" When the Creator had
with the powers." Of. Tim., 42 e
made all these ordinances He remained in His own accustomed
:
nature."
VOL.
III.
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
114
are
no concern of
will use to its full his
who
dainty of smell,
his,
power of touch on every
thing.
"
Hast thou,
him
leave
his generator,
from
free
judged
who
care,
good to
it
in
the future
daringly will gaze upon the fairest mysteries
Wouldst thou leave him
which Nature hath?
without a
make
who
grief,
in the days to
come
his thoughts reach unto mysteries
will
beyond
the Earth?
26.
"
Men
will dig
up the
will find out their juices'
observe
the
roots of plants,
and
Men
Men
will
qualities.
nature of the stones.
dissect not only animals irrational, but
themselves,
dissect
they were made.
desiring
They
will
to
find
stretch
they'll
how
out
out their
daring hands e'en to the sea, and cutting
grown
forests
down
to lands beyond.
will ferry
[Men]
may
and
tread,
self-
one another
o'er
will seek out as well
the inner nature of the holy spaces
foot
will
will chase after
which no
them
into
the height, desiring to observe the nature of the
motion of the Heaven.
" These are yet moderate things [which they
will do].
For nothing more remains than Earth's
remotest realms
nay, in their daring they will
track out Night, the farthest Night of
27.
"
Naught have
all.
they, then, to stop
them
from receiving their initiation in the good of
THE VIRGIN OF THE WORLD
freedom from
all
pain, and, unconstrained
terror's grievous goads,
life free
from
"Then
115
from living softly out a
all care.
will
they not gird on the armour of
an over-busy daring up to Heaven
Will they
not, then, reach out their souls freed
from
care unto the [primal] elements themselves
" Teach
by
them henceforth
all
to long to plan out
something, where they have as well to fear the
danger of
its ill-success,
in order that they
may
be tamed by the sharp tooth of pain in failure
of their hopes.
"Let the too busy nature of their souls be
balanced by desires, and fears, and griefs, and
empty hopes.
"Let
in
loves
quick succession sway their
souls, hopes, manifold desires, sometimes
and sometimes
their success
direr
unfulfilled, that the
may draw them
sweet bait of
into struggle
amid
ills.
" Let fever lay
losing heart they
28.
fulfilled,
Thou
its
heavy hand on them, that
may submit desire to discipline."
grievest, dost thou, Horus, son, to
hear thy mother put these things in words?
Art thou not struck with wonder, art thou not
terror-struck at
oppressed
When Momos
pleased, for
how poor man was
Hear what
is
sadder
grievously
still
said these things
Hermes was
what he said was said out of
affection
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
116
for
him
and so he did
speaking thus
"Momos,
all
that he recommended,
the Nature of the Breath Divine which
doth surround
The Master
[all
things] shall not become inert.
universe
of the
appointed
me
as
steward and as manager.
" Wherefore the overseer of His
be the keen-eyed Goddess of the
and
mysterious,
cannot
err,
devise
skilfully
will
command
all,
an
possessed of power
will
Adrasteia *
instrument,
sight that
of
and cannot be escaped, whereto
all
things on earth shall of necessity be subject,
from birth to
dissolution,
final
which binds together
strument shall rule
all
all that's
an
instrument
This in-
done.
other things on Earth as
well [as man]."
29.
These words, said Hermes, did
speak to
Momos, and forthwith the instrument was
set
a-going.
When
this
was done, and when the souls had
entered in the bodies, and [Hermes] had himself
been praised for what
was
done,
again
the
Monarch did convoke the Gods in session. The
Gods assembled, and once more did He make
proclamation, saying
"Ye
Gods,
all
ye who have been made of
chiefest Nature, free
from
all
decay,
who have
1
Nemesis, the karmic deity, " she from whom none can escape,
according to the generally accepted derivation of the name.
THE VIRGIN OF THE WORLD
117
received as your appointed lot for ever more to
whom
order out the mighty iEon, through
universal
things
never weary grow
will
all
sur-
rendering themselves in turn the one to other,
how
we be
long shall
rulers of this sovereignty
can ever know?
that none
How
things, shall they transcend the
long these
power of sight
Sun and Moon ?
of
" Let each of us bring forth according to his
Let us by our own energy wipe out
power.
this inert state of things
myth
let
chaos seem to be
incredible to future days.
mighty work
He
30.
and
spake
myself will
Set hand to
first
begin."
straightway in cosmic order
there began the differentiation of the up-to-then
And Heaven
black unity [of things].
forth above tricked out with
Earth,
still
a-tremble, as the
all his
shone
mysteries;
Sun shone
grew harder, and appeared with
forth
the
fair
adornments that bedeck her round on every
side.
all
For beautiful to God are even things which men
think mean, in that in truth they have been
made
to serve the laws of God.
And God
a- moving
as
much
rejoiced
and
when now He saw His works
filling full
His Hands, which held
as all surrounding space, with all that
Nature had produced, and squeezing tight the
handf uls mightily,
"
Take
[these],
He
said
holy Earth, take those,
all-
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
118
honoured one, who
31.
be the mother of
and henceforth lack thou naught
things,
Hands
art to
God spake, and opening His Hands, such
as God should have, He poured them all
into the composition of the world.
the beginnings were
for that the Souls as
enduring their
unknown
And
way;
in every
newly shut in
disgrace,
they in
began
prison, not
to
strive
emulation with the Gods in Heaven, in
command
of their high birth,
back, in that they had the
began to make them
themselves
among
set
in
in
full
and when held
same Creator, made
and using weaker men
revolt,
range
all
"
as
instruments,
upon each
other,
and
and make war
conflict,
themselves.
Thus strength did mightily prevail o'er weakness, so that the strong did burn and massacre
the weak, and from the holy places
cast the living
until
shrines,
down they
and the dead down from the holy
the
resolved to go to
Elements in their
God
their
Monarch
plain] about the savage state in which
distress
[to
men
comlived.
now being very great, the Elements
approached the God who made them, and
The
evil
formulated their complaint in some such words
as these
32. It
was moreover Fire who
He said
authority to speak.
"
Lord, Artificer of this
first
received
new World, thou
THE VIRGIN OF THE WORLD
Name
among
mysterious
now revered by
"
ing
Thee;
peace
God ?
the savagery of
initiate
give laws to
with
fill
fair
to
right to leave the life of
it
Show now Thyself unto Thy World
1
up
the Gods, and
mankind, how long hast Thou,
all
Daimon, judged
mortals without
119
hopes
life
life
with
to right give oracles
things
all
consult-
and
let
men
the vengeance of the Gods, and none will
fear
sin.
" Should they receive due retribution for their
they will refrain henceforth from doing
sins,
wrong
they will respect their oaths, and no
one any more will ponder
" Let
them be taught
benefits received, that
do service in the
sacrilege.
to render thanks for
the Fire,
I,
sacrificial rites,
may
joyfully
that they
may
from the altar send sweet-smelling vapours forth.
"
For up to now
am
polluted,
the godless daring of these
burn up
1
They
flesh.
was brought
all
indecency
33.
And
"I
also,
forth
my
will
and by
but they adulterate with
undecaying
Air too said
Master,
am compelled to
let me be for what
men
not
Lord
state."
am made
turbid
by the
vapours which the bodies of the dead exhale,
and
am
health,
pestilential, and,
gaze
no longer
filled
down from above on
ought not to behold."
1
Sc. as supplicants
consulting an oracle.
with
things
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
120
Next
received
said
my
Water,
authority to
son
mighty
of
soul,
and spake and
speak,
"
wonderful Creator of
Father,
Daimon
and
self-born,
Nature's
through Thee doth conceive
this last,
command
all
all
things,
who
now at
Maker,
things,
the rivers' streams for ever to
be pure, for that the rivers and the seas or
wash the murderers' hands or
else receive the
murdered."
34.
After came Earth
taking up the
"
bitter
grief,
and
son of high renown, thus
tale,
she began to speak
in
sovereign Lord, Chief of the Heavenly
1
Ones, and Master of the Wheels, Thou Ruler of
us Elements,
Thee, from
Sire of
whom
is
things have the beginning
and of their
of their increase
whom
all
them who stand beside
decrease,
and into
they cease again and have the end that
their
due according to Necessity's decree,
greatly honoured One, the godless rout of
doth dance upon
"I hold
all
things
in
;
my
my
for
embrace as well the nature of
I,
as
not only bear them
Thou
all,
didst give
but
I receive
when they're killed. But now am
The world upon the Earth though
command,
them also
dishonoured.
filled
things [else] hath not a God.
1
Or
disks,
men
bosom.
presumably the world -wheels.
with
all
THE VIRGIN OF THE WORLD
" For having
thing,
they
the
and from
fall
of
I,
fear they sin in every-
my heights,
by every
juices
Hence am
naught to
Lord,
And
evil art.
their
121
I'm
down
[dead]
soaking with
all
corrupt.
Lord, compelled to hold in
me those
With
of no worth.
carcases
all I
bear I would hold
God
as well.
"
Bestow on Earth,
if
not Thyself, for
could
not contain Thee, yet some holy Emanation
Make Thou
Thyself.
of
the Earth more honoured
than the rest of Elements
for it is right that
she should boast of gifts from Thee, in that she
giveth
35.
all."
Thus spake the Elements
filling all
and God,
full-
things with the sound of His [most]
holy Voice, spake thus
"Depart, ye Holy Ones, ye Children worthy
of a
mighty
Sire,
nor yet in any way attempt to
innovate, nor leave the whole of [this]
without your active
My World
service.
"For now another Efflux of My Nature is
among you, and he shall be a pious supervisor
of
all
deeds
judge
incorruptible of living
and monarch absolute of those beneath the
men
earth,
not only striking terror [into them] but taking
vengeance on them.
And by
his class of birth
the fate he hath deserved shall follow every man."
And
so the
Elements did cease from their com-
THRICE- GREATEST HERMES
122
upon the Masters
plaint,
their peace
and each of them continued
exercise of his authority
And Horus
36.
How
was
it,
God's Efflux
and in
thereon said
in the
his rule.
:
mother, then, that Earth received
And Isis said
I may not tell
is
and they held
order,
the story of [this] birth
for it
not permitted to describe the origin of thy
Horus, [son] of mighty power, lest
descent,
afterwards the way-of-birth of the immortal Gods
should be
God
known unto men,
the Monarch, the
except
Orderer and
universal
Architect, sent for a little while thy
Osiris,
and the mightiest Goddess
might help the world,
Tis they who
who caused
of men to
and
Gods
that they
needed them.
life.
'Tis
they
they
who hallowed
their ancestors
they who gave to
'Tis
and spots
men
laws,
shelter.
they who
know the
'Tis
cease.
for holy rites.
'Tis
sire
the savagery of mutual slaughtering
precincts to the
food,
of
mighty
Isis,
for all things
filled life full
so far that
will,
secrets of
separation
Hermes, learn to
my records all, and
them
of
says
and some they
will
make
will
keep
for themselves, while those that are best suited
for the benefit of mortal
on tablet and on
1
men, they
will
obelisk.
Of. C.
.,
xiii. (xiv.)
3 (Com.).
engrave
THE VIRGIN OF THE WORLD
of law
fair
who were
they
'Tis
and
filled
'Tis
rule.
123
up courts
the world with justice and
the
to set
first
they who were the authors of
good pledges and of
faith,
and brought the
mighty witness of an oath into men's
they who taught
'Tis
who
those
'Tis
ceased to
men how
live, as
lives.
wrap up
to
they should
be.
they who searched into the cruelty of
death, and learned that though the spirit which
goes out longs to return into men's bodies, yet
it
ever
fail
to have the
if
power of getting back
again, then loss of life results.
Tis they who learned from Hermes that
rounding space was
filled
sur-
with daimons, and
graved on hidden stones [the hidden teaching].
'Tis
they alone who, taught by Hermes in
God's hidden codes, became the authors of the
arts,
and
practise,
'Tis
and
sciences,
and givers of
all
pursuits which
their laws.
they who, taught by Hermes that the
things below have been disposed by
in
men do
sympathy
God
to be
with things above, established on
the earth the sacred rites o'er which the mysteries
in
Heaven
'Tis
preside.
they who, knowing the destructibility of
[mortal] frames, devised the grade of prophets,
in all things perfected, in order that
who
stretched forth his hands
1
Sc.
mummification.
no prophet
unto the Gods,
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
124
should be in ignorance of anything, that magic
and philosophy should feed the
preserve the body
And
38.
when
it
having done
soul,
and medicine
suffered pain.
my
all this,
son, Osiris
and myself perceiving that the world was [now]
quite
full,
were thereupon demanded back by
who dwell in Heaven, but could not go
above till we had made appeal unto the Monarch,
those
that surrounding space might with this know-
ledge of the soul x be filled as well, and
selves succeed in
[to
Him].
we
our-
making our ascent acceptable
For that God doth in hymns
rejoice.
Horus
Ay, mother,
said.
On me
as
bestow the knowledge of this hymn, that
well
may
not remain in ignorance.
And
Isis said
Give
ea,r,
son
Oewpla, contemplative science, face to face
The Commentary
2
!
knowledge.
begins at the end of the following excerpt.
EXCEKPT XXVI.
THE VIRGIN OF THE WORLD
[II.]
(Patrizzi (p. 32b) runs this on to the last without a break.
Text: Stob., Phys., xli. 45, under heading: "In the
Same"; G. pp. 420-427; M. i. 299-304; W. i. 407-414.
Menard ; Livre III., No. ii. of " Fragment," etc. r as above,
pp. 201-208.)
Now
39.
if
know aught
soul,
And Horus
I
thou wouldst,
beside, ask on
said
mother of great honour,
would know how royal
And Isis said
son of mighty
souls are born
Son Horus, the distinction which
marks out the royal
souls
is
somewhat of
this
kind.
Four regions are there
fall
in the universe
which
beneath a law and leadership which cannot
be transgressed
Heaven,
and the iEther, and
the Air, and the most holy Earth.
Above
in
whom with
all;
and
Heaven, son, the Gods do dwell,
all
o'er
the rest doth rule the Architect of
in the iEther [dwell] the Stars, o'er
whom
the mighty Light- giver the Sun holds sway
125
but
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
126
whom
in the Air [live] only souls/ o'er
doth
and on the Earth [do dwell] men
rule the
Moon
and the
rest of living things, o'er
whom
he who
doth happen to be king holds sway.
The Gods engender,
40.
son, the kings it has
deserved, to rule [the race] that lives on Earth.
The
rulers are the emanations of the king,
whom
rest
the
the nearer to him
for that the Sun, in that
Moon
whom
the
to God,
far
is
Moon comes
of
more royal than the
is
'tis
nearer than
more vast and potent, to
second both in rank and
power.
The
king, then,
Gods, but
first
the Earth, he
of
is
the last of
is
men and
;
all
the other
so long as he
is
upon
divorced from his true godship,
but hath something that doth distinguish him
from men and which
The
is
soul which
is
is
like to
sent
from that space which
whence [the
God.
down
to dwell in him,
above those regions
is
souls] descend to other
men.
Down
from that space the souls are sent to rule for
those two reasons, son.
41.
They who have run a
noble, blameless race
throughout the cycle of their
lives,
and
are about
to be changed into Gods, [are born as kings,] in
order that
by
exercise of kingship they
may train
themselves to use the power the Gods enjoy;
while certain souls
1
MS.
who
are already Gods, but
A adds " of daimones."
THE VIRGIN OF THE WORLD
127
have in some slight way infringed the rule of
life
which God inspired, are born as kings, in order
may
that they
not, in being clothed in bodies,
undergo the punishment of
of dignity as
loss
may
well as nature, and that they
they are enfleshed, have the same
not,
when
lot as other
men, but have when bound what they enjoyed
when
free.
42.
The
differences
which
however, in the
are,
shown by those who play the part
dispositions
of kings, are not determined
their souls, for these are all
by distinguishing
divine, but by the
constitution of the angels and the daimons
attend on them.
descending
for
such purposes do not come
without a guard and escort
knows how
e'en
to give to each
for Justice
what
though they be made
country ever
When,
who
For that such souls as these
is its
down
up above
due estate
from their
exiles
fair.
then,
my
the
son,
angels
and the
daimons who bring down the soul are of a warlike
kind,
it
has to keep firm hold of their
proclivities, forgetting its
all
own proper
deeds, but
the more remembering the doings of the other
host attached to
When
they are peaceful, then the soul as well
doth order
When
the right.
it.
its
own
they love
course in peace.
justice,
then
it
too defends
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
128
When they are music-lovers, then it also sings.
And when they are truth-lovers, then it also
doth philosophize.
For as
were out of necessity these souls keep
it
a firm hold of the proclivities of those that bring
them here
own
forgetting their
estate,
farther they depart from
memory
in
down
to man's
nature,
and the
for they are falling
the
the more they have
it,
disposition
of
those [powers]
which shut them [into bodies].
Well hast thou, mother,
43.
But noble
Horus.
thou hast not told
souls,
me
all
how
is
it
in the
For they have regions whence
case of souls.
and that which
there are states
one from other, so also
differ
they start
they are born,
yet.
As on the Earth, son Horus,
which
explained, said
starts
from a more
glorious place, hath nobler birth than one which
doth not
so.
For just as among men the
that
a ruling nature
so
thought more noble than the slave
is
which
is
superior in souls and of
what
of necessity subjects
son,
^
-V-
44.
free
(for
is inferior)
also,
.*
And how
&.
4fc
are
-^r
-K-
male
and
^d.
female
souls
produced ?
Souls, Horus, son, are of the self-same nature
1
of
A lacuna,
some
unfortunately, here occurs in the text, and must be
extent, for the
way
of
both
of these souls is not given.
THE VIRGIN OF THE WORLD
129
in themselves, in that they are from one
and the
same place where the Creator modelled them;
nor male nor female are they.
Sex
is
a thing
of bodies, not of souls.
That which brings
are
about that some of them
some more
stouter,
delicate,
"air" in which
[cosmic]
"Air"
it
the soul
for
which envelopes
it,
son, that
is,
things are made.
all
nothing but the body
is
an element which
of earth and water, air and
fire.
is
composed
As, then, the composition of the female ones
has more of wet and cold, but less of dry and
warm, accordingly the soul which
plasm of
this kind,
is
shut in a
becomes relaxed and
just as the contrary
delicate,
found to be in case of
is
males.
For in their case
and
less of cold
there's
and wet
more of dry and warm,
wherefore the souls in
bodies such as these are sturdy and more active.
And how do
45.
souls
become
intelligent,
mother mine?
And
Isis
answered
The organ
of the sight,
When
in wrappings.
the eye
then
is
soul.
is
dim
For
it
swathed
but when they're thin and
So
is it
light,
also for the
as well has envelopes incorporal
it,
just as
1
III.
son, is
these are dense and thick,
the sight most keen.
appropriate to
VOL.
my
Of.
it
is itself
incorporal.
45 below.
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
130
These envelopes are "airs" which are in
When
is
these are light and thin and clear, then
the soul intelligent
when they
[the
us.
as
soul],
distance
bad
in
but, on
the contrary,
and thick and turbid, then
are dense
weather,
but only things which
not
at
about
its
sees
lie
feet.
46. And Horus said
What is the reason,
mother, that the
men
outside our holiest land are not so wise of
mind
as our compatriots
And
Isis said
The Earth
lies in
upon her back,
the middle of the universe
like to a
human
being, with eyes
turned up to heaven, and portioned out into as
many
regions as there are limbs in man.
She turns her eyes to Heaven as though to her
own
Sire,
that with his changes she
may
also
bring about her own.
She hath her head
right
set
to the
shoulder to south-east,
south-west
beneath
south of
left
all,
shoulder to
her feet below the Bear, right foot
under
its tail, left
its
head
her thighs
beneath those that succeed the Bear
her waist
beneath the middle [Stars].
47.
A sign of this is that men in the south, who
dwell upon her head, are fine about the head
and have good
hair.
1
Of.
P. 8. A., xxiv.
1.
THE VIRGIN OF THE WORLD
131
Those in the east are ready for a fight and
archer folk
for this pertains to the right hand.
Those in the west are steadier and for the most
part fight with the left hand, and what
by others with the
attribute to the
they for their part
right,
left.
Those underneath the Bear excel in
have especially good
they
backs.
all
them a
after
about the zone which
Greece,
feet
and
legs.
who come
Those
done
is
way,
little
our present Italy and
is
have well-made
thighs
and
Moreover,
all
these
[northern]
whiter than the rest bear whiter
parts
men upon
being
them.
But
since the holiest land of our forebears
lies in
the midst of Earth, and that the midst
of a man's
body serves
as the precinct of the
heart alone, and heart's the spot from which the
soul doth start, the
less
men
of
the other things which
not only have no
it
all
the rest possess,
but as a special thing are gifted with intelligence
beyond
all
men and
filled
with wisdom, in that
they are begotten and brought up above her
heart.
48. Further,
my
son,
the south
together from the atmosphere
1
Something has evidently
nowhere completed.
being the
mass themselves
receiver of the clouds which
1
.
fallen out here, as the sentence is
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
132
For instance,
it is
just because there
concentration of them in the south, that
said our river doth flow thence,
this
is
it
is
upon the break-
ing up of the frost there.
For whensoe'er a cloud 1 descends,
the air about
ward
it
into mist,
and sends
it
down-
it
and fog or mist
in a kind of fog;
impediment not only to the
turns
is
an
eyes, but also to
the mind.
Whereas the
that
'tis
east,
Horus, great in glory, in
thrown into confusion and made over-
hot by the continual risings of the sun, and in
like fashion too, the west, its opposite, in that it
suffers the
afford the
clear
same things through
men
born
observation.
in
its
descents,
them no conditions
And
for
Boreas with his con-
cordant cold, together with their bodies doth
congeal the minds of
men
Whereas the centre of
as well.
all
these being pure
and undisturbed, foreknows both for itself and
For, free from trouble, ever
all that are in it.
brings forth, adorns and educates, and
it
only
with such weapons wars [on men], and wins the
victory,
and with consummate
skill, like
a good
Reading ve<pe\n for verity. The text is very faulty.
These ideas of course spring from the conception of a fiat
earth and moving sun. The sun was thus thought to be nearer
the earth at its rising and setting, and consequently those at the
extremes of east and west were thought to be in danger of being
burnt up by its heat.
1
THE VIRGIN OF THE WORLD
satrap,
bestows the fruit of
its
own
133
victory
upon
the vanquished.
49. This too expound,
For what cause
is
mother mine
lady,
when men
that
it
alive in long disease, their rational part
and
very reason
becomes disabled
And
Of
Isis
things,
friends with
with
air,
at
their
times
my
son,
some are made
and some with
fire,
and some with
two or three of
soul
answer made
living
very
their
keep
still
these,
earth,
water,
some
and some with
and some with
all.
And, on the contrary, again some are made
enemies of
earth,
and some of water, some of
fire,
and some of
and some of
three,
air,
and some of two of them,
and some of
all.
For instance, son, the locust and
fire
the eagle and the
hawk and
all
all flies flee
high-flying
birds flee water; fish, air and earth; the snake
avoids the open
air.
Whereas snakes and
creeping things love earth
[love] water
fire
Not that some
fire;
for
air,
of which they
and have
higher
still
their habitat near
it.
of the animals as well do not love
instance
salamanders, for they
it.
It is because
even
one or
historical allusion may perhaps be suspected in this
but I can find nothing appropriate to suggest.
Some
;
swimming things
while those that fly
have their homes in
term
all
winged things,
are the citizens
[love] the
all
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
134
another of the elements doth form their bodies
outer envelope.
Each
50.
body
is
soul, accordingly, while it is in its
weighted and constricted by these
Moreover
natural
it is
be pleased
also should
it
four.
with some of them and pained with others.
For
height of
nature,
its
e'en
struggles and
as it
doth not reach the
this cause, then, it
prosperity
still,
it
it
is
divine
by
it
though not such thoughts
thinks,
would think were
bound
as
while [wrapped up] in them,
it
set free
from being
are
swept with
in bodies.
Moreover
storm and
the soul
if
itself
[frames]
these
stress,
or of disease or fear, then
on the waves,
tossed
as
is
man 1
upon the deep with nothing steady under him.
COMMENTARY
ARGUMENT
1.
The
" Virgin of the
World
" is a sacred
sermon
of
initiation into the Hermes-lore, the first initiation, in
which the tradition
wisdom
of the
is
handed on by the
The
hierophant to the neophyte, by word of mouth.
instructor, or revealer,
Sophia, and
is
the representative of Isis-
speaks in her name, pouring forth for her
beloved son, the new-born Horus, the
1
For
&v9p(oiros
Meineke reads
But
I see
no necessity
draught of
ayOepiKos ("asphodel"),
pares Callimachus, H. in Del., 193
&s.
first
and com-
ira\ippoir) 4irwfix* Tal avdepiKos
for this strained " emendation."
THE VIRGIN OF THE WORLD
immortality, which
mortal cup
him from
is
to purge
of forgetfulness
135
away the poison
of the
and ignorance, and so
raise
the " dead."
This pouring-forth explains that the divine economy
is
perfect order, mystery transcending mystery,
state of being,
and each
being, a
each
mystery to those below
that state.
This order no mortal intellect can ever grasp
in the far-off ages,
when
as yet there
nay,
were no men, but
only Gods, those essences that
know no
creation of the World-creator,
even these Gods, these
death, the first
mysteries to us, were in amazement at the glories of
Heaven with
Even these Gods
the greater mysteries which decked the
their unveiled transcendent beauty.
did not
know God
as yet.
The Gods were immortal, but unknowing; they
were intoxicated with Heaven's beauty, amazed, nay
2.
awestruck, at the splendour of the mysteries of Heaven.
Then came there
over all;
He
their hearts
With
forth another outpouring of the Father
poured the Splendour
and they began
this
to
representation
of
His Mind into
know. 1
is
blended a mythical
which suggests that all this was
an " earth " on which our humanity
historical tradition
brought about for
had not
as yet appeared, in far-off distant days
when
apparently our earth was not as now, ages ago, the
purest Golden
Age when
there were Gods, not men.
In
that race of Gods, those of them in whom the ray was
no low-burning spark, but a divine flame, were the
instructors in the heavenly wisdom.
3. Of these was Hermes, a race or " being " rather
1
The arising of the knowledge of God among the Gods, and
the gradual descent of this knowledge down to man, reminds us
somewhat of the method of the descent of the " Gospel " in the
system of Basilides.
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
136
than an individual
of their
these
"
Sons
of Fire " left the record
wisdom engraved on "stone"
in symbol, in
charge of others of the same race but less knowing
and so they ascended to Heaven.
Those that succeeded them had not the flame so
bright within their hearts
they were of the same race,
but younger souls the Tat-race. Hermes could not
than themselves
4.
hand on the
direct
sight " (Oecopla),
and myth.
and
" perfect
knowledge to them, the
wisdom
so recorded the
in
symbol
the Asclepius-race joined them-
Still later
selves to the Tat-souls.
All
this,
however, took place
many many
ages ago,
long even before the days of the men-gods Osiris and
Isis; for the real
wisdom
of
Hermes was
so
ancient
that even Isis herself had had to search out the hidden
and that too by means of the inner sight, when
she herself had won the power to see, and the True Sun
had risen for her mind.
records,
5.
But the
strain
of
reconstructing the history of
this far-distant past, as he conceived it to
is
too
much
for the writer.
He knows
he
have been,
is
dealing
with "myths," with what Plutarch would have called
the " doings of the daimones " he knows that in reality
;
these primaeval " Books " of
physical existence,
if
Hermes have no longer any
indeed they ever had any;
knows that no matter what legends
ever the general priesthood
may
he
are told, or what-
believe about ancient
physical inscriptions of the primaeval Hermes,
all this
has passed away, and that the real wisdom of Hermes
is
engraved on the tablets
of
the aether, and not hidden
in the shrines of earth.
The
"
Books
" are
engraved in the "sacred symbols
of the cosmic elements, "
" secrets of Osiris "
and hidden away hard by the
the mysteries
light that speaks in
the heart.
of creative
fire,
The true Books
the
of
THE VIRGIN OF THE WORLD
Hermes
pure
hidden away in their own
are
elements
of
the
unseen world
137
zones,
the
the
celestial
Egypt.
6.
This wisdom was held in safe keeping for the
" souls " of
men
knowledge.
it was a soul-gnosis, not a physical
Hereupon the writer begins the recital of
1
his tradition
of
the creation of the " souls
in their unfallen
the "Books of Hermes."
follows
which
state, all of
The
is
" of
men
derived from
soul-creation runs as
The Watchers 2 approach the Creator. The hour has
struck for a new Cosmic Dawn, for a new Day. The
time has come for Cosmos to awake after the Night. 3
The Creative Mind of the universe turns His attention,
His thought, to a new phase
of things, a
new world-
period.
God
smiled, and His laughter thrilled through
and with His Word, called forth into the light
the new dawn from out the primaeval darkness of the
new world-space. His first creation, transcendental or
intelligible Nature, stood before Him, in all the marvel
7.
space, 4
new
her
of
beauty, the primal pleroma, or potential
fullness, of the
new
universe or system, the ideal cosmos
many
our world, for there were
of
who marvelled
Straightway this Nature
herself
1
Or
others,
the
Gods
at the mystery.
and Toil and their
rather apocalypse
fell
from one into three,
fairest child Invention, to
see 15
"
As Hermes
says
when he
speaks unto me."
2
Gf.
the Egregores of The Booh of Enoch ; see Charles' Trans1893), Index, under "Watchers."
lation (Oxford
3
The new Manvantara following
a periodical Pralaya, to use
the terms of Indo-Aryan tradition.
4 The creation is figured in one Egyptian tradition as the
bursting forth of the Creator into seven peals of laughter,
sevenfold
"Ha!"
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
138
whom God
ideal
gave the
form alone.
The
gift of being,
was the bringing forth
then,
first creation,
potencies and types and ideas, to
gift of being;
was
it
themselves producing
whom God
of
gave the
the world "above/' the
as yet
primaeval Heaven, in ultimate perfection, thus constitut-
ing the unchanging boundaries of the
was
to
new universe
These things-that-are were
be.
filled
that
with
"mysteries," not "breaths" or "lives," for these were
not as yet.
8.
The next
stage
the breathing of the spiritual
is
(not the physical) breath of lives into the fairest blend
of the primal elements that condition the world-area.
This blend or soul-substance
is
called psychosis.
primal elements were not our mixed earth, water,
and
air,
but
"
knowing
Hermes elsewhere
the " flower of
fire "
calls
fire " of
it,
(perhaps "
fire
or intelligible
The
fire,
in itself," as
fire,
perchance
the so-called " Chaldaean Oracles
"
and unknowing air, if we may judge from the phrase
(7) " Let heaven be filled with all things full, and air
and aether [? = fire] too!" It is Heaven or the ideal
world that is so filled even earth-water was not yet
manifested, much less earth and water.
:
It seems, then, that these souls (souls corresponding
above with the subsequent man-stage below) were a
blend of the three
air,
triads, yet a
spirit,
knowing
also-
and unknowing
unity called psychosis.
They were moreover
differed according to some
9.
they were
fire,
all
essentially
fixed
apparently definite
perchance for every
star, as
equal,
but
numbering;
in number, one soul
law
of
with Plato, according to
the law of similarity of less and greater, of within and
without.
10.
These
souls, then,
1
Of.
were " sacred (or typical) men,"
the "florescence" of 10.
THE VIRGIN OF THE WORLD
139
a creation prior to that of the " sacred animals "
habitat was in
the aether "
11.
Upper Nature, the
the
celestial cosmos.
They were appointed
to certain stations
the task of keeping the " wheel revolving/'
we
their
" all-fairest station of
and
that
is,
to
as
were to fashion forms for birth and
death, and so provide means of transmission for the lifecurrents ever circulating in the great sphere. This was
their appointed task, the law imposed on them, as
shall see, they
obedient children of the Great King, their
sire.
So
long as they kept their appointed stations they were to
live for ever in surroundings of bliss
and beauty, in
full
contemplation of the glories of the greater universe,
throned amid the
stars.
But
if
they disobeyed the law,
bonds and punishment await them.
12. We next come to a further creation of souls
subject somewhat difficult to follow.
These souls are
of an inferior grade to the preceding, for they are com-
posed of the primal water and earth, of
"
water in
itself
" earth in itself "
and
we must suppose, and not of the
compound elements we now call by these names. These
are the souls of certain "sacred
animals" or
lives,
which bear the same relationship to the souls which
"keep the wheel revolving" as animals do to man on
earth.
They are, however, not shaped like the animals
on earth, nor possess even typical animal forms, but bear
the forms of men, though they are not men.
13. Still was the divine "water-earth" substance
unexhausted, and so the residue was handed over to
" those souls that had gone in advance and had been
summoned
stations
to the land of Gods,"
that
is
to say, those
near the Gods, in highest aether, of which
mention has just been made.
These souls
are, of course,
the man-souls proper.
Out
of this residue these Builders
were to fashion
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
140
after the
animals,
certain types of
models the Creator gave them,
life,
below the
"man"
type proper,
ranged in due order corresponding to the
That
the souls."
is
were to be copied.
motions of
were various classes
the types of animals which
to say, there
Builders according to
of
"
The Builders were to fashion the
them the life.
forms, the Creator was to breathe into
Thus these Builders fashioned the etheric doubles
and reptiles, and not their
physical bodies, for as yet the earth was not solid.
14.
of birds, quadrupeds, fish
15.
And
so the Builder-souls accomplished their task,
and fashioned the primaeval copies of the celestial types
of animals.
Proud of their work, they grew restive at
the restraints placed upon them by the law of their
stations, and overstepped the limits decreed by the
Creator. 1
Whereupon the punishment is pronounced, and the
make the human frame, therein to
Creator resolves to
imprison the disobedient souls.
And
1
Gf.
here
we
learn incidentally that all of
the same idea as expressed
by
Basilides
(a/p.
this
Hipp., Philos.,
but in reversed order, when, speaking of the consummation of the world-process, and the final ascension of the "Sonship" with all its experience gained from union with matter, he
says of the remaining souls, which have not reached the dignity
of the Sonship, that the Great Ignorance shall come upon them
vii. 27),
for a space.
" Thus all the souls of this state of existence,
whose nature is
remain immortal in this state of existence alone, remain without knowledge of anything different from or better than this
state; nor shall there be any rumour or knowledge of things
to
superior in higher states, in order that the lower souls may not
pain by striving after impossible objects, just as though it
suffer
were
fish
longing to feed on the mountains with sheep, for such
a desire would end in their destruction. All things are indestructible if they remain in their proper condition, but subject to
destruction
if
limits "(^ F.
they desire to overleap and transgress their natural
F,
p. 270).
THE VIRGIN OP THE WORLD
141
psychogenesis which has gone before was the direct
Hermes
teaching of
to the
writer;
of
no physical
Hermes whose " Books"
are hidden in the zones (5), of the Hermes whom the
writer, as he would have us believe, came to know face
Hermes, however, but
of that
to face only after his inner vision
had gazed with
all-seeing eyes "
was opened, and he
upon the mysteries of
new dawn " (4).
16. For the new and mysterious
that
man-form,
all
fabrication of the
the seven obedient Gods, to
whom
the
man-souls are kin (17), are summoned by the chief of
them, Hermes himself, the beloved son and messenger
of the
Supreme,
" soul of
My Soul, and holy mind
of
My
own Mind." x
17. All of
the seven promise to bestow the best
they have on man.
18. The plasm out of which the man -form is to be
modelled is the residue of the mixture out of which the
But
Builders had already made the animal doubles.
the Builder of the man-frames was
who mixed
19.
the plasm with
Here the writer
still
vision,
himself,
inserts a further piece of infor-
mation concerning the source
longer as before what
Hermes
more water.
of his tradition.
Hermes himself
It is
reveals to
but what the writer was told at a certain
him
no
in
initia-
"Black Kite." This rite was presided
over by Kamephis, who is called the " earliest of all,"
or perhaps more correctly the " most primaeval of [us]
all."
Kamephis is thus conceived as the representative
of a more ancient wisdom than that of Isis, and yet
even he but hands on the tradition of Hermes. 2
20. The souls are "enfleshed," and utter loud
Apparently not all at first can speak
complaints.
articulately most of them can only groan, or scream,
tion called the
Gf. Cyril, 0.
Jul,
i.
35
Frag. xvi.
Of.
29 and
37.
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
142
or hiss.
The leading
class of souls can,
however, so far
dominate the plasm as to speak articulately, and so one
of their number utters a desperate appeal to Heaven.
21. They have now lost their celestial state, and
Heaven is shut away from them no longer can they
They are shut down into a
see "without the light/'
" heart's small compass
Sun of their being has
the
"
become a light-spark only, hidden in the heart. This
;
is,
of course, the logos, the
inmost reality in man.
22. The souls pray for some amelioration of their
unhappy lot, and the conditions of the moral law are
expounded to them. They who do rightly shall, on their
body's dissolution, reascend to Heaven and be at rest
they who do ill, shall work out their redemption under
the law of metempsychosis, or change from body to
body, from prison to prison.
23. Details of this
metempsychosis are then given
with special reference to the incarnations of the
righteous,"
Such
"
more
who shall be kings, philosophers and prophets.
souls apparently, for
it is
not expressly so stated,
round the wheel of rebirth, when out
incarnation in a human body, have some sort of life
shall, in passing
of
with the souls of the leading types of animals, which
are given as eagles, lions, dragons, and dolphins.
if
we
Or,
are unjustified in this speculation, such souls shall
in their animal parts have intimate relation with the
noblest types of animal essence (24).
25.
There now comes upon the scene the mighty
Intellect of the Earth, a veritable Erdgeist, in the
form
Momus, who speaking out of affection for him (28),
urges Hermes to increase ills and trials upon the souls
of men, so that they shall not dare too much (25-27).
And thereon Hermes sets in motion the instrument or
of
engine of unerring fate and mechanical
(28, 29).
retribution
THE VIRGIN OF THE WORLD
29.
Now
earth-life,
all
143
these things took place at the
when
all as
dawn of
now
yet was inert, as far as our
We
must then suppose that
on earth had not
yet been manifested that all was as yet in a far subtler
or more primitive state of existence, when earth was
still all " a-tremble," and had not yet hardened to its
present state of solidity
that is to say, that the manplasm was in an etheric state (30).
31. The earth gradually hardens.
Into the now more
solid earth, the Creator and His obedient sons, the Gods
who had not made revolt, poured forth the blessings of
nature. This is described by the beautiful symbol of
the hands of blessing, figured in Egypt as the sun-rays,
each terminating in a hand for giving light and life. 1
The imprisoned souls, the kinsmen of the Gods
solid earth is concerned.
as yet our present phase of existence
;
they are the leaders
obedient, continue their revolt;
mankind, of a mankind far weaker than themselves,
a humanity, apparently evolved normally from the
nature of things and as yet in its childhood. Instead
of teaching them the lessons of love and wisdom, the
Disobedient Ones use them for evil purposes, for war
and conflict, for oppression and savagery.
of
32.
Things go from bad to worse
the earth
is
befouled
man, until in despair the pure
elements complain to God. They pray that He will send
a holy emanation of Himself to set things right (32-34).
with the horrors
35.
of savage
Hereupon God sends forth the mystery
birth, a divine descent, or emanation,
Aryan Hindu
tion. 2
And
tradition
so Osiris
of a
new
an avatara, as the
would call it, a dual manifestaand Isis are born to help the
Of. Hermes-Prayer, iii. 3.
This is of special interest as showing how the Egyptian
tradition, in this pre-eminent above all others, did not limit the
2
manifestation to the male sex alone.
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
144
men from
world, to recall
savagery, and restore the
moral order (35-37).
It was they who were taught directly by Hermes
(37) in all law
and science and wisdom. Their mission
"
world" is filled with a
knowledge of the Path of Eeturn. But before their
ascension into Heaven they have a petition to make to
meets with success, and the
the Father, that not only earth but also the surrounding
up to Heaven itself may be
spaces
Thus then they proceed
and Monarch
of
all
fit
hymn
the Sire
to copy.
text of the "Virgin
original
treatise is obviously
Hymn
to
in a praise-giving which, unfor-
tunately, Stobseus did not think
The
with a knowledge
filled
of the truth.
of
the
World"
broken only by the omission
of the
and Excerpt ii. follows otherwise immediately on Excerpt i. The subject is the
birth of royal souls, taken up from the instruction given
in K. K, 23, 24 above.
39. There are four chief spaces (i) Invisible Heaven,
inhabited by the Gods, with the Invisible Sun as lord of
(ii) iEther, inhabited by the Stars, of which for us
all
the Sun is leader; (iii) Air, in which dwell nonincarnate souls, ruled by the Moon, as watcher o'er the
paths of genesis; (iv) Earth, inhabited by men and
animals, and over men the immediate ruler is the Divine
of Osiris
and
Isis,
King
40.
of
of the time.
The king-soul
men 1
he
is,
is
the last of the
Gods but the
first
however, on earth a demigod only,
His soul, or ha,
for his true divinity is obscured.
comes from a soul-plane superior to that of the rest of
mankind.
The ascending souls of normally evolving humanity
are thought of, apparently, as describing ever widening
1
Of. C. J3., xviii.
ff.
THE VIRGIN OF THE WORLD
wheelings in and out of incarnation,
circles in their
rising, as
145
they increase in virtue and knowledge, at the
zenith of their ascent in the intermediate state, before
they turn to descend again into rebirth, ever nearer to
the limits of the sensible world and the frontiers of
Heaven.
But there is
41.
also another class of descending royal
who have only
souls,
and therefore
slightly transgressed,
descend only as far as this grade of humanity.
For the royal or ruling soul
42.
monarch
He may
peace.
may
his sovereignty
is
not only a warrior
be also shown in arts
The
poet, a truth-lover or philosopher.
these souls are not determined, as
lower grades,
of
of
be a righteous judge, a musician or
that
is,
is
activities of
the case with souls
those souls which have fallen
deeper into material existence,
by what Basilides would
called the " appendages " of the animal nature
have
they are determined by a fairer
an escort
taxis,
who accompany them
The description of their manner of
angels and daimones,
43.
ever,
is,
of
into birth.
birth,
how-
unfortunately, lost to us, owing either to the
hesitation of Stobaeus to
make
it public,
or to its being
cut out by some subsequent copyist.
44.
We are next told that sex is no essential character-
istic of
the soul.
It
body
which air, however,
this
is
an
" accident " of the body,
but
not the physical, but the "aery" body,
is
is
not a simple element, but already
differentiated into four sub-elements. 1
45.
also
1
Moreover the
sight, or intelligence, of the soul
depends upon the purity
The "spirituous"
of certain envelopes,
or "aery" body, or vehicle,
is
which
composed of
the sub-elements, but in it is a predominance of the sub-element
" air," just as in the physical there is a predominance of " earth."
Philoponus,
Procem. in Aristot. de
(London, 1896),
"The
Subtle
Anima
see
my
Body," pp. 276-281.
8. I. H., 15, 20.
VOL.
III.
10
Orpheus
Gf.
also
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
146
are called " airs,"
" airs "
apparently more subtle even
than the aery body (45 ). 1
46. Next follows a naive reason for the excellence of
Egypt and the wisdom of the Egyptians (46-48). Here
the writer seems to be no longer dependent directly on
the Trismegistic tradition, but is inserting and expanding
popular notions.
49.
The remaining
sections of the Excerpt are taken
up with speculations as to the cause
50), and Stobseus brings his extract
of delirium (49,
to a conclusion
apparently without allowing the writer to complete
his exposition.
Sources
The discussion
as to the
meaning
of the title,
which
has so far been invariably translated "The Virgin of
the World," will come more appropriately later on.
How much
of the original treatise has been handed
by Stobseus we have no external means of
deciding.
Our two Extracts, however, plainly stand
in immediate connection with each other, and the
original text is broken only by the unfortunate
omission of the Hymn of Osiris and Isis. The first
on
to us
Extract, moreover,
is
plainly not the beginning of the
opens with words referring to what
treatise, since it
has gone before; while the second Extract ends in a
very unsatisfactory manner in the middle of a subject.
What we have, however, gives us some very interesting
how
indications of
the writer regarded his sources,
whether written or oral, whether physical or psychic.
He of course would have us take his treatise as a
and indeed the subject is so worked
literary unity
;
up that
1
it is
Compare
very
this
G. H., x. (xi.) 13,
difficult to discover
what the
literary
with the prdna's of Indian theosophy
Comment.
see
THE VIRGIN OF THE WORLD
147
may have
sources that lay before the writer
been, for
the story runs on straight enough in the same thought-
mould and literary form, in spite of the insertion of
somewhat contradictory statements concerning the
sources of information.
When, however, Eeitzenstein
(p.
136) expressly states
that the creation-story shows indubitable traces of two
older forms, and that this
as
we
ductions,
is
two
find
we
(or
more
is
not a matter of surprise,
precisely four) different intro-
are not able entirely to follow him.
It
true that these introductory statements are apparently
on further consideration they appear
at variance, but
to be not really self -contradictory.
The Direct Voice and the Books of Hermes
The main representation is that the teacher of Isis
Hermes, who saw the world-creation, that is, the
creation of our earth-system, and the soul-making, with
is
his
own
sight (2).
spiritual
knowledge in two ways
of
Hermes
Master
(4, 5)
(15).
or
Isis
has obtained her
either from the sacred
by the
Books
direct spiritual voice of the
The intention here
is
plainly to claim the
authority of direct revelation, for even the Books are
not physical.
They have disappeared,
if
indeed they
ever were physical, and can only be recovered from the
tablets of unseen nature, by ascending to the zones (5)
where they are hidden and these zones are plainly the
same as the soul-spaces mentioned in S. L IT., 8.
At the same time there is mention of another tradition,
;
which, though in later details purporting to be historic
and physical, in
its
beginnings
is
involved in purely
mythological and psychic considerations.
When
the
and most ancient Hermes ascended to Heaven,
he left his Books in the charge of the Gods, his kinsmen,
first
148
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
in the zones,
and not on earth
(3).
On
earth there
succeeded to this wisdom a younger race, beloved of
Hermes, and personified as his son Tat. These were
young to understand the true science
face to face.
They were apparently regarded as the
Tat (Thoth) priesthood of our humanity, who were
subsequently joined by wisdom-lovers of another line
souls as yet too
of tradition, the
Imuth (Asclepius) brotherhood, who
had their doctrine originally from Ptah. 1 This seems
to hint at some ancient union of two traditions or
schools of mystic science, perhaps from the Memphitic
and Thebaic priesthoods respectively. 2
What, however, is clear is that the writer professes
to set forth a higher and more direct teaching than
either the received tradition of the Isiac mystery-cult
or of the Tat-Asclepius school.
person of
This he does in the
Isis as the face to face disciple of
the most
ancient Hermes,3 thus showing us that in the Hermescircles of the Theoretics, or those
sight,
though the
Isis
who had
the direct
mystery-teaching was considered
a tradition of the wisdom,
it
was nevertheless held
be entirely subordinate to the illumination
to
of the direct
sight.
1
Of.
Diog. Laert., Procem., i.
"
The Egyptians say that Hephaestus
(Ptah) was the son of Neilus (the Nile), and that he was the
originator of philosophy, of that philosophy whose leaders are
priests
and prophets"
that
is
to say, a mystic philosophy of
revelation.
Thus Suidas (s.v. "Ptah") says that Ptah was the Hephaestus
Memphite priesthood, and tells us that there was a proverbial
saying current among them " Ptah hath spoken unto thee." This
" As Hermes says when he speaks
reminds us of our text
2
of the
unto me."
3
The type
of Isis as utterer of "sacred sermons," describing
herself as daughter or disciple of
demonstrably to Ptolemaic times.
Hermes,
is old,
R. 136, n. 4
and goes back
137, n.
1.
THE VIRGIN OF THE WORLD
149
Kamephis and the Dark Mystery
In apparent contradiction
following statement:
"Now
to all this
we have
the
give good heed, son Horus,
thou art being told the mystic spectacle which
Kamephis, our forefather, was privileged to hear from
Hermes, the record-writer of all deeds, and I from
Kamephis when he did honour me with the Black
for
[Eite] that gives perfection" (19). 1
Here Eeitzenstein (p. 137) professes to discover the
of two absolutely distinct traditions of
(i) Kamephis, a later god and pupil of Hermes, and
but
(ii) Kamephis, an older god and teacher of Isis
conflation
in this I cannot follow him.
It all
depends on the
meaning assigned to the words 7rapa rov Travrwv 7rpoyevearrepov, which Eeitzenstein regards as signifying
" the most ancient of all [gods]," but which I translate
as " the most ancient of [us] all."
I
take
general
it
mean simply
to
Isis-tradition,
was stated
that,
the founder
according to the
of
its
mysteries
Kamephis, but that the Isis-Hermes
circles claimed that this Kamephis, though truly the
most ancient figure in the Isis tradition proper, was
nevertheless in his turn the pupil of the still more
ancient Hermes.
The grade of Kamephis was presumably represented
to be
the mystery-cult by the arch-hierophant who
presided at the degree called the " Dark Mystery " or
in
"
Black Eite."
It
was a
rite
performed only for those
1
ottot* i/xe Kal t$ Te\ei(j} fi4\avi irl/uLTjcrev.
This has hitherto been
always supposed by the philological mind simply to refer to the
mysteries of ink or writing, and that too 'without any humorous
but in all portentous solemnity. We must imagine, then,
presumably, that it refers to the schooldays of Isis, when she
was first taught the Egyptian equivalents for pothooks and
hangers.
This absurdity is repeated even by Meineke.
intent,
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
150
who were judged worthy
of it (erinncrev) after
long
probation in lower degrees, something of a far more
sacred character, apparently, than the instruction in
the mysteries enacted in the light.
would suggest,
therefore, that
we have here
reference to the most esoteric institution of the Isiac
more
tradition, the
consider later on;
connect
is
it
enough
for
the
moment
to
with certain objects or shows that were
it
apparently
which we will
precise nature of
made
to appear in the dark.
As Clement
Alexandria says in his famous commonplace book,
of
called the Stromateis
" It is
1
:
not without reason that in the mysteries of
the Greeks, lustrations hold the
first place,
analogous
among the Barbarians [that is, non-Greeks].
After these come the lesser mysteries, which have
to ablutions
some foundation of instruction and of preliminary
preparation for what is to follow and then the great
mysteries, in which nothing remains to be learned of
the universe, but only to contemplate and comprehend
nature [herself] and the things [which are mystically
shown to the initiated]." 2
;
The more
correct title of this
work should be " Gnostic
True Philosophy," as
been well remarked by Hort
in his Ante-Nicene Father, p. 87 (London, 1895).
2
Sopater (Dist. Qucest., p. 123, ed. Walz)
Op. cit., v. 11.
speaks of these as " figures " (crx^uaTa), the same expression which
Proclus (In Plat. Rep., p. 380) employs in speaking of the
appearances which the Gods assume in their manifestations
Jottings
Clement
Plato
(or
the
Notes) according to
states himself
(Phmdr., p.
and
as has
250) calls
them "blessed
beatific visions" (evtiainova (pda-^ara)
apparitions,"
or
the author of the Epinomis
most beautiful to see in the
986) describes them as " what is
world"; these are the "mystic sights" or "wonders" (/j.v<rriKa
6edfiara) of Dion Chrysostom (Orat., xii., p. 387, ed. Eeiske)
the "holy appearances" (ayia (pavrdo-fiara) and "sacred shows"
(p.
(lepk
p.
deiKvvfieva) of
722,
and De
Plutarch (Wyttenbach, Fragm.,
Profect.
Virtut. Sent., p.
vi.
1,
81, ed. Keiske)
t.
;
v.,
the
THE VIRGIN OF THE WORLD
151
Kneph-Kamephis
But who was Kamephis
the
theology of
the
in
According to Eeitzenstein, Kamephis or
Egyptians?
Kmephis, that is Kmeph, is equated by Egyptologists
with Kneph, who, according to Plutarch, 1 was worshipped
in the Thebaid as the ingenerable and immortal God.
Kneph, however, as Sethe has shown,2 is one of the
aliases of Ammon, who is the " bull [or husband] of his
who has created himself." Kneph
3
is, moreover, the Good Daimon, as Philo of Byblus says.
He is the Sun-god and Heaven-god Ammon.
mother," the " creator
" If
he open his eyes, he
primaeval
land
and
if
filleth all
he close them
Here we have Kneph- Ammon
with light in his
all is dark."
as the giver of light in
darkness, and the opener of the eyes.
Moreover, Porphyry 6
regarded
Kneph
represented
him
as
in
us that the Egyptians
tells
the
demiurge
or
creator,
the form of a man,
and
with skin
a blue-black tint, girt with a girdle, and holding
of
" ineffable apparitions" (&ppr)ra (pda-fiara) of Aristides (Orat., xix.
Dindorf) ; the "divine apparitions" {Qeia (pda-fiara) of
Himerius (Eclog., xxxii., p. 304, ed. Wernsdorf), those sublime
p. 416, ed.
memory
which was said to accompany the souls of
the righteous into the after-life, and when they returned to birth.
Cf. Lenormant (F.) on "The Eleusinian Mysteries" in The
sights the
of
Contemporary Review (Sept. 1880),
who, however, thinks
p. 416,
that these famous philosophers and writers bankrupted their
adjectives merely for the mechanical figures
and stage-devices
lower degrees. See my "Notes on the Eleusinian
Mysteries" in The Theosophical Review (April, May, June, 1898),
the
of
vol. xxii., p. 156.
1
De
Berl phil. Wochenschr. (1896),
R. 133, n. 2.
Is. et Os., xxi.
p.
irpoToySpq)
Epeius, ap. Eusebius, Prcep. Ev.,
Ap. Euseb.,
cf.
the
Prcep.,
1528
irpoyej/e<rTpov irdvruv
iii.
i.
R. 137,
above.
10, p.
11, 45, p. 115.
41 d.
n. 3.
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
152
a sceptre, and wearing a crown of regal wings.
This
symbolism, says Porphyry, signified that he was the
representative
of
Logos
the
Eeason,
or
discover, hidden, 1 not manifest
it
is
to
difficult
he who gives
and also life 3 he is the King. The winged
crown upon his head, he adds, signifies that he moves
light
or energizes intellectually.
Kamephis, then, stands in the
Isis-tradition for the
representative of Agathodaimon, the Logos-creator.
He
and has had
handed on to him by Hermes, or at any rate he
instructed in the Logos-wisdom by Hermes.
is,
however, a later holder of this
Hermes
In
I.
it
office,
and Hermes
is
II.
this connection it is instructive to refer to the
account which Syncellus 4
tells
us he took from the
statement of Manetho.
Manetho, says Syncellus, states in his Books, that he
based his replies concerning the dynasties of Egypt to
King Ptolemy on the monuments.
"[These monuments], he [Manetho] tells us, were
engraved in the sacred language, and in the characters
of the sacred writing,
by Thoth the First Hermes
after
the Flood they were translated from the sacred language
into the then
common
tongue, but
hieroglyphic characters, and stored
the
Good Daimon's
son, the
written] in
[still
away
by
in books,
Second Hermes, the father
of Tat, in the inner shrines of the temples of Egypt."
1
Gf.
the epithet " utterly hidden" found in the "
Words
Ammon,"
(Logoi)
referred to by Justin Martyr, Cohort., xxxviii.,
the note thereon in " Fragments from the Fathers."
of
2
3
the
4
and
Typified by the dark-coloured body.
(wottoiSs
typified, presumably, by the
woman) and
the
staff (the
Chron., xl. (ed. Dind.,
i.
symbol
72).
girdle (the
of the man).
symbol
of
THE VIRGIN OF THE WORLD
153
Here we have a tradition, going back as far as
Manetho, which I have shown, in Chapter V. of the
"Prolegomena" on "Manetho, High Priest of Egypt,"
cannot be so lightly disposed of as has been previously
supposed,
dealing expressly with the Books
This tradition,
it
is
true, differs
of Hermes.
from the account
given in our Sermon (3-5), where the writer says
nothing expressly
of a flood,
to believe that the
most ancient records
but evidently wishes us
of
Hermes were
magically hidden in the zones of the unseen world, and
that the flood,
there was one, was a flood or lapse of
if
time that had utterly removed these records from the
For him they no longer existed physically.
earth.
Manetho's account deals with another view
of the
His tradition appears to be as follows. The
oldest records were on stone monuments which had
survived some great flood in Egypt. These records
matter.
belonged to the period of the First Hermes, the Good
Daimon par
excellence,
earliest antediluvian
they were
flood
the priesthood, therefore, of the
Egyptian
translated
After the
civilization.
from
the
most
archaic
language into ancient Egyptian, and preserved in book-
form by the Second Hermes, the priesthood, presumably,
most ancient civilization after the flood, who
of the
were in time succeeded by the Tat priesthood.
That this tradition is elsewhere contradicted by the
Isis-tradition proper, which in a somewhat similar
genealogy places Isis at the very beginning prior even
Hermes
to
I.,
need not detain
us, since
would naturally claim the priority
regarded as
the
its
own
special founders,
moment concerned only with
each tradition
of those
whom
it
and we are for
the claims of the
Hermes-school.
1
Be
Varro,
xviii. 3, 8
Gente Pop. Rom., ap.
R. 139, n.
3.
Augustine,
Be Ow.
Bei,
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
154
The main point
of interest is that there
was a
tradi-
which explained the past on the hypothesis of
the oldest
periods of culture succeeding one another,
being supposed to have been the wisest and highest;
the most archaic hieroglyphic language, which perhaps
tion
the priests
Manetho's day could no longer fully
of
understand, 1 was supposed to have been the tongue of
the civilization before the Flood of
even be that the remains
of this
Hermes
I.
It
may
tongue were preserved
only in the magical invocations, as a thing most sacred,
the " language of the gods."
The point
of view,
however, of the circle to which
our writer belonged, was that the records of this most
ancient civilization were no longer to be read even in
the oldest inscriptions; they could only be recovered
by
Into close relation with
spiritual sight.
must, I think, bring the statement made
Osiris
and
this,
we
in 37, that
though they themselves had learned
Isis,
the secrets of the records of Hermes, nevertheless
all
kept part
of
them
secret,
and engraved on stone only
of "
such as were adapted for the intelligence
mortal
men."
The Kamephis
stands for
of the Isis-tradition, then,
Kneph
as
Agathodaimon, that
but not for our Hermes
I.,
for
is
apparently
for
Hermes,
he has no physical
with regard to ancient archaic texts which are
is able to translate them with
greater accuracy than the priests of Manetho's day ; but this one
may be allowed to question, unless the ancient texts are capable
1
still
It is said that
extant,
modern Egyptology
solely of a physical interpretation.
The Hermes, presumably, who was fabled to be the son of
Heaven Ocean, the Great
Green, the Soul of Cosmos, and whom, we are told, the Egyptians
2
the Nile, not the physical Nile, but the
would never speak
that hid the Books of
so the son of Nile
presumably, only within the
be in one sense the Flood
depths or zones ; but equally
of publicly, but,
This Nile
circles of initiation.
Hermes in
may
be the
may
its
first
Hermes
after the Flood.
THE VIRGIN OF THE WORLD
contact with the Isis- tradition, but for
was taught by Hermes
155
Hermes
II.
who
I.
The Black Kite
But what is the precise meaning of the " black rite "
at which Kamephis presides ?
I have already suggested
the environment in which the general meaning may be
sought, though I have not been able to produce any
objective evidence of a precise nature.
(pp.
139
ff.),
Keitzenstein
however, thinks he has discovered that
His view is as follows
to the meaning, according to him, is to be
found in the following line from a Magic Papyrus x
"I invoke thee, Lady Isis, with whom the G-ood
Daimon doth unite, 2 He who is Lord eV tw reXelw
evidence.
The key
fji&Xavi"
Keitzenstein thinks that the
for
Chnum, and works out
(p.
Good Daimon here stands
140) a learned hypothesis
that the " black " refers to a certain territory of black
between Syene and Takompso, the Dedocaschcenus,
famed for its pottery, which was originally
in the possession of the Isis priesthood, but was subseearth,
especially
quently transferred to the priesthood of
King Doer.
Eeitzenstein
would
thus,
Chnum by
presumably,
translate the latter half of the sentence as " the
Daimon who
and so make
Lord in the perfect black [country],"
Chnum, though indeed he seems
is
it
Good
refer to
himself to feel the inadequacy of this explanation to
cover the word
me
"
But this seems to
meaning out of both our
the Magic Papyrus, and to introduce
perfect "
(p.
144).
to take all the dignified
text and that of
1
Wessley, Denkschr.
So
R.,
no support
though
;
d. k.
this is a
Akad. (1893), p. 37, 1. 500.
meaning to which the lexicons give
the verb generally meaning " to defer " or " assent to."
156
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
which are plainly out
local geographical considerations
of
keeping with the context.
more natural to make the Agathodaimon
Papyrus refer to Osiris; for indeed it is
one of his most frequent designations. Moreover, it
is precisely Osiris who is pre-eminently connected with
the so-called "under world," the unseen world, the
It is far
of
"
the
mysterious
He
dark."
remains on earth
it is
is
lord there, while Isis
he who would most fitly give
instructions 6n such matters,
and indeed one
of the
mystery-sayings was precisely, "Osiris
ancient
is
dark God." 1
"He who
thus
mean
soul, purified
dark side
Isis,
is
Lord in the perfecting black," might
that Osiris, the masculine potency
of
of the
and perfected the man on the mysterious
things, and completed the work which
the feminine potency
the soul, had begun
of
on him.
That, in the highest mystery-circles, this was some
stage of union of the
himself,
may
made by
man with
the higher part of
be deduced from the interesting citations
Eeitzenstein (pp. 142-144) from the later
Alchemical Hermes-literature;
it
clearly refers to the
mystic "sacred marriage," 3 the intimate union of the
soul with the logos, or divine ray.
Much could be
written on this subject, but it will be sufficient to
append two passages of more than ordinary interest.
The Jewish over-writer of the Naassene Document
contends that the chief mystery of the Gnosis was
but the consummation of the instruction given in the
various
1
am
2
mystery-institutions
Compare
of
the
The
nations.
mystery ritual in The Acts of John
thy God, not that of the betrayer" (F. F. F., p. 434).
As the Gnostic Marcus would have called it.
On
also the
this iep6s ydpos or ydfxos irvevfiar^Sy see
Aglaophamus (Konigsberg, 1829), 608, 649, 651.
Lobeck
"I
(C. A.),
THE VIRGIN OF THE WORLD
157
Lesser Mysteries, he tells us, commenting on the text
Pagan
the
of
commentator, pertained
"fleshly
to
generation," whereas the Greater dealt with the
birth, or second birth,
And
genesis.
new
with regeneration, and not with
speaking of a certain mystery, he says
"For this is the Gate of Heaven, and this is the
House of God, where the Good God * dwells alone, into
which [House] no impure [man] shall come; but it
kept under watch for the spiritual alone where
is
when they come they must
cast
away
their garments,
and all become bridegrooms obtaining their true manhood through the Virginal Spirit. For such a man is
the Virgin big with child, conceiving and bearing a
Son, not psychic, not fleshly, but a blessed
JEons."
Mon
of
In the marvellous mystery-ritual
of the
new-found
fragments of The Acts of John, lately discovered in a
fourteenth century MS. in Vienna, disguised in hymn
form, and hiding an almost inexhaustible mine of very
early
tradition,
the
marriage"
"sacred
is
plainly
suggested as one of the keys to part of the ritual.
Compare,
their
for
instance,
with
the "casting
away
of
garments," in the above-quoted passage of the
Naassene writer, the following:
" [The Disciple.] I would flee.
[The Master.] I would [have thee]
[The Assistants.]
Amen
[The
would be robed.
Disciple.] I
[The
And I would
Assistants
Amen
[The
Disciple.] I
[The Master.]
(ed.
stay.
robe [thee].
.]
would be at-oned.
That is, the Agathodaimon.
That is, the "Birth of Horus." Hippolytus, Philos., v. 8
Dunk, and Schneid, pp. 164, 166, 11. 86-94). see " Myth of
Man
in the Mysteries," 28.
the later Christian over- writer.
The
last clause is
the gloss of
"
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
158
[The Master.]
And I would
Amen 1
at-one.
[The Assistants.]
Black Land.
But
to return to the " mysterious black."
us
tells
"
Moreover, they [the Egyptians]
Plutarch
call
Egypt,
inasmuch as its soil is particularly black, as though
it were the black of the eye, Chemia, and compare it
with the heart,"
for,
he adds,
it is
hot and moist, and
set in the southern part of the inhabitable world, in
way
the same
man. 8
was called
as the heart in the left side of a
Egypt, the "sacred land" par excellence,
Chemia or Chem (Hem), Black-land, because
nature of
dark loamy
its
soil;
it
of
the
was, moreover, in
symbolic phraseology the black of the eye, that
is,
the
and planets being
regarded as the eyes of the gods. 4 Egypt, then, was the
eye and heart of the Earth the Heavenly Nile poured
its light-flood of wisdom through this dark of the eye,
or made the land throb like a heart with the celestial
pupil of the earth-eye, the
stars
life-currents.
Nor
is
the above quotation an unsupported statement
an ancient text from Edfu, 5 we
the Black), which is so called after
of Plutarch's, for in
read
"
Egypt
(lit.
the eye of Osiris, for
Ammon-Kneph,
signifying
blue-black,
1
The text
it is
is
to be
his pupil."
too, as
we have
his
seen, is black, or
hidden
and
mysterious
found in James (M.
R.), Apocrypha Anecdota
and Studies F. F. F., pp.
(Cambridge,
ii.
1897),
in
Texts
432, 433.
2
Be
Gf. this
Is. et 0s.,
xxxiii.
with K. K., 47, where Egypt
is
said to occupy the
position of the heart of the earth.
"Ye brilliant stars, eyes of the gods."
Gf. K. K., 20
Cited by Ebers, "Die Korperteile in Altagyptischen," Abh.
h. bayr. Ahad. (1897), p. Ill, where other references are given.
4
d.
THE VIRGIN OF THE WORLD
and
character;
called
in
above-quoted passage he
the
"he who holds himself hidden
"he who
159
is
in his eye," or
veils himself in his pupil."
This pupil, then, concludes Eeitzenstein
the "mysterious black."
this peculiar phrase?
(p.
Is this, then, the
If
so,
with seeing, the spiritual
it
145),
origin
is
of
would be connected
sight, the true Epopteia.
The Pupil of the World's Eye
But
Isis, also, is
the black earth, and, therefore, the
pupil of the eye of Osiris, and, therefore, also of the
Chnum
or
Ammon
Eye"
the
identified
herself
Isis, therefore,
Kopfj koot/ulov.
with Osiris at Syene.
the "Pupil of the World's
is
1
Eeitzenstein would, therefore, have
it
that the original
type of our treatise looks back to a tradition which
makes the mystery-goddess
the mysterious
of
Isis the disciple
Chnum
or
Kamephis, as Agathodaimon
ably, that the
in his turn of
tradition,
when
making
Hermes
of this
is
Ammon,
or
and spouse
Kneph
or
and, therefore, presum-
Kamephis the
disciple
a later development of
the
the Hermes-communities gained ascend-
ancy in certain circles of the Isis-tradition.
This is very probable but dare we, with Eeitzenstein,
;
cast aside the " traditional " translation of Koprj
koo-jjlov,
as "Virgin of the World," and prefix to our treatise
as title the
new
World"?
It
version, "
The Pupil
of the
certainly sounds strange
as
Eye
a
of the
title to
unaccustomed ears, and differs widely from any other
But what
titles of the Hermetic sermons known to us.
does the "Virgin of the World" mean in connection
with our treatise ?
Isis as the Virgin Mother is a
1
Compare
Man" chapter
Naassene document, 8, in the " Myth of
Prolegomena, where Isis is called " the seven-
also the
of the
robed and black-mantled goddess."
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
160
familiar idea to students of Egyptology
eioxw,
^e
x
;
she
Kar
is
" World-Virgin."
The Son of the Virgin
And
here
it will
be of interest to turn to a curious
statement of Epiphanius 2
it is
missing in
all
editions
Father prior to that of Dindorf (Leipzig, 1859),
which was based on the very early (tenth century)
of this
Codex Marcianus 125, all previous editions being printed
from a severely censured and bowdlerized fourteenth
century MS.
Epiphanius
Christ
stating that the true birthday of the
is
the Feast of Epiphany, "at a distance of
is
days from
thirteen
the
increase
of
the light
[i.e.
must have been that this
should be a figure of our Lord Jesus Christ Himself
and of His twelve disciples, who make up the thirteen
days of the increase of the Light." The Feast of the
Epiphany was a great day in Egypt, connected with
the " Birth of the iEon," a phase of the " Birth of
December 25]
for it needs
For Epiphanius thus continues:
Horus."
"How many
other things in the past and present
support and bear witness to this proposition, I
the birth of Christ
cults,
who
filled
on
this
them, in
same night
festation to Light], so that
error
1
may
"
Gf.
not
Isis,
seek
mean
Indeed, the leaders of the idol-
with wiles to deceive the
believe in
festival
the
many
of
idol- worshippers
places keep highest
Epiphany
= the
Mani-
they whose hopes are in
truth.
For
instance,
at
the Queen of Heaven, whose most ancient and
was the Virgin Mother." Marsham Adams (F.),
The Book of the Master, or the Egyptian Doctrine of the Light bom of
the Virgin Mother (London, 1898), p. 63.
distinctive title
Hcer.,
And
li.
22.
pre-eminently, therefore, for Epiphanius, the Egyptians.
THE VIRGIN OF THE WORLD
Alexandria, in the Koreion, 1 as
temple, that
it is
called
161
an immense
say the Precinct of the Virgin
is to
they have kept all-night
chanting to their
idol,
vigil
when
after
with songs and music,
the vigil
is
over, at cock-
crow, they descend with lights into an underground
and carry up a wooden image lying naked on a
with the seal of a cross made in gold on its
forehead, and on either hand two similar seals, and on
either knee two others, all five seals being similarly
crypt,
litter,
And they carry round the image itself,
circumambulating seven times the innermost temple,
made
in gold.
accompaniment
to the
of pipes, tabors
with merry-making they carry
And
ground.
mystery,
they
if
they are asked the meaning of
answer: 'To-day at this hour
Maiden (Kore), that
He
and hymns, and
down again under-
it
this
the
the Virgin, gave birth to the
is,
further adds that at Petra, in Arabia, where,
among
other places, this mystery was also performed,
the Son of the Virgin
called
is
by a name meaning
the "Alone-begotten of the Lord."
Here, then, at Alexandria, in every probability the
very environment of our
treatise,
mystery-rite, solemnized in the
who
we have
Temple
gives birth to a Son, the iEon.
not be rash in assuming,
signifies
a famous
of the Virgin,
This,
we
shall
not only the birth
new year, but also still more profound mysteries,
when we remember the words of the Naassene Document quoted above: "For such a man is the Virgin,
of the
big with child, conceiving and bearing a Son,
psychic, not fleshly [nor,
1
That
is,
the
Temple
we may
of Kore.
of Persephone, as Dindorf
(iii.
This can hardly be the Temple
729) suggests, but rather the Temple
of Isis.
Qf.
D. J.
VOL.
III.
L., pp.
407
not
add, temporal], but
ff.
11
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
162
a blessed iEon of
Mons"
that
an Eternity
is,
of
an immortal God.
Eternities,
We should also notice the crowing of the cock,
which plays so important a part in the crucifixionstory in the Gospels, 1 and above all things the stigmata
on the image, the symbols of a cosmic and human
mystery.
The Mystery of the Birth of Horus
In our own
is
treatise the
mysterious Birth of Horus
also referred to (35, 36) as follows.
Isis
has handed on the tradition of the Coming of
Divine emanation, the descent of the efflux
Osiris, the
of the Supreme,
and Horus asks
"
How
then, that Earth received God's efflux
may
well refer to the
"Dark
was
"
it,
mother,
where Earth
synonym
Earth," a
of
Isis herself.
And
answers: "I
Isis
[this] birth
origin
of
may
not
tell
the story of
for it is not permitted to describe the
this
descent,
Horus, [son]
of
mighty
power, lest afterward the way of birth of the immortal
Gods should be known unto men."
Here I think we have a clear reference
mysterious
that
"
is to say, of
how
the most royal of
all
lordship over himself.
man becomes
souls,
(xiv.)
is
when
Man is
The womb
he says:
is
Horusand
Hermes
"Wisdom
C.
yet this
R.
xiii.
that understands
the matter and the
born] and the True
is
a god, becomes
gains the kingdom, or
suggested to Tat by
in silence [such
which
the
This mystery was not yet to
be revealed to the neophyte
Birth
to
Birth of Horus," the birth of the gods,
womb from
Good the
out
Seed."
the mysterious Silence, the matter
is
Though some have conjectured that the "cock" was the
popular name for the Temple- watchman who called the hours.
1
Wisdom,
THE VIRGIN OP THE WORLD
163
the
Good, the
But
is
seed
is
Osiris.
in our treatise
this high state
us,
the
herself,
Isis
Agathodaimon,
Isis,
Horus has not yet reached
as the introductory
pouring forth for him "the
immortality "
only,
"
which souls
receive from gods"; he
is
first
have
to
words tell
draught of
custom
to
being raised to the under-
standing of a daimon, but not as yet to that of a god.
All of
parcel
this,
the
of
Diodorus
moreover, seems to have been part and
Isis
mystery-tradition proper, for as
Hecatseus, informs
25), following
(i.
us, it
was Isis who "discovered the philtre of immortality,
by means of which, when her son Horus, who had
been plotted against by the Titans, and found dead
(vcKpov) beneath the water, not only raised him to
life (awo-Trjcrai) by giving him life (\}svxw), but also
made him sharer in immortality."
Here we have evidence to show that in the mysterymyth Horus was regarded as the human soul, and
that there were two interpretations of the mystery.
It referred not only to the "rising from the dead"
in another body, or return to
ment, but also to a
consciousness
memory
of
still
life
in another enflesh-
higher mystery, whereby the
was restored to the
The soul had been cast by the
immortality
of the soul.
Titans, or the opposing powers of the subtle universe,
into the deep waters of the Great Sea, the
Ocean
of
Generation, or Celestial Nile, for as the mysterious
informant
of
Cleombrotus told him,1 these stories
of
Titans concerned daimons or souls proper, not bodies. 2
See below, where the story is given from Plutarch's Moralia.
Compare The Book of the Dead, lxxviii. 31, 32 ; Budge's
"I shall come forth
into
Trans. (London, 1901), ii. 255
the House of Isis, the divine lady. I shall behold sacred things
which are hidden, and I shall be led on to the secret and holy
things, even as they have granted unto me to see the birth of
1
164
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
From
this
death in the sea of matter,
the
Isis,
Mother Soul, brings Horus repeatedly back to life,
and finally bestows on him the knowledge of immortality, and so raises him from the "dead." 1
This birth of the " true
and
for
is
man
man "
within, the logos,
was
the chief of all mysteries.
In the
The Popular Theurgic Hermes-Cult," we
Chapter on "
have already, in elucidation of the sacramental formula,
" Thou art I and I am thou," quoted the agmphon from
Man and the
and lovers of the Aupanishad
Hindu-Aryan theosophy need hardly be
the Gospel of Eve concerning the Great
Little
Man
or Dwarf,
literature of
the Great God. Horus hath made me to be a spiritual body
through his soul, [and I see what is therein]." Compare the last
sentence with G. H., i. 7, and xi. (xii.) 6, where the pupil "sees"
by means
of the soul of his Master.
This passage, I believe, affords us an objective point of
departure for the reconsideration of C. W. Leadbeatefs statement,
in his Christian Creed (London, 1898), p. 45, that " Pontius
Pilate" is a pseudo-historical gloss for irSvros trix-nrSs, the "dense
sea" of "matter," into which the soul is plunged.
See for a
discussion of this hypothesis D. T. L., pp. 423 ff.
In connection with this a colleague has supplied me with an
exceedingly interesting note from Texts and Studies, iv. 2, Coptic
Apocryphal Gospels, p. 177, Frag. 4. The Sahidic text is found in
Rendiconti delta B. Accademia dei Lincei, vol. iii., sem. 2, pp.
381-384 (Frammenti Oopti, Nota Yla), by Ignazio Guidi (1887).
The legend runs that the Devil taking " the form of a fisherman,"
goes fishing, and
the
who
is
met by Jesus
Mount with His
disciples.
catcheth fish here, he
is
as
He was
the Master.
catch fish in the waters, the wonder
fish therein."
They then have a
unfortunately breaks
coming down from
that " he
It is not a wonder to
The Devil announces
off before
is
trial
in this desert, to catch
of skill,
the result
is told.
but the MS.
It is in this
Fragment that the following remarkable sentence occurs
"
Now
was saying these things before the authorities of Tiberius,
the king, Herod, could not refrain from setting Pilate at naught,
saying, 'Thou art a Galilcean foreign Egyptian Pontus?"
The
" Thou art a Pontus
literal translation from the Coptic runs
as Pilate
Galilaean foreign Egyptian."
THE VIRGIN OF THE WORLD
reminded
of "
the
man/
165
thumb," within,
of the size of a
in the ether of the heart. 1
"
Ishon "
But what is of more immediate interest is that the
same idea is to some extent found in the Old Covenant
documents, especially in the Prophetical and Wisdom
literature, which latter was strongly influenced by
Hellenistic ideas.
Ishon, which literally
means
"little
man "
or " dwarf,"
in A.V. generally translated " apple of the eye."
is
Thus we read
weeping
"
in a purely literal sense, referring to
Let not the apple
of
thine eye cease " (Lam.
18).
ii.
was, however, a
It
intelligence
or
common
persuasion,
soul itself, not merely the
that
the
reflection
of the image of another person, resided in the eye, and
was made manifest chiefly by the eye.
Thus the " apple of the eye " was used as a synonym
for a man's most precious possession, the treasure-house
as
it
were
of the light of a
man.
Compare, for instance, Kathopanishad, Sec. ii., Pt. ii., iv. 11, 12
" The Man, of the size of a thumb, resides in the midst, within
in the self, of the past and the future the lord from him a man
hath no desire to hide. This verily is That.
" The Man, of the size of a thumb, like flame free from smoke,
1
and of future the lord, the same is to-day, to-morrow the
same will he be. This verily is That." Mead and Chatto-
of past
padhyaya's Trans. (London, 1896), i. 68, 69.
Here "to-day" and "to-morrow" are said by some to refer
to different incarnations the " Man " (purusha) being the potential
Self, destined finally to become, or grow into the stature of, the
Great Self (Maha-purusha).
2
See the article, " Theosophic Light on Bible Shadows," in The
;
Theosophical Review (Nov. 1904), xxxv. 230, 231.
3
The minute image of a person reflected in the pupil of the
eye of another may to some extent account for the popular belief
underlying this identification.
"
166
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
And
we
so
"He [Yahweh]
read:
kept him [Israel]
as the apple of his eye " (Ps. xvii. 8)
where ishon is
in the Hebrew further glossed as the " daughter of the
eye "
and again
"
Thus
saith the
Lord
of
Hosts
He
that toucheth you toucheth the apple of his eye
(Zech. ii. 8).
The
" apple of the eye " (ishon) was, then,
of great value,
we read
in the Wisdom-literature that the
man who
of the
" his
lamp
" in the apple of his
this connects
is,
that he shall thus extinguish the
same Wisdom-teaching.
(Ps.
Ii.
man] thou
[of
or perhaps spiritual nature,
eye there will be darkness
shalt
make me
collection,
"
In the hidden
striking passages are to be found in
where the true
faithful to the
with the
"
Law
Israelite is
(Torah),
and
to
the Proverbs-
warned to remain
have no commerce
strange woman," the " harlot "
" false doctrines " of
"Keep my law
that
is,
the
the Gentiles. 2
as the apple of
thine eye" (Prov.
says the writer, speaking in the
name
of
Yahweh,
he has seen the young and foolish being led astray
by the
"
strange woman."
"
He went
the
house, in the twilight, in the evening;
(ishon)
1
and
know wisdom "
to
that pre-eminently Wisdom-chapter in
for
6).
But the most
vii. 2),
"
with a passage in the Psalms which shows
traces of the
*
that
is
shall be put out in obscure (ishon) darkness "
of his intelligence,
part
punishment
curses his father and mother
20) that
(Prov. xx.
lamp
something
something very precious, and, therefore,
and dark night " (Prov.
The same
idea which
vii. 9).
we found above
way
in
That
to her
the black
is
to say,
in connection with
Amnion.
2
To go " a- whoring " after strange gods and strange doctrines
was the graphic figure invariably employed by Hebrew orthodoxy
" to commit fornication " not unfrequently echoes the same idea in
the
New
Testament.
THE VIRGIN OF THE WORLD
167
lamp was put out; there was dark night in his eye,
man of his, which should be his true lightspark understanding the wisdom of Yahweh.
his
in that little
we have
Here, I think,
additional evidence, that the
the eye was the seat of the
idea, that the pupil of
man, was widespread in HellenBut even so, can we translate Koprj
It is
the " Apple of the World-Eye " ?
spiritual intelligence in
circles. 1
istic
as
KoarjuLov
true that Isis
the instrument or organ of conveying
is
the hidden wisdom to Horus, and that
Hermes
or the Logos
who
is
it is
the true light
eventually
itself,
which
shines through her, the pupil of Egypt's eye, 2 out of
that mysterious darkness, in which she found
when she
self,
Kamephis;
but
is
this
sufficient
On
the
new
and
title,
version?
the whole I
new
for
justification
rejecting the traditional translation of the
adopting a
her-
received illumination at the hands of
rendering
am
may
inclined to think, that though
at first sight appear
strained, nevertheless in proportion as
somewhat
we become more
remember the thoughtwe may venture so to translate
the "Apple or Pupil of the Eye of
familiarized with the idea and
environment
Isis,
it.
then, is
On
Osiris."
of the time,
earth the "mysterious black"
is
Egypt
study on the subject, see Monseur (E.), "L'Ame
and Feb. 1905), who
discusses the significance in primitive religion of the reflected
image to be seen in the pupil of the eye. This " little man " of
1
For the
latest
Pupilline," Rev. de VHist. des Belig. (Jan.
the eye was taken to be
2
Cf.,
much
its soul,
for the idea in the
of the fire as
mind
and
to control all its functions.
of the ancients,
"So
light,
they
Tim. 45 B
would not burn, but gave a gentle
formed into a substance akin to the light of every-day life and
the pure fire which is within us and related thereto they made to
flow through the eyes in a stream smooth and dense, compressing
the whole eye, and especially the centre part, so that it kept out
everything of a coarser nature, and allowed to pass only this pure
;
element."
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
168
wisdom-land.
herself, the
Isis is
the mysterious wisdom
for she is that
even more than this,
wisdom but now truly illumined by the
direct sight, the
new dawn
of Egypt, but in our treatise she is
of
which she speaks
of the Trismegistic discipline
(4).
To a Greek, however, the word Koprj would combine
and not distinguish the two meanings of the title over
which we have been labouring but even as logos meant
both " word " and " reason," so Jcore would mean both
" virgin " and " pupil of the eye
but as it is
"
impossible to translate it in English by one word, we
;
have followed the traditional rendering.
The Sixty Soul-Regions
We now turn to a few of the most important points
which require more detailed treatment than the space
of a footnote can accommodate.
There are, of course,
many
other points that could be elaborated, but
if
that
were done, the present work would run into volumes.
The number of degrees into which the soul-stuff
(psychosis) is divided, is given as three, and as sixty
If this statement stood by itself we should have
(10).
been somewhat considerably puzzled to have known
what
to
make
of
it,
even when we remembered the
is par excellence the number
and that he who can unriddle the enigma
mystic statement that 60
of the soul,
will
know
its
nature.
Fortunately, however,
xxvii.),
we
find
if
we
turn to
S.
H., 6 (Ex.
that according to this tradition the
soul-regions also were divided into 60 spaces, presumably
corresponding to the types of souls.
They were
4 main divisions and 60 special spaces,
with no overlapping (7). These spaces were also called
in
zones, firmaments or layers.
We are
further told (6) that the lowest division, that
THE VIRGIN OF THE WORLD
169
the one nearest to the earth, consists of 4 spaces;
is
the second, of 8
And
main
the third, of 16
further
still
(7),
and the fourth,
This introduces an
divisions 12 intervallic ones.
element
of 32.
that there were besides the 4
of uncertainty, for, as far as I
am
aware,
we
have no objective information which can enable us to
determine how the intervallic divisions were located in
the
mind
of
the writer
scheme has suggested
speculation
itself to
is
rash, but a
me, and I append
it
with
all reservation.
First of all
we have 4 main
divisions
or planes,
separated from one another by 3 determinations of some
whole ordering pertains to the Air proper,
and perhaps the 4 states of Air were regarded as
earthy, watery, aery, and fiery Air.
The 3 determinations may perhaps have been regarded as corresponding to the three main grades or florescences of the
soul-stuff,
which were apparently of a superior
sort, for the
substance.
4 may further have been reby three intervallic determinations
so that we should have 3 such intervals in the lowest
division, subdividing it into 4 spaces of 1 space each
3 in the second, subdividing it into 4 spaces of 2 spaces
each
3 in the third, subdividing it into 4 spaces of 4
Each
division of the
garded as divided
off
spaces each; and 3 in the fourth, subdividing
4 spaces of 8 spaces
would thus be 12.
each.
The sum
it
into
of these intervals
Plutarch's Yogin
In this connection, however, I cannot refrain from
appending a pleasant story told by Plutarch. 1
1
Be
Defectu
Bernardakis
Oraculorum, xxi., xxii. (421a-422c), ed. G. N.
See my paper,
97-101.
iii.
1891),
(Leipzig,
"Plutarch's Yogi," in The Theosophical Review (Dec. 1891),
295-297.
ix.
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
170
The speaker
man and man
is
of
Cleombrotus, a Lacedaemonian gentle-
means,
who was
a great traveller, and
a greedy collector of information of all sorts to form
He had spent
been a voyage
beyond the Eed Sea. On his travels Cleombrotus had
heard of a philosopher-recluse, who lived in complete
the basis of a philosophical religion.
much time
in Egypt,
and had
also
when he was
seen by
was that a
certain divine inspiration came upon him, and he came
forth and " prophesied " to the nobles and royal scribes
retirement, except once a year
" the folk
round the Eed Sea
who used
to flock to hear him.
"
then
With
it
great difficulty,
and only after the expenditure of much money,
Cleombrotus discovered the hermitage of this recluse,
and was granted a courteous reception.
Our old philosopher was the handsomest man Cleombrotus had ever met, deeply versed in the knowledge
of plants, and a great linguist.
With Cleombrotus,
however, he spoke Doric, and almost in verse, and " as
he spake perfume filled the place from the sweetness of
his breath."
His knowledge
the various mystery - cults was
of
profound, and his
intimate
unseen world remarkable
acquaintance
he explained
with
many
the
things to
Cleombrotus, and especially the nature of the daimones,
and the important part they played as
factors in
any
satisfactory interpretation of ancient mythology, seeing
that most of the great myths referred to the doings of
the daimones and not of mortals.
Cleombrotus, however, has told his story merely as
an introduction to the quotation
tion let
fall
plurality of worlds
1
In
runs
of a scrap of informa-
by the old philosopher concerning the
l
;
thus, then, he continues
this referring to the passage in the
"
Timmus, (55 c
Now, he who, duly reflecting on all
this,
d),
which
enquires whether
THE VIRGIN OF THE WORLD
"The Plain
He
"
told
me
Truth"
of
number
that the
171
worlds was neither
of
but that there were 183 of
them, arranged in the figure of a triangle of which each
side contained 60, and of the remaining 3 one set at
infinite,
nor one, nor
And
each angle.
five,
those on the sides touch each other,
And
revolving steadily as in a choral dance.
the triangle
of
Common Hearth
the
is
the area
of all,
and
is
Plain of Truth/ in which the logoi and
and paradigms of all things which have been, and
which shall be, lie immovable; and the iEon [or
Eternity] being round them [sc. the ideas], time flows
down upon the worlds like a stream. And the sight
and contemplation (6eav) of these things is possible for
called the
'
the souls of
men only
ideas
once in ten thousand years, should
they have lived a virtuous
our initiations here below
true vision and
And
life.
is
the highest of
only the dream of that
delivered
and the discourses [sc.
in the mystic rites] have been carefully
devised to
awaken the memory
initiation
of the
sublime things
above, or else are to no purpose."
the worlds are to be regarded as indefinite or definite in number,
will be of opinion that
the notion of
their
indefiniteness
is
and ignorant mind. He, however, who raises the question whether they are to be truly
regarded as one or five, takes up a more reasonable position"
characteristic of a sadly indefinite
(Jowett's Trans., 3rd ed.,
1
Gf. 8.
initiate
H., 3
"
iii.
Now
475, 476).
though
and that my
as I chance myself to be as
into the nature that transcendeth death,
have crossed the Plain of Truth " and K. K., 22 " The
Monarch came, and sitting on the Throne of Truth made answer
to their prayers."
The locus classicus is, of course, Plato, Phcedrus,
feet
248
2
b.
Of.
K. K., 37
" Tis they who, taught
5
things below have been disposed by
God
to
by Hermes that the
be in sympathy with
things above, established on the earth the sacred rites o'er which
the mysteries in heaven preside."
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
172
This statement I
am
to regard as
inclined
one
of
the most distinct pronouncements on the nature of the
higher mysteries which has been preserved to us from
and the locus classicus and point of departure
any really fruitful discussion of the true nature of
the philosophic mysteries, and yet I have never seen it
antiquity,
for
referred to in this connection.
Our old philosopher was well acquainted with the
Egyptian mystery- tradition, for Oleombrotus obtained
information from him concerning the esoteric significance
Typhon and
of
falls
and what I have quoted above
Osiris,
naturally into place in the scheme of ideas of the
tradition preserved in the treatise
cussing. 1
It,
matter, for
it
and possible
which we are
dis-
indeed, pertains to a higher side of the
purports to be the highest theoria of
even
for the souls
of
all,
the most righteous
only at long periods of time.
The
symbolical.
is
the " plain of truth," the
Of course the representation
triangle is no triangle
"
hearth
it is
The
of the universe."
to the plane of Fire proper
ordering of the
spaces.
The
"
worlds
flows
it is
down from
worlds or cosmoi,
Air.
Still,
the
similar to that of our soul
triangle is shut off
world by the Moil
Time
" is
triangle, then, pertained
and not
from the manifested
out of space and time proper.
it.
The worlds proper are 3
each divided into
60 subordinate
cosmoi, in choral dance, or orderly harmonious move-
ment of one to the other. Our soul-spaces, then, may
have been regarded as some reflection of these supernal
conditions.
One
1
Our
is
almost tempted to turn the plane triangle
difficulty,
however,
is
that Plutarch, in the words of one
of his characters, rejects the idea of this
way Egyptian, and
Sicily,
numbering being in anyHimera in
ascribes it to a certain Petron of
thereby suggesting a probable Pythagorean connection.
THE VIRGIN OF THE WORLD
173
and imagine the idea
world or wheel, at each of the four angles, and to
speculate on the Wheels of Ezekiel, the prototype of the
into a solid figure, a tetrahedron, 1
of a
Mercabah
Heavenly Chariot of Kabalism, the Throne
Supreme, but I will not try the patience
of my readers any further, for doubtless most of them
will have cried already Hold, enough
Truth
of
or
of the
The Boundaries of the Numbers which Preexist in the Soul
Perhaps, however,
it
missing the subject,
to
would be
as well, before dis-
consider
very briefly what
Plato, following Pythagoras, 2 has to say concerning the
"boundaries" of
soul.
all
numbers which pre-exist
These soul-numbers are
1, 2,
3, 4,
8,
9*,
in the
27 (the
combination of the two Pythagorean series
1, 2, 4, 8 and
Of these numbers
1, 2, 3 are apportioned to the World-Soul itself, in its
intellectual or spiritual aspect, and signify its abiding
in (1), its proceeding from (2), and its returning to
itself (3)
this with regard to primary natures.
But in
1, 3, 9, 27),
or
1, 2, 3,
22 23
,
32 33
,
addition,
intermediate
" providentially "
subtle
natures or
souls
are
ordered in their evolution and involu-
tion, by the World-Soul
they proceed according to the
power of the fourth term (4 or 2 2),
which possesses
generative powers/' and return according to that of the
fifth (9 or 3 2 ), " which reduces them to one/'
Finally
;
'
'
also solid or gross natures are also "providentially"
ordered in their procession according to 8 (2 3 ), and in
their conversion according to 27 (3 3 ). 3
1
See the section, "
Some
Outlines of Monology," F. F. F., pp.
311-335.
2
See
my
Orpheus (London, 1896), pp. 255-262.
Taylor (T.), "Introd. to Timseus," Works
(London, 1804), p. 442.
3
Of.
of
Plato
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
174
From
which we get the following scheme
all of
progression and conversion of
circular
main
various
stages through which
1
31
22
32
2s
With
compare
this
:
"
Do
plane into the solid
to
eirlireSov (ed.
passes:
21
Psellus, 19)
it
of
the soul, the
3s
the "Chaldsean
not
"
firj
Oracle" (ap.
the spirit, nor turn the
soil
irvevixa juLoXvvfls
Cory, Or.
clii.,
p.
juLrjre
fiaQvvys
270); where the
four stages correspond to the point, line, plane, and
It
solid.
is
also to be
remembered that since
= l,
= land3 = l.
That these are the boundary numbers
of the soul,
according to Pythagoreo-Platonie tradition,
is of interest,
but how this can in any way be made to agree with
the ordering of the soul-spaces in our treatise
by
is
numbers together
we
get
and by farther
9
2
3
4+8
54,
+ + 27)
(1 + + +
of
numbers
the
World-Soul
proper
adding the
(1 + 2 + 3)
we get 6, and so total out the whole sum of the phases
fudging," as we used to
to 60, savours somewhat of
It is by no means convincing, for we
call it at school.
That
puzzle.
adding
these
<l
are
here
combining particulars
though they were
of
with
equal dignity;
still
universals
as
the ancients
frequently resort to such combinations.
That, however, there
is
something more than learned
Plato may be seen by
"
on
the " nuptial number
the brilliant study
1
of Plato, which was based upon the properties of the
trifling in these
numbers
of
See Adam (J.), The Nuptial Number
and Significance (London, 1891).
Rep., viii. 5450-547 A.
of Plato
Its Solution
of
Adam
THE VIRGIN OF THE WORLD
"
175
Pythagorean triangle," a right-angled triangle to the
containing sides of which the values of 3 and 4 were
given, the value of its hypothenuse being consequently
and
3x4x5 = 60.
The numbers 3, 4, 5, together
8, and 1, 3, 9, 27, were the
numerical sequences which supplied those " canons of
proportion " with which the Pythagoreans and Platonists
5
with the series
1,
2, 4,
chiefly busied themselves.
throw any
on the ordering of the soul spaces as given
our treatise, and we are therefore tempted to
Still,
as far as I can see, this does not
clear light
in
connect
it
with the tradition of the mysterious 60's
But what that choral dance was which
60's, and whether
they proceeded by stages which might correspond to
3's and 4's and 5's, we have, as far as I am aware,
of Cleombrotus.
ordered the subordinate cosmoi into
no data on which
to
base
an argument.
It
may,
however, have been connected with Babylonian ideas
the 3
may have been
making
12,
and
regarded as " falling into
this stage in its turn
as " falling into " 5,
and so making
" 4, so
have been regarded
60.
The Mysterious Cylinder
It is to be noticed, however, that before the. souls
the Demiurge "appointed for them limits
and reservations 1 in the height of Upper Nature, that
they might keep the cylinder a- whirl in proper order
and economy" (11).
They were, then, confined to certain orderings and
But what is the mysterious " cylinder " which
spaces.
revolted,
they were to keep revolving
So far I have come across nothing that throws any
1
Which may have been regarded
soul-spaces,
as
the prototypes of the
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
176
on the subject. However, Proclus 1 says
that Porphyry stated that among the Egyptians the
letter % surrounded by a circle, symbolized the mundane
direct light
soul.
It
is
curious that Porphyry should have referred this
idea to the Egyptians,
Plato, to
whom
when he must have known
that
Porphyry looked as the corypheus
of
philosophy, had treated of the significance of the
all
symbol
(in Greek x) in perhaps the most discussed
passage of the Timceus (36b). 2 This letter symbolized
the mutual relation of the axes and equators of the
sphere of the "same" (the "fixed stars") and
sphere of the
"
the
other " (the " seven planetary spheres ").
Porphyry, however,
may have
Pythagoras, got the idea in the
common
the
believed that Plato, or
first
This enigma of Plato
is
described as follows by Jowett
in his Introduction to the Timceus 3
"
place from Egypt
persuasion of his school.
The universe revolves round
a centre once in twenty-
four hours, but the orbits of the fixed stars take a
different direction
from that
and the inner sphere
at a point opposite to that of their
moving in a
The outer
and meet again
of the planets.
cross one another
contact; the
first
from left to right along the side
a parallelogram which is supposed to be inscribed in
the second also moving in a circle along the diagonal
first
of
it,
circle
the same parallelogram from right to left 4
of
Comment,
in
Plat.
Tim. y
216c
ed.
C.
E.
C.
or, in
Schneider
(Vratislavise, 1847), p. 250.
2
passage which Proclus, op.
by means
further explains
3
iii.
Jowett
(B.),
Dialogues
of the
cit., 213a (ed. Sch.,
"harmonic canon" or
of Plato
(3rd
ed.,
Oxford,
p.
152)
ruler.
1892),
403.
4
" The motion of the same he carried round by
Of. text 36c
the side to the right, and the motion of the diverse diagonally to
the left," that is the side of the rectangular figure supposed to be
:
THE VIRGIN OF THE WORLD
other words, the
first
177
describing the path of the equator,
the second, the path of the ecliptic."
We
should thus, just as the Egyptians, according to
Porphyry, symbolized
it,
represent the conception
by
the figure of a circle with two diameters suggesting
respectively the equator
But what
refers,
is
ecliptic.
but which he does not further describe?
spheres;
are
circles
must be a
figure
and the
the rectangular figure to which Jowett
"of the same."
solid figure inscribed in
we now
If
The
the rectangular
and, therefore,
the sphere
set the circle revolving
parallel to the longer sides of the figure, this " parallelo-
gram "
will trace out a cylinder, while the seven spheres
of the " other," the " souls " of the " planets,"
parallel to
one
opposite direction to the sphere of the "
their
moving
and in an
same," will, by
of the diagonals of our figure,
mutual difference
of rates of motion, cause their
"bodies" (the souls surrounding the bodies) to trace
out spiral orbits.
All this in
and
into
I confess, seems very far-fetched,
itself,
I should have
thrown
my
the waste-paper basket,
notes on the subject
but for the following
consideration
Basil of Caesarea, in his Hexoemeron, or Homilies on
inscribed in the circle of the " same," and diagonally, across the
and 38d, 39a " Now,
;
rectangular figure from corner to corner
when
[i.e.
all
the stars which were necessary to the creation of time
the spheres of the sun, moon, and five planets] had attained
a motion suitable to them,
and had become
living creatures, having
bodies fastened by vital chains, and learned their appointed task,
moving in the motion
of the diverse,
which
diagonal,
is
and passes
governed by the motion of the same, they revolved,
The motion of
some in a larger and some in a lesser orbit.
the same made them turn all in a spiral." With these instruments
of "time," surrounded by the sphere of the same, compare the
idea of time flowing down on the worlds, from the iEon, in the
story of Gleombrotus.
through, and
is
VOL.
III.
12
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
178
it "
the Six Days of Creation, declared
interest to us whether the earth
is
a matter of no
a sphere or a cylinder
x
or a disk, or concave in the middle like a fan."
The
cylinder-idea, then,
was a favourite theory with
regard to the earth-shape in the time of Basil, that
is
the fourth century.
This cylinder-idea, however, I
am
inclined to think
was very ancient. In the domain of Greek speculation
we first meet with it in what little is known of the
system of Anaximander of Miletus, the successor of
Thales.
Anaximander
earth
is
reported to have believed that " the
a heavenly body, controlled by no other power,
is
and keeping its position because it is the same distance
from all things; the form of it is curved, cylindrical,
like a stone column
it has two faces
one of these is
;
the ground beneath our
to
feet,
and the other
is
opposite
it."
And
again: "That the earth
and that
Now
its
depth
is
a cylinder in form,
is
one-third of
its
breadth."
have never been able to persuade myself
Greece "invented"
the ideas ascribed to them. They stood on the borderI
that the earliest philosophers of
land
of
mythology and
mysticism,
probability, took their ideas
and,
from ancient
in
every
traditions.
So quoted in Andrew Dickson White's History of the Warfare
of Science with Theology in Christendom (New York, 1898), i. 92.
Dr White, unfortunately, does not give the exact reference. The
1
"fan" is, of course, the winnowing fan, a broad basket into which
the corn mixed with chaff was received after threshing, and was
then thrown up into the wind, so as to disperse the chaff and
leave the grain.
2
91 r
Alexander of Aphrodisias, Comment, on Aristotle in Meteor.,
(vol. i., 268 I d)
Diels, Doxographi Grceci (Berlin, 1879),
p. 478.
3
Cf. Aetius,
Be
Placitis Eeliguice,
iii.
10 (Diels, 579).
Plutarch, Strom., 2 (Diels, 579).
See Fairbanks (A.), The
First Philosophers of Greece (London, 1898), pp. 13, 14.
THE VIRGIN OF THE WORLD
Anaximander himself was
we know even
179
in every probability indirectly,
by Egyptian
and Chaldsean notions indeed, who can any longer
"
doubt in the light of the Cnossus excavations ? 1
Anaximander is thus said to have regarded the
for all
directly, influenced
;
earth-cylinder
cylinder
is
as fixed, whereas in
not the earth and
is
our treatise the
not fixed;
it
is,
on
the contrary, a celestial cylinder and in constant motion.
Can
it,
was
associated with
then, possibly
be that this cylinder notion
some Babylonian idea, and had
its source in that country par excellence of cylinders ?
In Babylonia, moreover, the cylinder-shape was frequently used for
seals,
fashioned like a small roller,
so that the characters or symbols engraved
on them
could be impressed on soft substance, such as wax.
and Egyptian civilizations
and pre-eminently
In the Copticso in the matter of sigils and seals.
Gnostic works, translated from Greek originals, and
indubitably mainly of Egyptian origin, the idea of
" characters," " seals," and " sigils," as types impressed
on matter, is a commonplace.
Can our cylinder, then, have some connection with
Further,
were, as
the Babylonian
we know,
closely associated,
the circle of animal types, or types of
life,
of
which
The souls of the
so much is said in our treatise?
supernal man class would then have had the task of
keeping this cylinder in motion, so that thereby the
various types were continually impressed on the plasms
the sphere of generation, or ever-becomingthe
in
wheel
This
air,
of genesis?
may
be
moreover,
is
so, for
in P. S.
An
19,
we read: "The
the engine, or machine, through which
1
Delitzseh also, in his Babel und Bibel, states that the great
debt of early Greece to Assyria will be made clear in a forth-
coming work
of
German
scholarship.
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
180
things are made
mortal from mortal things
and things like these."
So also in K. K, 28, Hermes says: "And I will
skillfully devise an instrument, mysterious, possessed
of power of sight that cannot err
an instrument
all
that binds together all that's done."
Here again we have the same idea, all connected
of Fate or Heimarmene
the instrument
of Hermes is the Karmic Wheel, by which cause and
effect are linked together, and that too with a moral
with the notion
purpose. 1
Finally, in connection with our cylinder,
we may
compare the Aryan Hindu myth of the "Churning
of the Ocean," in the Vishnu Purana.
The churningstaff or Pillar was the heaven-mountain, round which
was coiled the cosmic serpent, to serve as rope for
twirling it.
The rope was held at either end by the
Devas and Asuras, or gods and daemons.
There is
also a mystic symbol in India which probably connects
with a similar range of ideas. It is two superimposed
triangles
(^), with
the centre a serpent
resemblance to our
and round
twined, a somewhat curious
and cylinder-idea. And so much
their apices touching,
is
for this puzzling symbol.
The Eagle,
We
now
Lion,
Dragon and Dolphin
pass to the four leading types of animals,
connected with souls of the highest rank
namely,
the eagle, lion, dragon, and dolphin (24, 25) which
it may be of interest to compare with the symbolism
of
some
of
the degrees of the Mithriac Mysteries
1
I have also got a stray reference, " KvXwtipos, Pint., 2, 682 c,
Xylander's pages," but I have not been able to verify this.
2
See Cnmont (F.), Textes et Monuments figures relat. aux
Mysthres de Mithra (Bruxelles, 1899),
i.
315.
THE VIRGIN OF THE WORLD
In one
preliminary degrees of the
of the
181
rite,
we
are
informed, some of the mystae imitated the voices of
birds, others
interpreted
All of this was
the roaring of lions. 1
by the
initiates
having reference to
as
Thus Porphyry 2
transmigration or metempsychosis.
tells
us that in the Mysteries of Mithras they called
the
mystae
by the names
common
symbolizing man's
some
called
women
men
the
of
animals, so
different
lower nature with that
Thus, for instance, they
the irrational animals.
of
of
" lions,"
and some
of
the
some were
called "ravens," while
"
the " fathers," the highest grade, were called " hawks
"lionesses,"
''eagles."
The "ravens" were the lowest grade;
those of the " lion " grade were apparently previously
and
invested with the disguises
and masks
a series
of
of animal forms before they received the lion shape.
Porphyry
tells us, further, that Pallas,
to Porphyry's day, written
Mithriaca,
now
unfortunately
was vulgarly believed
truth
it
animal
Ps. Augustine, Qucestt. Vet.
xxxiv.
2
Be
col.
2214
had, prior
lost, asserts
that
all this
to refer to the zodiac, but that in
symbolized a mystery of the
invested with
is
who
an excellent treatise on the
natures
et
Nov.
human
of
Test.
soul,
various
which
kinds, 3
(Migne, P. L., torn,
f.).
Nauck, p. 253).
Clement of Alexandria on the Basilidian theory of
"appendages," remembering that the School of Basilides was
strongly tinctured with Egyptian ideas. " The Basilidians are
accustomed to give the name of appendages (or accretions) to the
These essences, they say, have a certain substantial
passions.
existence, and are attached to the rational soul, owing to a certain
turmoil and primitive confusion. On to this nucleus other bastard
and alien natures of the essence grow, such as those of the wolf,
And not only do human souls thus
ape, lion, goat, etc.
intimately associate themselves with the impulses and impressions
of irrational animals, but they even initiate the movements and
3
Abstinentia, iv. 16 (ed.
Gf.
beauties of plants, because they likewise bear the characteristics
182
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
Thus they
according to the tradition of the Magi.
call
the sun (and therefore those corresponding to this
nature) a bull, a
lion,
a dragon, and a hawk.
remembered that Appuleius, 1
It is further to be
in
describing the robe with which he was invested after
his initiation into the Mysteries of Isis, tells us that he
was enthroned
as the sun, robed in twelve sacramental
garments
these garments were of linen with
upon them, so that from every side
" you might see that I was remarkable by the animals
which were painted round my vestment in various
This dress, he says, was called the " Olympic
colours."
stoles or
beautiful paintings
Stole."
Momus
Finally,
reader a
may
it
little
Among
the Greeks
Momus was
the spirit of fault-finding.
(214), places
make
perhaps be of service to
better acquainted with
the personification of
Hesiod, in his
Theogony
him among the second generation
answer
Stasimus,3
of
to
we
War, and on
floods (water),
human
Momus
race
sent the Theban
first
this proving insufficient,
annihilating the
to
the
Zeus, in
Earth's prayer to relieve her of her over-
population of impious mankind,4
men
when
learn that,
of the
From
children of Night, together with the Fates.
Gyjoria
the
Momus.
bethought him
by thunderbolts
advises the Father of
marry the goddess Thetis
of
and
gods and
(fire)
to a mortal, so that a
beautiful daughter (Aphrodite-Helen) might be born to
of plants
appended
to
them.
characteristics [of minerals]
of
adamant"
Nay,
shown by
there
also
certain
(F. F. F., p. 276).
Metamorphoses, Book
Which Pindar and Herodotus
See Frag. I. from the Scholion on Horn.,
See K. K., 34.
are
habits, such as the hardness
xi.
ascribed to
Homer
12., i.
himself.
ff.
THE VIRGIN OF THE WORLD
183
them, and so mankind, Greeks and Barbarians, on her
account be involved in internecine
Trojan War.
that
by the
namely, the
11.,
Momus whom Homer meant
was
it
strife
Further, the Scholiast on
avers
" will " or " counsel " of Zeus.
Sophocles, moreover, wrote a Satyric
"
5,
i.
to represent
Momus," 1 and so also Achseus. 2
Both Plato 8 and Aristotle 4 refer
to
drama
Momus.
called
Calli-
machus, the chief librarian of the Alexandrian Library,
from 260-240
B.C.,
in his JEtia,b pilloried his critic
and
former pupil Apollonius Ehodius as Momus.
Momus, moreover, was
a favourite figure with the
Sophists and Ehetoricians, especially of
century
A.D.
In Ml. Aristides,6 Momus,
the
as
second
he could
no fault with Aphrodite herself, found fault with
Lucian makes Aphrodite vow to oppose
her shoe. 7
Momus tooth and nail,8 and makes Momus find fault
with even the greatest works of the gods, such as the
house of Athene, the bull of Zeus, and the men of
Hephaestus, the last because the god-smith had not
put windows in their breasts so that their hearts might
find
be seen.9
And, interestingly enough in connection with our
one of his witty sketches,10 makes
treatise, Lucian, in
1
Frag. 369-374B (ed. Dind.)
the
context of which some
believe to be found in Lucian's Hermotimus, 20.
2 Frag. 29, from the Scholion on Aristophanes, Pax, 357.
" Nor would even Momus find fault with
3 Eep., vi. 487a
:
this."
4
De
And
Partt.
Animal, iii.
end
also at the
Epigram. Frag., 70.
6
ed. Jebb,
Or., 49
;
ii.
Dial. Deor., xx. 2.
Hermot., xx.
3
10
Bab. Fab.,
Deor. Gonsil.,
iv.
of his
Hymn
7
p. 497.
Nig., xxxii.
cf.
lix.
2.
and Jup.
Of.
to
Apollo,
ii.
112; also
Julian, Ep. ad Dionys.
Dial. Deor., ix.
Trag., xxii.
Ver. Hist.,
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
184
Momus
one
Momus
finds fault because
reckoned among the gods, and
refrain
to
with Zeus
Bacchus is
commanded by Zeus
of the persons of the dialogue
and Hermes.
from
making
is
ridicule
of
Hercules
and
Asclepius.
The popular
old
man, 1
figure of
Momus was
that of a feeble
very different representation from the
grandiose Intelligence of our treatise, a true Lucifer.
Some
representations give his one sharp tooth, and
The story runs that Zeus finally banished
him from Olympus for his fault-finding. 2
The Onomastica Vaticana s connects Momus with
others wings.
Mammon
but this side-issue need not detain
us.
The Mystic Geography of Sacred Lands
With regard
to the symbolic figure of the
Earth
of
46-48 of the second K. K. Extract, and the persuasion
that Egypt was the heart or centre thereof, we may
append two quotations on the subject from widely
different standpoints.
The first is from Dr Andrew
D. White's recent volumes 5
" Every great people of antiquity, as a rule, regarded
:
own
its
central city or most holy place as necessarily
the centre of the earth.
The Chaldeans held that their holy house of the
The Egyptians sketched the
gods' was the centre.
"
'
of a human figure, in which
and the centre of it Thebes. For
was Babylon for the Hindus, it was
world under the form
Egypt was the
heart,
the Assyrians,
it
Mount Meru;
for the Greeks, so far as the civilized
Philostratus, Ep. 21.
"
For the above and other
Momus," in Koscher's Lexicon.
references, see
Triimpel's art.
Lug., 194, 59.
See Nestle's art. "Mammon," in Cheyne's Encyclopaedia Biblica.
Op. supra cit., i. 98, 99.
THE VIRGIN OF THE WORLD
world was concerned, Olympus or the temple
for
the modern
sacred stone
Mohammedans,
is
it
185
of
Delphi
Mecca and
its
the Chinese, to this day, speak of their
empire as the middle kingdom.' It was in accordance,
then, with a simple tendency of human thought that
'
the Jews believed the centre of the world to be Jerusalem.
"
The book
Jerusalem as in the
of Ezekiel speaks of
middle of the earth, and
other parts of the world as
all
city.
Throughout the 'ages of
was very generally accepted as a direct
revelation from the Almighty regarding the earth's
set
around the holy
faith' this
St Jerome, the greatest authority of the early
form.
Church upon the
Bible, declared, on the strength of
this utterance of the prophet, that
Jerusalem could be
nowhere but at the earth's centre in the ninth century
Archbishop Rabanus Maurus reiterated the same argu;
ment
in the eleventh century
Hugh
of St Victor
gave
and
sermon at Clermont urging
the Franks to the crusade, declared, Jerusalem is the
in the thirteenth century
middle point of the earth
to the doctrine another scriptural demonstration;
Pope Urban,
in his great
'
'
an
ecclesiastical
Csesarius
of
writer
much
in
vogue, the
monk
Heisterbach, declared, 'As the heart in
the midst of the body, so
is
Jerusalem situated in the
so
was that Christ
Dante accepted
was
this view of Jerusalem as a certainty, wedding it to
immortal verse; and in the pious book of travels
ascribed to Sir John Mandeville, so widely read in the
Middle Ages, it is declared that Jerusalem is at the
centre of the world, and that a spear standing erect
at the Holy Sepulchre casts no shadow at the equinox.
"Ezekiel's statement thus became the standard of
orthodoxy to early map-makers. The map of the world
at Hereford Cathedral, the maps of Andrea Bianco,
midst
of
our inhabited earth,'
'
it
crucified at the centre of the earth.'
186
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
Marino Sanuto, and a multitude of others fixed this
view in men's minds, and doubtless discouraged during
many generations any scientific statements tending to
unbalance this geographical centre revealed in Scripture."
So much for the righteous indignation of modern
now for cryptology and mysticism.
M. W. Blackden, in a recent article on " The Mysteries
and the Book of the Dead, " writes as follows 1
physical science
'
"One
other key there
is
without which
it
is
Dead with the idea
of discussing any of those gems of wisdom for which
old Egypt was so famous.
The knowledge of its
useless to approach The
Booh of
existence
is
the
no recent discovery
it
is
simply that
ancient nations such as the Egyptians, Chaldees, and
Jews, had a system
"
map
to
of
symbolic geography.
The Jewish and Egyptian
priestly caste endeavoured
out their lands in accordance with their symbols
of spiritual things, so far as the physical features
permit.
This
symbolism
of
mountain,
city,
would
plain,
and river extended from the various parts and
furniture of the Lodge, to use Masonic phraseology, up
to the spiritual anatomy, as it were, of both macrocosm
and microcosm.
" Thus in the Jewish Scriptures it is not difficult to
desert,
distinguish, in the prophetic battles of the nations that
were
to rage
round about Jerusalem, the same symbolism
we have more
directly expressed in a little old book
The Siege of Mansoul, the author of which was
the John Bunyan of The Pilgrim's Progress, a man
as
called
who
could well grasp the excellence of geographical
symbolism.
" I cannot, of course, here enter at length into the
geographical symbols of Egypt,
it
would take too long
but as I have given Jerusalem as a symbol, I
1
The Theosophical Bevieiv (July, 1902),
vol.
may
say
xxx. pp. 406, 407.
THE VIRGIN OF THE WORLD
187
further that Jerusalem as a symbol corresponds to the
Egyptian On, or Heliopolis, and so astronomically to
the centre of the world and of the universe, and in
the microcosm to the spiritual Heart of Man. 1
" But there is one difference between the Hebrew
and Egyptian city for whereas the actual Jerusalem
;
among the Hebrew prophets to that Jerunow is, and is in bondage with her children,
corresponded among the Egyptian priest-
corresponds
salem that
Heliopolis
hood to that
City, the
New
city
which was
to come, the
Heavenly
Heart, that should be given to redeemed
mankind."
Here then we have a
and so I leave
to itself
volume
him who has a mind to
thesis that deserves a
it to
undertake the labour.
1
" There is an old map of the world in the British Museum
which demonstrates both these significations. See also Mappa
Mundi, 'Ebsdorf,' 1284, and that in Hereford Cathedral made
by Richard of Haldingham, one of the Prebends, 1290-1310."
EXCERPT XXVII.
FEOM THE SERMON OF
TO HORUS
ISIS
on to the last without a break.
69, under heading, "Of
Hermes A Sermon of Isis to Horus " ; G. pp. 476-481
M. i. 342-352 W. i. 458-472.
Menard: Livre III., No. in. of " Fragments," etc., as
(Patrizzi (p. 34b) runs this
Text: Stob., Phys.,
68,
xli.
above, pp. 209-221.)
1
In wondrous fashion
I.
(Horus
said)
hast thou
explained to me, most mighty mother
Isis,
the
details of God's wondrous soul-making, and I
remain in wonder
me
I
but not as yet hast thou told
whereto the souls when freed from body go.
would then thank thee
by word
of
mouth
for being
made
initiate
into this vision of the soul, 8
only mother, deathless one
2.
And
Give
Isis said
ear,
my
son
most indispensable
is
this
have numbered the paragraphs for convenience of reference.
The mystes, speaking generally, was initiated by
word of mouth, the epoptes by sight or vision.
1
ixlarTis.
Oewpia.
188
FROM THE SERMON OF
ISIS
TO HORUS
189
That which doth hold together, doth
research.
have a place which doth not disappear.
also
what
this is
my
sermon
wondrous, mighty son of mighty
when they go
[the souls]
For
will set forth.
sire Osiris,
forth from bodies, are
not confusedly and in a rush dissolved into the
air,
and scattered in the
so that they cannot
rest of boundless Breath,
any more
return again to bodies
nor
is
as the
same
[souls]
possible, again,
it
them back unto that place from which
they came at first no more than water taken
to turn
from the bottom of a jar can be poured 1 [back
again] into the self-same place whence
taken
place peculiar to
it,
but
whole mass of water.
3.
is
mixed up with the
Not thus
is
it
[with
high-minded Horus
Now
as I chance myself to be as
and that
my feet
have crossed the Plain of Truth,
how
explain to thee in detail
preface this
by
though
nature which transcendeth death,
initiate into the
I will
was
nor does the same when taken take a
souls],
it
it is
telling thee that water is a
void of reason condensed from
and
body
many compound
things into a fluid mass, whereas the soul's a
thing of individual nature, son, and of a royal
kind, a
and of
work
of God's [own] hands
itself led
Reading
The
by
itself to
and mind,
mind.
iirix^v for iv4%uv.
construction of the whole of the above paragraph
exceedingly involved.
is
;
;
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
190
What then
doth come from " one
"
and not
from "other," cannot be mingled with a
different
thing
wherefore
needs must be that the soul's
it
congress with the body
a concord wrought by
is
God's necessity.
But that they
are not [all] confusedly
and
[all]
random and by chance sent up again to one
and the same place, but each to its own proper
region, is clear from what [the soul] doth suffer
while still it is in body and in plasm, when it
has been made dense against its proper nature.
at
Now
give
good
heed
the
to
similitude
recounted, Horus well-beloved
4.
Suppose in one and the same cage have
men and
been shut up both
doves and
eagles,
swans, and swallows, hawks and sparrows,
and snakes, and
amphibious animals, as
and our own
and sheep, and some
and
seals
crocodiles
others, tortoises
my
then, that,
one [and the same] moment they are
They
[all] will
turn instinctively
gathering spots and roofs
ether, in
which
its
the
nature
is
above [the doves]
men dw ell
r
son, at
[all] let out.
man
eagle
to his
to
the
to spend its life
the doves into the neighbouring air
[to that]
and
wolves,
leopards,
lions,
dogs, and hares, and kine
flies,
the hawks
the swallows where
the sparrows round the fruit-trees
the swans where they
may
sing
the earth, [but only] so far from
the
it
flies
about
as they can
FROM THE SERMON OF
ISIS
TO HORUS
with [-out their losing] smell of
the
my
fly,
son,
tends to earth)
towards the
spots
and
to stalls
after men's tracks
fields
[all] their
and
leopards
the kine
the sheep to pastures
snakes to earth's recesses
with
especially
and the
lions
(for that
the wolves towards desert
hills;
the dogs
the
man
fond of
is
man
191
the
the seals and tortoises,
kind, unto the deeps
and streams,
so that they neither should be robbed of the dry
land nor taken from their cognate water
one returning to
internal
means
So every
its
proper place by means of
has to go,
and
say,
soul,
both in a
unless some
my
human form and
son,
that
foolish
it
is
knows where
person 1 come
possible
should live in water and a tortoise up
5.
And
plunged in
if
its
of judgment.
otherwise incarnate on the earth,
it
each
this
flesh
a bull
in air
be the case when they are
and blood
that they do nothing
contrary to what's appointed them, e'en though
they are being punished
(for
a punishment for them)
[is it
the case]
being put in body
how
when they
Now
wise.
is
the more
possess their proper
liberty [and are set free] from
being plunged [in body]
much
punishment and
the most holy ordering of souls is on this
Turn thou thy gaze above, most noble-
1
ns rwv rvfywviwv an interesting phrase as showing that Typhon
was regarded as the enemy of Osiris (the Logos or Reason).
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
192
natured son, upon their orders.
The space from
moon devotes
height of heaven to the
itself
unto
the gods and stars and to the rest of providence
my
the space,
son,
from moon to us
dwelling
is
place of souls.
This so great
which
however, has in
a belt to
it
our use to give the name of wind, a
it is
definite
air,
expanse in which
refresh the things
it
is
kept moving to
on earth, and which
will
itself
does
hereafter tell about.
Yet in no manner by
become an
it
its
motion on
obstacle to souls
for
though
it
keeps on moving, souls can dart up or dart
down, 1 just as the case
may
be, free
from
all let
For they pass through without
and hindrance.
immixture or adhesion as water flows through
oil.
6.
Now
are four
main
Of these
the earth
and sixty
son, there
special spaces.
upwards from
of four spaces, so that the earth in
certain of its
its
divisions
[divisions] the first one
is
and comes
my
of this interval, Horus,
mountain heights and peaks extends
so far, but
beyond these
it
nature go in height.
The second
after
this is of eight spaces, in
which the motions of the winds take
Give
1
cannot in
Gf.
heed,
son,
for
thou
art
place.
hearing
the beginning of the Apocalypse of Thespesius (Arictaeus)
in Plutarch,
De
Sera
Num.
Vind. xxii.
y
FROM THE SERMON OF
ISIS
TO HORUS
mysteries that must not be disclosed
and heaven and
between, in which there
is
wind and
For above
flight of birds.
own
all
this the air
life.
moreover hath of
air
that
lies
the motion of the
doth have no motion and sustains no
nature this authority
of earth
the holy air which
all
This [moving]
193
it
own
its
can circulate in
its
spaces and also in the four of earth with
the lives which
ascend into
The
it
contains, while earth cannot
its [realm].
third consists of sixteen spaces filled with
subtle air and pure.
The fourth
consists of
in which there
it is
by means
is
two and thirty
the subtlest and the finest air
of this that [air] shuts
from
the heavens above which are by nature
This ordering
7.
line
[spaces],
is
up and down
and has no overlapping
itself
fiery.
in a 'straight
so that there are
four main divisions, twelve intervallic ones and
sixty spaces.
And
in these sixty spaces dwell the souls, each
one according to
of one and the
same
dignity.
its
nature, for though they are
same substance,
they're not of the
For by so much as any space
is
higher from the earth than any other, by so
much do
the souls in them,
my
son, surpass in
eminence the one the other. 1
What
1
souls,
however, go to each of them, I
For a consideration
VOL.
III.
of this ordering, see p, 168
ff.
above.
13
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
194
will accordingly begin again to tell thee,
Horus,
[son] of great renown, taking their order
from
above down to the earth.
Concerning the Inbreathing and the
Transmigration of the Soul 1
8.
The
Horus,
[air]
between the earth and heavens,
spaced
is
out
by
by
and
measure
harmony.
These spaces have been named by some of our
forefathers zones,
by others firmaments, by others
layers.
And
in
them dwell both
souls
which have
been set free from their bodies, and also those
which have as yet been never shut in body.
And
each of them,
doth deserve
it
so
my
son, hath just the place
that the
godly and the
kingly ones dwell in the highest space of
those
least
in
honour and
the
rest
all,
the
of
decadent ones [dwell] in the lowest space of
all,
while middling souls dwell in the middle space.
Accordingly, those souls which are sent
down
to rule, are sent down, Horus, from the upper
zones
and when they are
set free [again]
go back to the same or even
ones, unless
1
it
be they
still
still
more
they
lofty
have acted contrary
This appears to be a heading inserted by Stobseus (Phys.,
some scribe ; there seems to be no break in the text.
64) or
xli.
FROM THE SERMON OF
to their
ment
own
Such
souls
as
of God.
the
these
Providence above,
according to the measure of their
banish
down
which are
195
and the pronounce-
nature's dignity
Law
of the
TO HORUS
ISIS
to lower spaces
inferior in dignity
them up from lower
doth
sins,
just as with those
and power,
[realms] to vaster
leads
it
and more
lofty ones.
9.
For up above [them
there
all]
ministers of universal Providence, of
are
whom
two
one
is
the warder of the souls, the other their conductor.
The warder [watches
o'er
the
of body], while the conductor
souls
distributor
of
souls
into
when out
dispatcher and
is
their
bodies.
The
former keeps them, while the latter sends them
forth according to the Will of God.
For
this
cause (logos)
on earth according
then,
my
son, nature
to the change of deeds above
doth model out the vessels and shape out the
tents in which the souls are cast. 1
Two
energies,
experience and memory, assist her.
And
this is
memory's
task, [to see] that nature
guards the type of every thing sent
its
source and keeps
its
mixture as
while of experience [the work
conformably to
souls
1
it
The
may have
text
is
untranslatable.
is
down out
of
it is
above
this,
to see]
every one of the descending
its
embodiment, and that the
exceedingly imperfect, and in
its
present state quite
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
196
may
plasms
be made effective 1
that
swift ones of the souls the bodies also
swift, for
the
for
may
be
slow ones slow, for active active ones,
for sluggish sluggish ones, for powerful powerful,
and
for
crafty crafty ones,
every one of them as
and in a word
for
it is fit.
For not without intention hath she clad
10.
winged things with plumage; and tricked out
with senses more than ordinary and more exact
those which have reason
footed things
and some of the
made strong with
four-
some
horns,
strong with teeth, some strong with claws and
while creeping things she hath
hoofs;
made
supple with bodies clad in easy-moving scales,
which
easily can glide away.
And
that the watery nature of their body
may
not remain entirely weak, she doth provide the
sharpened fangs of some of them with power
so that
by reason
of the
fear
of death
[they
cause] they're stronger than the rest.
swimming things being timorous, she
The
gives to dwell within an element where light can
exercise nor one nor other of its powers, for fire
in water gives nor light nor heat.
them, swimming in water clad
from what frightens
spines, flees
will,
from
using the water as
a means
But each
in
scales
or
it
where'er
it
of hiding
sight.
1
The
of
text is again very imperfect.
it
FROM THE SERMON OF
ISIS
TO HORUS
For souls are shut in each
11.
197
class of these
bodies according to their similarity [to them].
Those which have power of judgment go down
into
men
and those that lack
whose [only] law
force
is
it
into quadrupeds,
the crafty ones [go]
them attack a man in
wait and strike him down and
into reptiles, for none of
but
front,
into
lie
in
swimming things the timid ones
which
worthy
not
are
In every
elements.
enjoy
to
or those
the
other
however, there are
class,
found some which no longer use their proper
nature.
How
Horus
again,
my
mother
answered
Isis
man,
for instance, son, o'ersteps his
of judgment;
force
thou]
said.
And
[meanest
and
power
a quadruped avoids the use of
reptiles
lose
birds their fear of men.
their
craftiness
and
So much [then] for the
ordering of [souls] above and their descent, and
for the
12.
making of
In every
son, there
their bodies.
class
and kind of the above,
may be found some
also descend with various
and some
some
cold,
skilled,
dustrious,
regal souls
natures,
some
fiery,
some overbearing, and some mild,
some
unskilled,
some
idle,
some
some one thing, some another.
this results
my
others
in-
And
from the arrangement of the regions
whence the souls leap down to
their
embodiment.
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
198
For from the regal zone they leap down [into
nature ruling them
birth], the soul of the like
many
for there are
and some of
Some
sovereignties.
and some of
souls,
are of
and some of
bodies,
arts,
and some are of our-
sciences,
selves.
How
[meanest thou] again,
ourselves "
son,
to this time
2
;
thy
is
it
of their bodies
after us
all,
Thrice-greatest
Osiris,
and
after
my
chenis
of poetry again Asclepius-Imuth.
up
of medicine Asclepius, Hephaestus' son
thyself,
son
him
and of philosophy Arnebes-
For generally,
13.
is
[the king] of counsel
power and might again
of
who
whereas the prince of every race
the father and the guide of
Hermes
sire Osiris
them born
[the ruler] of the souls of
is
mother, " of
For instance,
[is ruler]
my
my
son, thou'lt find, if thou
many ruling many things
sway o'er many. And he who
inquirest, that there are
and many holding
them
rules
space
all,
while he
my
who
son,
is
rules
from the highest
some part of them,
doth have the rank of that particular realm from
which he
is.
Those who come from the regal zone, [have] a
more ruling
[part to play
those from the zone
The text is here very corrupt, and the reading of the last
words of the two following sentences very doubtful.
2
That is presumably since the time when Osiris and Isis lived
on earth among men.
1
FROM THE SERMON OF
of fire
TO HORUS
ISIS
become fire-workers and
fire-tenders
those from the watery one live out their
waters
199
life
in
those from the [zone] of science and of
art are occupied with arts
from the [zone]
of
and sciences
inactivity
those
and
inactively
heedlessly live out their lives.
For that the sources of
all things wrought
on the earth by word or deed, are up above,
and they dispense
and measure
not come
for us their essences
and there
down from
is
by weight
naught which hath
above, and will return again
to re-descend.
14.
What
mother ?
And
dost thou
Tell
me
mean again by
this,
once again did make reply
Isis
my
Most
holy Nature hath set in living creatures the clear
sign of this return.
we
For that
this breath
breathe from above out of the
out up again, to take
And we have
it
air,
which
we send
in [once more].
in us organs, son, to do this
work, and when they close their mouths whereby
the breath's received, then
now we
are,
we no
longer are as
but we depart.
Moreover, son of high renown, there are some
we have added
other things which
to us outside
the weighed-out mixture [of the body].
15.
mother
What, then
(said Horus),
is
this mixture,
?
1
The
text
is
exceedingly defective.
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
200
union and a blend of the four elements
It is a
and from
rises,
and union a certain vapour
this blend
which
is
enveloped by the soul, but circu-
with each, with
lates within the body, sharing
body and with
soul, its nature.
And
thus the
differences of changes are effected both in soul
and body.
For
of
if
there be in the corporeal
thereon the soul, which
fire,
taking unto
[so] being
itself
by nature
hot,
another thing that's hot, and
made more
energetic and
is
make-up more
more
fiery,
makes the
passionate,
life
more
and the body
quick and active.
If [there
more of
be]
becomes both
light
air,
thereon the
life
and springy and unsteady
both in the soul and body.
And
if
also doth
tion,
more of water, then the creature
there's
become of supple soul and easy
and ready of embrace, and able
meet and join with
others,
abundant,
while
through water's power
;
if [there's] little [of it],
it
bodies,
they are
attack of
sinks into and
it is mingled with.
As for
by dampness and by sponginess
not made compact, but by a slight
sickness are dissolved, and fall away by
doth become what
their
easily to
communion with the rest of things
finds a place in all, and when it is
doth dissolve what it surrounds,
of union and
for that it
disposi-
Cf.
17
and 20 below.
FROM THE SERMON OF
little
and by
them
severally together.
And
if
little
201
TO HORTJS
ISIS
from the bond which holds
the earthy [element]
creature's soul is dull, for
texture loosely knit,
space
or
in excess^ the
is
has not
it
for
its
it
bodyleap
to
through, the organs of sensation being dense
but by
stays within,
itself it
bound down by
weight and density.
As
but heavy and
and only moved of choice
by
inert,
for its body, it is firm,
[exercise of] strength.
But
if
there
elements], then
light for
is
is
a balanced state of
the animal
made hot
[the
for doing,
moving, well-mixed for contact, and
excellent for holding things together.
16.
all
Accordingly those which have more in
them of fire and air, these are made into birds,
and have their state above hard by those
elements from which they came.
While those which have more fire, less air, and
earth and water equal, these are made into men,
and
for the creature the excess of heat is turned
into sagacity
for that the
thing which knows not
mind
how
in us
is
a hot
to burn, but has
intelligence to penetrate all things.
And
and more
1
The
them more water
but moderate air and little fire,
those which have in
text
earth,
is
faulty, the language artificial, the analogy strained,
and the sense accordingly obscure.
Meineke reads
yewaiov dk
els
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
202
these
are
and those
turned into quadrupeds,
which have more heat are stronger than the
rest.
Those which have equal earth and water, are
made
These through their lack of
into reptiles.
lack courage and straightforwardness
fire
while
through their having water in them they are
and through
cold
are
and torpid
their
yet through their having
they can move easily
do
having earth they heavy
if
air,
they should choose to
so.
Those which have in them more of wet, and
less
of dry,
these are
made
into
through their lack of heat and
These
fish.
air are timorous
and try to hide themselves, and through excess
of wet
and earthy elements, they
home, through their
their
find
affinity, in fluid
earth and
water.
17. It is according to the share [they have]
in
every element and to the compass of that
share, that bodies reach full
growth
[in
man]
according to the smallness of their share the
other animals have been proportioned
which
to the energy
my
Moreover,
when, out of
based on the
in
1
is
according
in every element.
well-beloved,
say,
this state [of things], the
first
that
blend
commixture [of the elements
any
case],
and the resultant vapour 2 from
The
text
utterly
is
plausibly emended.
corrupt and has not yet
2
Gf.
it,
been even
15 and 20.
FROM THE SERMON OF
so far preserve their
own
TO HORUS
ISIS
203
peculiarity, that neither
the hot part takes on another heat, nor [does]
the aery [take] another
air,
nor [does] the watery
part another wetness, nor [yet] the earthy [take]
another density, then doth the animal remain in
health.
18.
But
they do not, son, remain in the
if
proportions which they had from the beginning,
but are too much increased
(I
do not mean in
energy according to their compass or in the
change
body brought about by
and
sex
of
growth, but in the blend, as
we have
said before,
of the component elements, so that the hot, for
instance,
lessened,
and so
animal be
19.
for all the rest)
sick.
And
much
increased too
is
much
or too
then
will the
if this
[increase] doth take place in
both the elements of heat and
air,
fellows, then
doth the creature
dreams and
ecstasies
the soul's tent-
fall
into symbolic
for that a concentration
of the elements whereby the bodies are dissolved
For
has taken place.
itself
which
is
dense.
the
earthy element
the condensation of the body
watery element in
it
'tis
it
as well
is
a fluidity to
Whereas the aery element
is
20. Just then as is the
1
Cf.
all
the
make
that in
us which has the power of motion, and
that which makes an end of
fire is
of them.
vapour * which ariseth
15 and 17.
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
204
from the
first
conjunction and co-blending of the
elements, as though
exhalation,
whatever
the soul and draws
its
it
were a kindling or an
it
may
And
in its original relationship
keeps
its
But when
and common
life
with
what was
first laid
down
for
it,
to the whole mixture, or to its parts,
effected in the
in
the soul remains
added from without some
there's
or to one part of
or
if
rank.
larger share than
either
with
to itself, so that it shares
it
nature good or bad.
it, it
be, it mingles
it,
then
the resulting change
vapour doth bring about a change
the disposition
of the
soul
or
of
the
body.
The fire and
upward to the
as tending
air,
which dwells in the same
soul,
regions as themselves
upward, hasten
the watery and the earthy
elements, as tending down, sink
down upon
body, which doth possess the self-same
the
seat.
COMMENTAKY
Argument
The Sermon from which
this Extract is taken plainly
belonged to the same class of literature as the K. K.
Excerpts.
The
writer
is
an
initiate of a higher degree,
imparting instruction to his pupil by word of mouth.
FROM THE SERMON OF
He
TO HORUS
ISIS
205
himself however, professes to have "seen," for he
,
has been plunged in the
feet
1.
The
(4).
Cup
have crossed the Plain
The
of
of Immortality,
Truth
and his
(3).
subject is the excarnate state of souls (1-3).
instruction
Each
is
given by an analogy and a similitude
soul seeks naturally its proper
habitat in
the unseen world.
5.
is
The ordering
of the spaces of the excarnate souls
These spaces are
then described.
air,"
all in
the " great
the sublunary region, extending from the earth
surface to the moon.
6. Of this great interval there are 4 main divisions
and 60 spaces, the divisions consisting respectively of 4,
Above the second division
8, 16 and 32 sub-spaces.
from below there is no motion of the " air " the " wind,"
or " moving air " belt, belongs properly to this second
;
division,
but has also authority over the
division,
which extends from the earth-surface
first
or lowest
to the
tops of the highest mountains.
7. Besides these 4 divisions and 60 spaces, there
further ordering into 12 " intervallic " divisions. 1
8.
All
is
is
arranged by measure and harmony, and
after death every soul goes to the space of its desert,
ascending and descending according to an unerring law
of Providence.
9.
To carry out
this
of Providence, the
economy there are two ministers
warder and the conductor
of souls.
The one watches over souls who are out of body, and
the other brings them back to suitable bodies. These
bodies are made by nature in exact correspondence with
in this nature is
their former deeds and characters
aided by the energies of experience and memory (9-11).
12. The nature of the soul is conditioned by its
;
habitat in the air-spaces or zones
1
and
See Comments on K. K. 9
this is especially
10.
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
206
The names of
and their offices are given.
In brief all is ordered from above; the source
is above in the soul-spaces, and as all souls come
the case with those of the regal type.
some
13.
of all
of these royal souls
thence, so will all return thither.
14 How
this
is
effected
explained
is
as
being
conditioned by a certain link between soul and body, a
sort of quintessence, or exhalation, or vapour, of the
blend of sub-elements which compose the body (14-20). 1
between soul and body
It is a sort of etheric link
it
circulates in the body, but also shares with the soul,
which
is
not thought
being in the body, but as a
of as
sphere enveloping the body
or at any rate the body is
and not the soul in the body. Health is
depend upon the maintenance of the due pro;
in the soul,
said to
portion of the " vapours "
Not
only
so,
of this " etheric double " (18).
but the increase
of vitality or intensity
is the means of
remembering symbolic dreams and passing into a state
these elements in the "vapour,"
in
ecstasy; finally it is the fiery element of this
vapour " which dissolves this " spirituous body " (19).
It is by means of this link that changes are effected
from soul to body, and from body to soul (20) and
of
"
here, unfortunately, Stobaeus ends his excerpt.
Title and Ordering
The Sermon of Isis to Horus " extract is, in both
and context, so similar to the K. K. excerpts that
"
style
we might almost
take
it to
very same treatise; but
be part and parcel of the
had been the case,
would have presumably
with a simple "from the same." He may,
if
this
Stobaeus, following his custom,
headed
it
1
This bears a curious resemblance to the prd7iamaya kosha, or
" vital sheath," of the Vedantins.
Vedantic prdna's, of which there are
five.
FROM THE SERMON OF
however,
have
made
ISIS
TO HORUS
a mistake, for
207
that the good
Joannes sometimes nods, may be seen from the short
Excerpt xxi., which he says is also taken from "The
"
[Sermon] of Isis to Horus x but this cannot be the case,
;
since Isis
is
here addressing a certain king as her pupil,
and not Horus.
Moreover, at
the
excerpt
very beginning of our
Horus distinctly states that Isis has already explained
to him "the details of God's wondrous soul-making,"
and thanks her "for being made initiate by word of
mouth into the vision of the soul," all of which is a
precise reference to the contents of the K. K. excerpts.
I
am, therefore, inclined to think that not only
further tractate of instruction
is it
following immediately
on K. K., but that even if it were supposed to be part
and parcel of the same sermon, and that "The
[Sermon] of Isis to Horus " was simply a sub-title or
alternative title of the "Virgin of the World," the
hypothesis could not be easily set aside. 2
I. H. belongs to
and that it pertains
to the same special class of Trismegistic literature, and
to a somewhat similar type as the treatise from which
Cyril quotes Pragg. xix., xx., xxi., in which Osiris figures
as the disciple of the Good Daimon, Trismegistus.
In any case
precisely the
it is
quite certain that S.
same type
as K. K.
The Books of
Here
also, as in
K. K.
Isis
Isis
and Horus
comes forward as " initiated
into the nature that transcendeth death," her "feet
1
Of which Schow gives the alternative heading
"
From
the
Intercession (or Supplication) of Isis," which Gaisford (in a note)
thinks
is
from the Vienna Codex.
This, however,
is
not the case,
for the Vindobonensis preserves the usual reading except that
the last word
2
R.
is
See R. 134, n. 3.
however, thinks this impossible.
missing.
(p. 135, n. 3),
208
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
have crossed the Plain of Truth " (3) that is as we have
shown in the Comments on K. K.> 10, the writer claims
to have reached the degree of illumination which
bestows on men the consciousness of the gods. " Isis,"
then,
is
"
not
common
to all
priests," as
Jamblichus
says of "Hermes," without the honorific qualification
but rather of a certain grade
"Thrice-greatest,"
initiation
the teacher of that lower grade, or HorusIsis was commonly
wisdom and teacher of all
the earliest Hellenistic period she had
Hermes' representative.
grade, being
regarded as the Lady of
magic.
Already in
all
attributes similar to those of Thoth-Hermes,
comes forward as the Orderer
only
and
so, but, like
of the
of
Thoth, she
tongue
those of the Logos.
that
is
of the
called
is
world 1
Lady
and thus
and not
of the heart
to say, her attributes
were
That there was a secret theosophic and apocalyptic
ascribed to Isis and Horus may be seen
from Lucian, who, in one of his humorous sketches,
puts into the mouth of Pythagoras the following
literature
sentence
" I also
journeyed to Egypt that I might make the
acquaintance
of
prophets
the
of
wisdom,
and
descended into the shrines of the temples and learned
the Books of
Isis
and Horus." 3
Here again, then, as Manetho tells us, these Books,
the Books of Hermes, were kept secret in the holy
holies of the
Temples
See Reitzenstein, Zwei
Plutarch,
De
as
of
and these shrines were evidently
religionsgesch.
Is. et 0s., lxviii.
"
Fragen, 104
They say
ff.
that of the trees in
and that its fruit
For nothing that men
have is more divine than the word (logos), and especially the
[word] concerning the gods." The fruit of the persea grew from
Egypt the persea
is
especially dedicated to her,
resembles a heart, and
the stem.
3
Gallus, 18.
its leaf
a tongue.
FROM THE SERMON OF
underground
for
Pythagoras
is
ISIS
TO HORUS
209
"
said to have " descended
to them.
This
is
Horus who
the
not only, after Osiris, the
is
power and might, that
king, but lord of
For Apiebeschenis,
that is Har-nebesehenis, is, as Spiegelberg has shown, 1
an Egyptian proper name, meaning " Horus lord of
Letopolis," at one time an important city in the Delta.
In the Alchemical literature also we meet with Horus
lord of
is,
philosophy, as Arnebeschenis (12).
as a writer of books, as for instance in the superscription
Horus the Gold-miner to Cronus who is Ammon." 2
Here we see that Horus stands to Isis as Asclepius
to Hermes
Asclepius wrote books to Ammon, and so
Horus wrote books to Ammon; but whereas the
"
Trismegistie
(Ammon)
proper looked back to Cronus
tradition
as
one
writings converted
by Asclepius
or
of
earliest
its
Ammon
teachers,
into a king
the
later
who was taught
by Horus.
The Watery Sphere and Subtle Body
The writer
state, that is
of S.
L H.
tells
us that the soul in
its
royal
while lord of itself, is a divine creature,
but in incarnation
it is
united with the watery plasm
K,
18, where Hermes says that in
making it he " used more water than was required "
and to which the soul in its complaint ( 21) refers as
This union makes it dense
a " watery sphere."
"against its proper nature" (3), and it is further
densified by a certain " vaporous " nature which unites
or subtle body, of K.
it
with the physical frame (15, 17, 20)
which
of
tells
1
concerning
interest to refer to Philoponus,
all
who
us that
Demotische Studien,
namen,"
2
it is of
p.
28
(c/.
i.,
also p. 41)
"Agyptische
;
u. griechisclie
R. 135.
Berthelot, p. 103.
VOL.
III.
14
Eigen-
210
"
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
They [the
ancients] further add, that there is some-
thing of a plantal and plastic
life
by
also, exercised
the soul, in those spirituous and airy bodies after death
they being nourished too, though not after the same
manner, as these gross earthly bodies of ours are here,
but by vapours and that not by parts or organs, but
throughout the whole of them (as sponges), 2 they
;
imbibing everywhere those vapours.
they who are wise will in this
For which cause,
life also
take care of
using a thinner and dryer diet, that so that spirituous
body (which we have
our grosser body)
but attenuated.
also at this present time within
may
not be clogged and incrassated,
Over and above which these ancients
made use of catharms, or purgations, to the same end
and purpose also: for as this earthly body is washed
with water, so is that spirituous body cleansed by
cathartic vapours some of these vapours being nutri;
Moreover, these ancients further
tive, others purgative.
declared concerning this spirituous body, that
not organized, but did the whole of
throughout, exercise
it
was
in every part
functions of sense, the soul
all
hearing and seeing, and perceivng
everywhere. "
it,
by
all sensibles,
it
The Habitat of Excaknate Souls
But
to return to our treatise
excarnate souls
is
the Air,
the dwelling-place of
the sublunary region of
four main layers, which are successively subtler and
finer as
they are more removed from the earth ; the
of the Air is coterminous with the
uppermost limit
fiery or setheric
1
realms
T7)s (pvriKTjs (ays,
that
(6),
is,
Endosmosis and exosmosis.
Philoponus, Procem.
Cud worth's
Intellectual
Orpheus, pp. 278, 279.
in
the habitat of the gods.
vegetative.
Aristot.
de
Anima,
System (ed. 1820),
iii.
506
as
ff.
given
;
see
in
my
FROM THE SERMON OF
In the
ISIS
TO HORUS
211
different zones, or firmaments, or layers of this
Air, dwell not only excarnate souls, during the period
between their incarnations, but
never yet been shut in body
daimones
also those
that
is,
which have
presumably, the
(8).
With regard
to the
manner
in
which souls are kept
in their appropriate spaces after the death of the body,
and the way in which they are brought back to appropriate bodies, and the two ministers of Providence (9),
it is of
line of
value to note that in this
what
is
detail in the Coptic Gnostic
It would, however,
work
of the
is
sulted
now
much
called Pistis Sophia.
Egyptian Gnostic work
this subject in a satisfactory
text
a simple out-
occupy too much space here to deal
with the representations
on
we have
explained at great length and in
manner, and as the
accessible in English, it can easily be con-
by the reader. 1
For Melchizedek, the " Receiver of light and Guide of souls,"
&, passim, and especially 35-37, 292, 327 ; for ZorokothoraMelchizedek and Ieou, see " The Books of the Saviour," ibid., 365
and for Gabriel and Michael, ibid., 138.
ff.
1
see P.
II
References and Fragments
in
the Fathers
I.
JUSTIN MARTYR
i.
Cohortatio ad Gentiles, xxxviii.
(2d ed., Jena, 1849).i
Otto
(J.
C. T.),
ii.
122
The Most Ancient of Philosophers
Now
any
you should think that he has learnt
God from those of the
philosophers who are mentioned among you as most
ancient, let him give ear to Ammon and Hermes.
For
the
if
Ammon
God
of
concerning
doctrine
in the
"utterly
Words
(Logoi) concerning himself
hidden
"
while
Hermes
calls
clearly
and
plainly declares
To understand God
Him] impossible, even
stand.
is
difficult
for one
to speak [of
who can under-
The "Words of Ammon"
This passage occurs at the very end of the treatise.
Justin will have
it
that the most ancient of
all
the
philosophers are on his side.
The Exhortation is considered by most pseudepigraphic, but
supposed by others to be the earliest work of Justin, which
may be placed conjecturally about 130 a.d. ; the First Apology
is generally ascribed to the year 148 a.d.
2 Taking
the reading irepl kavrov (Otto, n. 13), adopted in
138.
1
is
Quoted also by Lactantius, D. I.
Jul, i. 31 and Stobseus, Flor., lxxx.
;
215
Epit., 4
[lxxviii.],
Cyril Alex., Con.
94 (Ex.
ii.
1).
'
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
216
Ammon
These are
knows
of certain
Utterances
of
and Hermes.
Words
Justin, moreover,
(Logoi), or Sermons, or Sacred
Ammon, which must have been circulating
it is difficult to see how Justin was
in Greek, otherwise
They were evidently
acquainted with them.
of
an
apocalyptic nature, in the form of a self-revelation of
Ammon
or God.
Words of Ammon " have clearly nothing to
do with the Ammonian type of the surviving Tris"
These
megistic literature, where
an instructor,
Agathodaimon.
stage of
least
of
Ammon
all
is
a hearer and not
the supreme instructor or
In them we
may
see
an intermediate
direct dependence of Hellenistic
theological
on Egyptian originals, for we have preserved
to us certain Hymns from the El-Khargeh Oasis which
bear the inscription " The Secret Words of Ammon
which were found on Tables of Mulberry- wood." 1
literature
The
Ineffability of
God
The sentence from Hermes
is from a lost sermon, a
which is preserved in an excerpt by Stobaeus.
It was probably the opening words of what Stobaeus
calls " The [Sermon] to Tat," 2 that is to say, probably
one of the " Expository Sermons to Tat," as Lactantius
fragment
calls
of
them. 3
The
idea in the saying
was a common place
in
1
R. 138. The connection between this Ammon and Hermes
was probably the same as that which is said to have existed
between the king-god Thanms-Ammon and the god of invention
Thamus- Ammon was a king philosopher, to
Theuth-Hermes.
whom Theuth brought all his inventions and discoveries for his
(Amnion's) judgment, which was not invariably favourable. See
the pleasant story told by Plato, Ph&drus, 274 c. Of also the
notes on Kneph- Ammon, K. K., 19, Comment.
Stob,,
See Fragg.
loc.
infra
cit.
xi., xii., xiii., xv., xx., xxii., xxiii.,
xxiv.
(?).
JUSTIN MARTYR
217
Hellenistic theological thought, and need not be always
directly referred to the
much-quoted words of Plato
and the Maker of this universe is a
[great] work, and finding [Him] it is impossible to tell
[Him] unto all." 1 Indeed, it is curious to remark that
"
To
find the Father
Justin reproduces the text of the Hermetic writer far
more
than when he refers directly to the
faithfully
saying of Plato. 2
Apologia, xxi.
/.
ii.
Otto,
54.
i.
Hekmes and Asclepius Sons of God
And when we
first
Word (Logos) which is the
God, was begotten without interJesus Christ, our Master, and that he was
say that the
begetting of
course,
and was dead, and rose again and ascended
into heaven, we bring forward no new thing beyond
those among you who are called Sons of Zeus. For ye
know how many Sons the writers who are held in
honour among you ascribe to Zeus
Hermes, the Word
(Logos), who was the interpreter and teacher of all
and
Asclepius, who was also 3 a healer,4 and was smitten by
crucified,
the bolt [of his sire] and ascended into heaven
[and
iii.
many
others]
Ibid., xxii.
Otto,
58.
i.
Hermes the Word who brings Tidings from God
But
as to the
he were only a
because of
[his]
Son
man
of
God
called Jesus,
[born] in the
wisdom
is
even
though
common way,
he worthy
to be called
[yet]
Son
Tim&us, 28 c.
See Cohort., xxii. ; II. Apol, x.
Clemens Alex., Origen,
Minutius Felix, Lactantius, and other of the Fathers also quote
this saying of Plato.
2
That
is,
like Jesus.
eepairevr^v (therapeut).
218
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
God
of
for all writers call
And
gods."
special way,
Word
[as]
if
beyond
his
"
Father
of
common
God
common
Word (Logos) who brings
birth, begotten of
call
Hermes the
in Hellenistic
Theology
remarkable that Justin heads the
It is
God
men and
from God.
The Sons of God
of
God
say [further] that he was also in a
{Logos) of God, let us have this in
with you who
tidings
we
Dionysus,
Asclepius.
Hercules, etc.- with
Sons
list of
Hermes and
Moreover, when he returns to the subject
he again refers to Hermes and to Hermes
This
alone.
shows that the most telling parallel he could
bring forward was that of Hermes, who, in the Hellenistic theological world of his day,
was especially
thought of under the concept of the Logos.
The immediate association of the name of Asclepius
with that of Hermes is also remarkable, and indicates
that they were closely associated in Justin's mind the
indication, however, is too vague to permit of any
positive deduction as to an Asclepius-element in the
clearly
Trismegistic literature current in
Kome
in Justin's time.
any case, has apparently very little first-hand
knowledge of the subject, for he introduces the purely
Hellenic myth of Asclepius being struck by a thunder-
Justin, in
bolt,
which,
we need hardly
say, is entirely foreign to
the conception of the Hellenistic Asclepius, the disciple
Hermes.
of
An
Unverifiable Quotation
To these quotations Chambers
(p.
following passage from II. Apologia,
may
1
be placed some four or
rbv
xx vi.
5.
irapb.
$ov ayyc\TiK6v.
five
vi.,
139) adds
the
which in date
years after the First.
Compare Plutarch, Be
Is.
et
Os.,
JUSTIN MARTYR
"
Now
may
name can be given
by whatsoever name
elder the one who gives
to the Father of all no
seeing that
one
219
He
is
ingenerable
for
be called, he has as his
the name.
But
'
Father,'
and God,' and Creator/ and
'
'Lord,' and 'Master' are not names, but terms
of
address [derived] from His blessings and His works."
It is quite true that this passage
might be taken
verbally from a Hermetic tractate, but I can find no
authority in the text of Justin for claiming
For the same idea
(vi.) 10, and Lack, D. /.,
quotation.
C. H., v.
in
i.
6.
it
as a
Hermes compare
II.
ATHENAGORAS
Libellus pro Ghristianis, 1 xxviii.
Schwartz
(E.), p. 57,
24
(Leipzig, 1891). 2
Athenagoras was acquainted with a Greek literature
name of Hermes Trismegistus, to
circulated under the
whom
he refers as authority for
his
euhemeristic
contention that the gods were once simply men. 3
1
Bd.
s
Written probably about 1 76-1 77 a.d.
In Texte u. Untersuchungen (von Gebhardt and Harnack),
iv.
Gf. B.,
pp. 2 and 160.
220
III.
CLEMENT OF ALEXANDRIA
i.
Protrepticus,
(24
P.,
ii.
29
Dindorf
(G.),
i.
29, (Oxford, 1869)
S.).
Many Hermeses and
Asclepiuses
(After referring to the three Zeuses, five Athenas,
and numberless Apollos of complex popular tradition,
Clement continues :)
But what were
I to
mention the many Asclepiuses, or
the Hermeses that are reckoned up, or the Hephsestuses
of
mythology
Clement lived in the
very centre of Hellenistic
theology, and his grouping together of the
Asclepius,
Hermes and Hephaestus,
names
of
the demiurgic Ptah,
whose tradition was incorporated into the Poemandres
doctrine, is therefore not fortuitous, but shows that
these three names were closely associated in his mind,
and that, therefore, he was acquainted with the
Trismegistic literature.
by the following
This deduction
passage.
1
Fl. 9
175-200 a.d.
221
is
confirmed
"
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
222
ii.
144
Stromateis,
I.
134; Dindorf,
xxi.
ii.
108 (399
P.,
S.).
The Apotheosis of Hermes and Asclepius
Egyptians, but
who once lived as men among the
who have been made gods by human
opinion,
Hermes
Of those,
too,
[are]
Thebes and
of
Asclepius of
Memphis.
(To this we
has to
may
appropriately append what Clement
us about the
tell
"
Books
Hermes," when,
of
writing in the last quarter of the second century, he
describes one of the sacred processions of the Egyptians
as follows
:)
Ibid., VI. iv.
iii.
35; Dind.,
iii.
156, 157.
The Books of Hermes
First comes the "Singer" bearing
symbols
make
one
of music.
some one
This [priest], they
tell us,
of the
has to
himself master of two of the " Books of Hermes,"
of
which contains
(1)
Hymns
honour]
[in
of the
Gods, 1 and the other (2) Eefiections 2 on the Kingly
Life.
After
the
"Singer"
comes
the
"
Time- watcher
bearing the symbols of the star-science, a dial after a
hand and phoenix. He must have the division of the
Books of Hermes " which treats of the stars ever at
"
the tip of his tongue
The
1
first of
there being
four of such books.
these deals with (3) the Ordering of the
have numbered the books and used
capitals for greater
clearness.
2
I do not know what this term means in this
The usual translation of " Eegulations " seems to me
unsatisfactory.
Some word such as " Praise " (? read cv\oyi(Tfx6i/)
4K\oyKrjji6j/
connection.
seems to be required, as
(xviii.),
"The Encomium
may
be seen from the
of Kings."
title of
G.
H.,
223
CLEMENT OE ALEXANDRIA
apparently Fixed Stars, 1 the next [two] (4 and 5) with
the conjunctions and variations of Light of the Sun and
Moon, and the last (6) with the Eisings [of the Stars].
Next comes the "Scribe of the Mysteries," with
wings on his head, having in either hand a book and a
ruler 2 in which is the ink and reed pen with which
they write. He has to know what they call the sacred
characters, and the books about (7) Cosmography, and
(8) Geography, (9) the Constitution of the Sun and
Moon, and (10) of the Five Planets, (11) the Survey of
Egypt, and (12) the Chart of the Nile, (13) the List of
the Appurtenances of the Temples and (14) of the
Lands consecrated to them, (15) the Measures, and (16)
Things used in the Sacred Eites.
"
After the above-mentioned comes the
Overseer 3 of
the Ceremonies," bearing the cubit of justice and the
libation
cup
[as his symbols].
books relating to the training
He must know
[of
all
the
the conductors of the
4
public cult], and those that they call the victim-sealing
r<av airXav&v <paivo\x.vo>v &<rrp<i)v.
Kav6va
this
must mean a hollow wooden
case shaped like a
ruler.
3 o-ToAttrr^, called also itpStfroXos.
This priestly office is usuallytranslated as the " keeper of the vestments," the " one who i& over
the wardrobe."
contents
evidently
of
But such a meaning
the books which
the
organiser
of
is
entirely foreign to the
are assigned to
the
ceremonies,
him.
He was
especially
the
processions.
4 (j.o(rxo(r<f>payi(rTiKd
art of one
who
that is to say, literally, books relating to the
picks out and " seals calves " for sacrifice. The
meaning originally referred to the selection of the sacred
Apis bull-calf, into which the power of the god was supposed to
have re-incarnated, in the relic of some primitive magic rite
which the conservatism of the Egyptians still retained in the
public cult. Its meaning, however, was later on far more general,
as we see by the nature of the books assigned to this division.
literal
Boulage, in his Mysteres d'Isis (Paris, 1820, p. 21), says that
seal of the priests which marked the victims was a man
"the
"
224
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
There are ten of these books which deal with
the worship which they pay to the gods, and in which
the Egyptian cult is contained namely [those which
books.
treat] of (17) Sacrifice, (18) First-fruits, (19)
Hymns,
(20) Prayers, (21) Processions, (22) Feasts, and (23-26)
the
like.
After
all of
these comes the " Prophet " clasping to
his breast the water- vase so that all can see it
him
after
follow those
be distributed. 1
by
learns
" hieratic "
of the
The
heart
;
who
carry the bread that
and
is
to
" Prophet/' as chief of the temple,
the
ten
books
which
are called
these contain the volumes (27-36) treating
Laws, and the Gods, and the whole Discipline of
the Priests.
For you must know that the
among the Egyptians
is
also
"
Prophet
the supervisor of the
distribution of the [temple] revenues.
Now
the books which are absolutely indispensable 2
kneeling with his hands bound behind his back, and a sword
pointed at his throat, for it was in this attitude that the neophyte
received the first initiation, signifying that he agreed to perish
if he revealed any of the secrets revealed to
This he evidently deduced from Plutarch's De Is. et Os.,
by the sword
him."
xxxi.
3.
tV f/cirejutfw r&v &pra>v &o.(tt&ovtgs. The " Prophet " belonged to the grade of high priests who had practical knowledge
of the inner way. As the flood of the Nile came down and
irrigated the fields and brought forth the grain for bread, and so
1
ol
gave food to Egypt, so did the living stream of the Gnosis from
the infinite heights of space pour into the Hierophant, and he in
his turn became Father Nile for the priests, his disciples, who in
their turn distributed the bread of knowledge to the people.
pleasing symbolism, of which the bread and water of the earlier
ascetic schools of Christendom, who rejected wine, was perhaps a
reminiscence. Nor has even the General Church in its older
forms forgotten to sprinkle the people from the water- vase and
distribute
among them the
bread.
This seems to suggest that there were others, the knowledge
There
of which was optional, or rather reserved for the few.
may perhaps have been forty-nine in all.
2
CLEMENT OF ALEXANDRIA
for
Hermes
are forty-two in number.
225
Six-and-thirty
them, which contain the whole wisdom-discipline
of
of the Egyptians, are learned
of priests] already
mentioned.
by heart by the [grades
The remaining six are
learned by the " Shrine-bearers
treatises
these are medical
dealing with (37) the Constitution
the
of
Body, with (38) Diseases, (39) Instruments, (40) Drugs,
4
and finally (42) with the Maladies of
(41) Eyes,
Women.
The General Catalogue of the Egyptian
Priestly Library
This exceedingly interesting passage of Clement gives
us
the general
catalogue of
the Egyptian priestly
and the background of the Greek translations
and adaptations in our Trismegistic writings.
The whole of these writings fall into this frame,
and the oldest deposit or " Poemandres " type fits in
library
excellently with the content of the hieratic books (the
which Clement has unfortunately omitted), or
secret.
These hieratic books
were evidently the more important and were in charge
titles of
with those that were kept
of the " Prophet," that is to say, of those high priests
of the temples
discipline,
the
who were
very
directors
subject
of
of
our
the prophetic
<c
Poemandres
treatises. 5
1
That
is,
the priesthood.
3 Trao-To<f>6poi,
those
who
Lit.
carried the pastos as a
philosophy.
symbol
apparently symbolized the shrine or casket of the soul
this
in other
words, the human body. These Pastophors were the priests who
were the physicians of the body, the higher grades being presumably physicians of the soul.
4
This seems to be an error of the copyist.
5 As to the
hieroglyphic inscription at Edfu, which was
thought by Jomasd to contain references to the titles of these
forty-two books, see Parthey, tlber Isis
VOL.
III.
und
Osiris, p. 255.
15
IV.
TERTULLIAN
i.
Contra Valentinianos, xv.
(Ehler (F.),
ii.
402 (Leipzig,
1844).
Hermes the Master of all Physics
(Writing
sarcastically
Tertullian exclaims
of
the Gnostic
Sophia-myth,
:)
Well, then, let the Pythagoreans learn, the Stoics
know,
[sc.
even, whence matter
[yea,] Plato
which
they
the Pythagoreans and the rest] would have to be
ingenerable
derived
its
source and substance to [form]
[a
mystery] which not even the
this pile of a world,
famous
Thrice
greatest
Hermes, the master
of
all
physics, has thought out.
The doctrine
of
Hermes, and
in general, however,
God.
is
of Hellenistic theology
that matter comes from the
One
It is remarkable that Tertullian keeps his final
taunt for that school which was evidently thought the
foremost of
all
that
of the
"famous Thrice-greatest
Hermes."
1
Fl. t
c.
200-216
226
a.d.
TERTULLIAN
ii.
De Anima
ii. ;
GShler,
ii.
227
558.
Hermes the Writer of Scripture
(Inveighing against the wisdom of the philosophers,
Tertullian says
:)
She [philosophy] has
that she too has
also
been under the impression
drawn from what they
ophers] consider " sacred " scriptures
[the philos-
because antiquity
thought that most authors were gods (deos), and not
merely inspired by them (divos), as, for instance,
whom
Egyptian Hermes, with
intercourse, 1
Here
[and others]
again, as with Justin,
had
Plato
....
Hermes heads the
mind, Hermes
moreover, in Tertullian's
antiquity, to a
especially
list
belongs
to
more ancient stratum than Pythagoras
and Plato, as the context shows; Plato, of course,
depends on Hermes, not Hermes on Plato; of this
Tertullian has no doubt.
There were also "sacred
scriptures " of Hermes, and Hermes was regarded as a
god.
iii.
Ibid., xxviii.
(Ehler,
ii.
601.
Hermes the First Teacher of Eeincarnation
What
doctrine
then
is
the value nowadays of that ancient
mentioned
migration of souls;
by
Plato, 2
about the reciprocal
how they remove hence and
go
and then return hither and pass through life,
and then again depart from this life, made quick again
from the dead? Some will have it that this is a
doctrine of Pythagoras while Albinus 3 will have it to
thither,
Adsuevit.
A Platonic philosopher, and contemporary of
A.D.).
Of. Phcedo, p. 70.
Galen
(1 30-?
200
THRICE -GREATEST HERMES
228
be
divine
pronouncement,
perhaps
Egyptian
of
Hermes.
iv. Ibid.) xxxiii.
(Ehler,
610.
ii.
Hermes on Metempsychosis
(Arguing
against
ironically
psychosis, Tertullian writes
Even
until
the belief in metem-
:)
they [souls] should continue [unchanged]
if
judgment
point which was
pronounced upon them] ... a
to Egyptian Hermes, when he
[is
known
says that the soul on leaving the body
back into the soul
vidualized
not poured
1
:
FKAGMENT
That
is
the universe, but remains indi-
of
it
may
I.
give account unto the Father of
those things which
hath done in body.
it
This exact quotation
is
to be
found nowhere in the
existing remains of the Trismegistic literature, but
it
has every appearance of being genuine.
(Ehler (note c) refers to C. H.
passage of
"The Key"
is
x. (xi.) 7,
but this
only a general statement of
the main idea of metempsychosis.
more
appropriate
P. S. A., xxviii. 1
"
from the body shall take
ment and the weighing of
daimon's power"
parallel
When,
to
is
be found in
[then,] the soul's departure
place,
its
then
shall the judg-
merit pass into
its
highest
a passage, however, which retains
far stronger traces of the Egyptian prototype of the idea
than does that quoted by Tertullian.
1
Determinatam.
Tertullian marks
it
by an
" inquit"
V.
CYPRIAN
i.
De Idolorum
God
is
Vanitate,
y'i.;
Baluze, p. 220 (Paris, 1726).
beyond all Understanding
Thrice-Greatest Hermes speaks of the One God, and
confesses Him beyond all understanding and all appraisement.
This
is
evidently a reference to the most quoted
See Justin Martyr
sentence of Hermes.
i.
below, and
other references.
Chambers
says
is
l(
140),
(p.
inserts a passage
after
this
from Eusebius
(c.
notice in
325
a clear quotation from the
Cyprian,
which he
Pcemandres of
A.D.),
'
Hermes, whom, however, he [Eusebius] probably confounds with the Shepherd of Hermas."
Eusebius (Hist.
Hcc., v.
8),
however, quotes Irenseus
The Shepherd of Hermas
(Mand., i.). Indeed, it is the most famous sentence in
See the list of its quotations by
that early document.
the Fathers in the note to Gebhardt and Harnack's
(iv.
20, 2),
who quotes
literally
text (Leipzig, 1897), p. 70.
Such verbal exactitude
is
not to be found in the remaining Trismegistic literature
the idea, however,
is
theology.
1
the basis of the whole Trismegistic
About 200-258
229
A.D.
VI.
ARNOBIUS
i.
Adversus Nationes,
ii.
13; Hildebrand (G.
F.),
p.
136
(Halle, 1844).
The School of Hermes
(Arnobius
complains
that
the
followers
of
the
philosophic schools laugh at the Christians, and selects
especially the adherents of a certain tradition as follows
:)
You, you I single out, who belong to the school of
Hermes, or of Plato and Pythagoras, and the rest of you
who are of one mind and walk in union in the same
paths of doctrine. 2
1
He was a converted philosopher, and the teacher of Lactantius ;
nourished about 304 a.d.
2
Here again, as elsewhere, Hermes comes first he was evidently;
regarded as the leader of philosophic theology as contrasted with
popular Christian dogmatics.
See R. 306.
230
VII.
LACTANTIUS
Divinae, Institutiones,
i.
i.
i.
6, 1
Brandt, p. 18; Fritzsche,
13. 2
Thoyth-Hermes and his Books on the Gnosis
Let us now pass
I will bring
all,
to divine testimonies; but,
first
court testimony which
into
is
of
like
divine [witness], both on account of its exceeding great
and because he whom I shall name was carried
back again from men unto the gods.
In Cicero,3 Caius Cotta, 4 the Pontifex, arguing
against the Stoics about faiths and the diversity of
opinions which obtain concerning the gods, in order
that, as was the way of the Academics, 5 he might bring
all things into doubt, declares that there were five
Hermeses; and after enumerating four of them in
age,
succession,
1
[he
that the
adds]
pupil of Arnobius
fifth
was he by
whom
flourished at the beginning of the
fourth century.
2
Brandt
(S.),
L. Caeli Firmiani Lactanti Opera Omnia,
Divinae Institutiones
/.,
et
Epitome (Vienna, 1890).
be edited by G. Laubmann, has not yet appeared.
Pars
Pars
II., to
Fritzsche
(0. F.), Div. Institt. (Leipzig, 1842), 2 vols.
3
De Natura Deorum,
C. Aurelius Cotta, 124-76
Cicero makes Cotta maintain the cause of this school both
here and in the
De
iii.
22, 56.
(?) B.C.
Oratore.
231
232
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
Argus was slain, 1 and for that cause he fled into Egypt,
and initiated the Egyptians into laws and letters.
The Egyptians call him Thoyth, and from him the
first
month
received
their year
of
He
name.
its
unto this day
is
called
also
(that
is,
September) has
founded a city which even
The people
Hermopolis.
Pheneus, 2 indeed, worship him as a god
1
was
Argos, according to the
all-seeing
(7rav6irTris),
many
of
but, although
ancient myths concerning him,
possessed of innumerable eyes, or, in one
an eye at the top of his head. Like Hercules, he was
superhuman strength, and many similar exploits of his powers
In the Io-legends, Hera made Argos guardian of
are recorded.
the cow into which the favourite of Zeus had been metamorphosed.
Zeus accordingly sent Hermes to carry off his beloved. Hermes
is said to have lulled Argos to sleep by means of his. syrinx, or
pipe of seven reeds, or by his caduceus, and then to have stoned
variant, of
of
him
See Roscher's Ausfuhr. Lex. d. griech. u.
It is to be noticed that instead of
"Argos."
Argum, four MSS. read argentum, which is curious as showing a
See n. 4 to Giceronis Opera
Medieval Alchemical influence.
Philosophica (Delph. et Var. Clas.), vol. ii. (London, 1830).
2
Pheneus was a town in Arcadia, that country of
Pheneatce,
ancient mysteries. (It is remarkable that Hermas is taken by the
" Shepherd " in spirit to a mountain in Arcadia. See Shepherd of
Cicero begins his description of the fifth
Hermas, Sim. ix. 1.)
Hermes with this statement, and Lactantius has thus awkwardly
misplaced it. Pausanias (viii. 14, 6) tells us that Pheneus itself
was considered as a very ancient city, and that its chief cult was
or cut off his head.
rom. Myth.,
s.v,
that of Hermes.
This cult of Hermes, moreover, was blended
with an ancient mystery- tradition, for Pausanias (ibid., 15, 1) tells
us that
"
The Pheneatians have
also a sanctuary of
Demeter surnamed
Eleusinian, and they celebrate mysteries in her honour, alleging
that rites identical with those performed at Eleusis were instituted
in their land.
Beside the sanctuary of the Eleusinian goddess
what is called the Petroma, two great stones fitted to each other.
Every second year, when they are celebrating what they call the
Greater Mysteries, they open these stones, and taking out of them
certain writings which bear on the mysteries, they read them in
the hearing of the initiated, and put them back in their place
I know, too, that on the weightiest matters
that same night.
is
LACTANTIUS
he was
a man,
[really]
233
he was of such
still
high
antiquity, and so deeply versed in every kind of science,
that his knowledge of [so]
gained him the
He
wrote books, indeed
the Gnosis
of
many
things and of the arts
title of " Thrice-greatest."
many
[of
them], treating of
things divine, in which he asserts the
One and Only God, and
by the same names as we [do] God and
Father. 2 And [yet], so that no one should seek after
His name, he has declared that He cannot be named, in
that He doth not need to have a name, owing, indeed,
unto the very [nature of His] unity. 3 His words are
greatness of the Highest and
calls
Him
these 4
FEAGMENT
But God
[is]
not a name, for
and
II.
He
one
He
[as one] is The-beyond-all-
who's one needs
names.
The Historical Origins of the Hermetic
Tradition
For Lactantius, then, Hermes was very ancient;
who descended from heaven and
moreover, he was one
had
returned
thither.
When, however, Firmianus
Hermetic tradition,
was invariably the case with the ancients, he can do
nothing better than refer us to a complex though
attempts the historical origins of the
as
most
1
swear by
393 (London, 1898).
Pheneatians
of the
Translation,
i.
the
Petroma."
Frazer's
Cognitionem.
Qf.
P.
S. A., xx. (p. 42, 16,
Goldb.)
Compare with Epitome 4 below.
Lactantius here quotes in Greek.
43, 3, Goldb.).
et
Gf.
pass.
C.
K,
v. (vi.) 2.
P. S. A., xx. (p. 42, 27-
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
234
interesting myth, and to a legend of it devised to flatter
the self-esteem of
whose
cult,
its
Hellenic creators
moreover, was
known
Greek
god,
be intimately
to
connected with an ancient mystery-tradition, was the
originator of the
with
all
nations
special tradition
wisdom of Egypt. Of course and so
who had any ancient learning their
was oldest and best and originator of
;
others
all
For the
rest,
Lactantius knows nothing historically
which he esteemed so highly, and the
mention of the Latinized name Thoyth 1 and of Hermopolis 2 does but throw the paucity of his knowledge
of the tradition
deeper
into
What
relief.
Lactantius does
know
is
Greek and its general tendency.
The sentence he quotes is not found textually in any
large literature in
of the extant Trismegistic literature. 3
Ibid.,
ii.
i.
11, 61
Brandt,
p.
47; Fritzsche,
i.
29, 30.
Uranus, Cronus and Hermes, Adepts of the
Perfect Science
And so it appears that he [Cronus] was not born from
Heaven (which is impossible), but from that man who
was called Uranus and that this is so, Trismegistus
;
bears witness, when, in stating that there have been
very few in
1
whom
the perfect science has been found,
Was, however, this the spelling found in Cicero, for Firmianus
it from the text of Tully ?
It is a pity we have no critical
takes
apparatus of the text of Lactantius, for the
us with the following extraordinary
MSS. of
list
Cicero present
variants:
of
Then,
Ten, Their, Thoyt, Theyt, Theyn, Thetum, Thern, Thernum,
Theutatem, Theut, Thoyth, Thoth. See n. 5 to the text of Cicero,
cited above.
Gf.
R. 117, n.
Which he probably
home is in a place called
2
Chambers
mistaken.
2.
took from P. S. A., xxxvii. 4:
after him."
(p. 41, n. 1),
in referring
it to
"Whose
G. H., v. (vi.) 10, is
235
LACTANTIUS
he mentioned in their number Uranus, Cronus and
Hermes, his own kinsfolk. 1
iii.
Ibid.)
ii.
8,
48; Brandt,
p.
138; Fritzsohe,
i.
89.
Divine Providence
For the World was made by Divine Providence, not
to mention Thrice-greatest, who preaches this. 2
iv. Ibid.,
ii.
8,
68
Brandt, p. 141
Fritzsche,
On Mortal and Immortal
i.
91.
Sight
His [God's] works are seen by the eyes; but how
them, is not seen even by the mind, " in that,"
He made
Hermes
as
says
FEAGMENT
III.
Mortal cannot draw nigh 3 to the Immortal,
nor temporal to the Eternal, nor the corruptible
to That which
And,
knoweth no
corruption.
hath the earthly animal not
therefore,
yet capacity to see celestial things, in that
it is
kept shut within the body as in a prison house,
lest with freed sense, emancipate, it
1
14.
Gf. G.
In
H., x. (xi.) 5
my
Lactantius
2
P. 8. A., xxxvii.
commentary on the
is
i.
5, 16, 20.
all.
Also Lact., EpiL,
1.
passage I have
probably here referring to a
Fragg. ap. Stob., Eel.,
Cf.
first
should see
shown that
Hermetic treatise.
It is to be noticed from
lost
the context that Lactantius places Trismegistus in a class apart
together with the Sibylline Oracles and Prophets, and then proceeds to speak of the philosophers, Pythagoreans, Platonists, etc.
He also
3
repeats the
Propinquare.
same
triple combination in iv. 6.
L. glosses this as
meaning
"
follow with the intelligence."
4
Gf.
Frag. ap. Cyril, G.
I.,
i.
(vol. vi., p.
31
c).
come
close to
and
236
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
The
part of this citation (which Lactantius gives
first
in Latin) is identical in idea with a sentence in Frag,
iv.
that favourite source
Ex.
ii.
of quotation,
which Stobseus,
excerpted from
(Flor. lxxx. [lxxviii.] 9),
"The
[Sermon] to Tat/' 1 It might, then, be thought that
this was simply a paraphrase of Lactantius or that he
was quoting from memory, and that the second sentence
,
was not quotation but
sentence
own writing.
his
But the second
so thoroughly Trismegistic that it has every
is
appearance of being genuine. 2
v.
Ibid.,
ii.
10,
13; Brandt,
Man made
U9;
p.
Fritzsohe,
i.
96.
God
after the Image of
But the making of the truly living man out of clay 3
God. And Hermes also hands on the tradition of
this fact,
for not only has he said that man was made
by God after the Image of God, 4 but also he has
attempted to explain with what skilfulness He has
formed every single member in the body of man, since
there is not one of them which is not admirably suited
not only for what it has to do, but also adapted for
is of
beauty. 5
Man made
Image
after the
fundamental doctrines
For instance, P. S. A.,
as say the Greeks, but
of
vii.
"
which we
EpU.
God
one of the
is
the Trismegistic
of
The [man]
call
the
tradition.
'
essential/
form
of the
Compare
It is interesting to note, in the history of the text-tradition,
also Lact.,
that the received reading
stands in one
MS. (A)
from the original
4.
ar\ia\vai
<rviA&rjvcu,
("be expressed") in Stobseus
to be a transference
which seems
of L.'s propinquare.
slime or mud.
Limo,
Lact. repeats this in vii. 4.
Of. 0.
jBT.,
v. (vi.) 6.
Of. G.
H.,
i.
12.
LACTANTIUS
Divine Similitude'"
and
x.
237
3: "Giving the greatest
thanks to God, His Image reverencing, not ignorant
that he [man] is, too, God's image, the second [one] for
;
God
that there are two images of
vi.
Ibid.,
ii.
12,
4; Brandt,
p.
Cosmos and man."
156; Fritzsche,
i.
100.
Hermes the First Natural Philosopher
Empedocles
elements,
2
.
fire, air,
[and others]
water, and earth,
who
laid
down
four
perchance
[in this]
were
composed of these four elements by God.
" For that they have in them something of fire, something of air, something of water, and something of earth,
and yet they are not fire [in itself], nor air, nor water,
following Trismegistus,
said that our bodies
nor earth."
All this about the elements
of ancient physics,
is,
of course, a
and we may,
naive speculation of Lactantius,
he had the very words of the
who
first
commonplace
therefore, dismiss the
evidently thought
inventor of the theory
him; for he renders into Latin word for word
the same text which Stobseus has preserved to us in an
excerpt from "The [Sermons] to Tat" Ex. iii. I. 3
before
vii.
Ibid.,
ii.
14,
5; Brandt,
163; Fritzsche,
p.
i.
105.
The Daimon-Chief
Thus there are two classes of daimons, the one
and the other terrestrial.
The latter are
impure spirits, the authors of the evils that are done, 4
celestial,
E. 21,
Of. also Hermes-Prayer, iii. 11.
Date c. 494-434 B.C.
See also Ex. vii. 3 0. H. ii. (iii.) 11.
;
Gf;G. H. y
ix. (x.)
G. H., xvi. 10.
n. 11.
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
238
whom
of
the same Diabolus
gistus calls
ii.
15, 6; Brandt, p.
Devotion
fine,
Whence Trisme-
is chief.
the " Daimon-chief ."
him
Ibid.,
viii.
In
Hermes
166; Fritzsche,
106.
i.
God-Gnosis
is
asserts that those
who have known
God, not only are safe from the attacks
of evil daimons,
He
but also that they are not held even by Fate,2
FEAGMENT
The one means
IV.
of protection is piety.
For
neither doth an evil daimon nor doth Fate rule
pious man. 8
o'er the
For God doth save the
pious [man] from every
good found
And what
in
mankind
The one and
ill.
is
only-
piety.
piety means, he witnesses in another place,
saying
"Devotion
God-Gnosis." 4
is
Asclepius, his Hearer, has also explained the
idea at greater length in that
"
Perfect Sermon
"
same
which
he wrote to the King.
Both, then, assert that the daimons are the enemies
and harriers
of
men, and for this cause Trismegistus
not found in the extant texts
be referred to Hermes, but to the
disquisition of Lactantius at the beginning of 14.
2
Gf. Cyril, G. /., iv. (vol. vi. 130 E, Aub.).
1
daifjLovtdpxn^
" Diabolus "
3
4
is,
For the same
7]
-ycfcp
This term
is
of course, not to
idea, see G. H., xii. (xiii.) 9.
evcrefieia yva)<ris
icrrt
rod Oeov,
which
Lactantius
in
another passage (v. 14) renders into Latin as " Pietas autem
is given in G. H. 7 ix. (x.) 4 as
nihil aliud est quam dei notio,
evarcfeia 5e <m deov yvSiffis (where Parthey notes no various read-
ings in MSS.).
LACTANTIUS
calls
them
" evil
angels ',"
239
so far
was he from being
ignorant that from celestial beings they had become
corrupted, and so earthly.
This passage
with numerous
is
given in Greek, and
is
quoted, but
by Cyril (Contra Julianum,
it is also practically the same as the sentence
iv. 130)
in P. S. A., xxix. " The righteous man finds his defence
in serving God and deepest piety.
For God doth guard
such men from every ill."
Now we know that Lactantius had the Greek of this
" Perfect Sermon " before him, and we know that our
Latin translation is highly rhetorical and paraphrastic.
The only difficulty is that Lactantius' quotation
ends with the sentence " The one and only good found
in mankind is piety " and this does not appear in the
Latin translation of P. S. A. On the other hand,
Firmianus immediately refers by name to a Perfect
Sermon, which, however, he says was written by
Asclepius, and addressed to the King.
Our Fragment
probably
from
therefore,
the
lost
is,
ending of G. H.,
xvi. (see Commentary on the title).
glosses, also
ix. Ibid., iv. 6,
4; Brandt,
p.
286; Fritzsche,
i.
178.
The Cosmic Son of God
Hermes, in that book which
is
entitled the " Perfect
Sermon/' uses these words
FEAGMENT
V.
The Lord and Master of all things (whom 'tis
our custom to call God), when He had made the
1
texts;
these words do not occur in our extant
but the Lat. trans, of P. S. A., xxv. 4, preserves
ayye\ovs irovnpobs,
Greek
u nocentes angeli"
240
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
second God, the Visible and Sensible,1
Him
sensible, not
Himself
He
that
Himself sensation, we
He
enquire), but that
of mind,
when,
and One and Only,
and
fair,
At Him he
His Son.
as
made Him
He seemed
quite
filled
He
object of senses
is
of
full
call
hath
some other time
will
then, He'd
2
hath sensation in
whether or no
(for as to this,
most
things good.
all
marvelled, and loved
First,
Him
to
and
Him
altogether
Lactantius here quotes from the lost Greek original
The Perfect Sermon," viii. 1. We have thus a
means of controlling the old Latin translation which
has come down to us.
It is, by comparison, very free and often rhetorical
"
of
inserting phrases and even changing the original, as,
for instance, when in the last clause it says " He fell
:
in love with
It
is,
had a
him
His Divinity."
as being part of
however, possible that the translator
may have
different text before him, for there is reason to
believe that there were several recensions of the P. S.
x. Ibid., iv. 6,
Brandt, p. 291
Fritzsche,
i.
A*
179.
The Demiurge of God
(Speaking of the Son
with the pre-existent
viii.
22, Lactantius adds
Sc. the
For
Quinque
4
of
God and
identifying
Wisdom spoken
of in
:)
2
Logos as Cosmos.
last clause, see
(7,
Hcereses, vol. viii.,
Him
Proverbs
if.,
i.
Of. also Ps.
12.
Append,
p.
E,
Of.
Frag. x.
Augustin., G.
Maur.
Lactantius himself also gives a partial translation of this
passage in his Epitome, 42 (Fritz.,
ii.
140).
LACTANTIUS
Wherefore
"Demiurge
Brandt,
the
God."
xi. Ibid., iv. 7,
Him
has called
Trisinegistus
also
of
241
292; Fritzsche,
p.
179.
i.
The Name of God
Even then [when the world shall be consummated], 2
Name] will not be able to be uttered by the
mouth of man, as Hermes teaches, saying
it
[God's
FEAGMENT
But the Cause of
this
VI.
Cause
the Divine and
is
Ingenerable Good's Good-will, which
the
first
God whose Name cannot be
brought forth the
spoken by the mouth of man. 4
Ibid., iv. 7, 3
xii.
Brandt,
293
p.
Fritzsche,
The Holy Woed about the Lord of
And
little after
is,
[my]
VII.
son, a
of wisdom, that no tongue can
1
The
drjfuovpyhv rod Oeov.
extant texts, but the idea
doctrine
see especially
is
xxi.)
2
Cyril,
G.
and Exx.
iii.
P. S. A., xxvi.
Gf. vii.
3 Sc.
will
Jul,
i.
6, iv. 2.
a Holy
(jSot$A77<ns).
"The Demiurgus of the
" God of first
18, 4
:
also G. H.,
33 (Frag. xih\), and
Gf. also Ep. 14 below.
Gf. especially
This is plainly from
Fragment.
vi.
i.
Gf. G. H.,
III.
10, 11,
6 (Frag.
i.
and
Lact.
the
and
P. S. A., Commentary.
same source
as the
Cyril, passim
(e.g.
following
Fragg. xxi.,
xxii.).
VOL.
18 below.
tell,
[Logos']
exact words do not occur in our
and the one God," and Lact., ibid., vii.
might, and Guider of the one God." See
18
Word
a commonplace of the Trismegistic
first
xvi.
all.
[he says] to his son
FEAGMENT
For that there
179, 180.
i.
16
242
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
[Word] about the only Lord
before
all
all
whom
thought,
human
power.
xiii. Ibid., iv. 8,
His
of
all,
God
the
to declare transcends
5; Brandt,
296; Fritzsche,
p.
i.
181.
Own Father and Own Mother
But Hermes
also
was
same opinion when he
of the
His own father and His own mother." 2
"
xiv. Ibid., iv. 9,
Brandt,
p.
300
Fritzsche,
182,
i.
183.
The Power and Greatness of the Word
Trismegistus,
almost
all
who
has tracked out, I
greatness of the
Word
know not how,
described the power and
truth, has often
(Logos), as the
above quotation 3
from him shows, in which he confesses the
be Ineffable and Holy, and in that
its
Word
to
telling forth
transcends the power of man.
xv. Ibid.,
iv. 13,
2; Brandt,
p.
316; Fritzsche,
i.
190.
The Fatherless and Motherless
For God, the Father, and the Source, and Principle
of things, in that He hath no parents, is very truly
called by Trismegistus "father-less" and " motherless"
in that
He
is
brought forth from none. 5
1
This passage and the preceding, then, are evidently taken
from "The Sermons to Tat." Laetantius quotes in Greek, and
again refers to the passage in
2
avToirdropa
ko.1 avro/j.'fjTopa
for the idea see G. H.,
3
Ibid., iv. 7.
airdrwp
et
apL^rap.
i.
9.
iv. 9.
not found in the extant texts
See also
Gf. Lact.,
D.
iv. 13,
but
and Ep. 4 below.
2 (Brandt).
I., i. 7,
Terms not found in our extant texts probably taken from
the same source as the terms in iv. 8 above.
;
243
LACTANTITJS
xvi.
Ibid., v. 14, 11
But
" piety is
Brandt,
446
p.
Fritzsche,
i.
256.
Piety the Gnosis of God
nothing else than Gnosis of God," x as
Trismegistus has most truly laid down, as
we have
said
in another place. 2
10 ; Brandt,
xvii. Ibid,, vi. 25,
Way
The only
Concerning
579
Fritzsche,
to Worship
ii.
60.
God
he [Trismegistus, who in this
justice,
(namely concerning
p.
sacrifice) " agrees substantially
and
verbally with the prophets "] has thus spoken
"
Unto
Word
this
thy homage pay.
God,
[it is]
my
(Logos),
There
son,
thy adoration and
one way alone to worship
is
not to be bad."
Here Lactantius translates literally from 0. H., xii.
23, a sermon which now bears the title, " About
(xiii.)
Common Mind
Hermes, however, in the
context of the quoted passage, is not writing "about
justice," and much less could the whole sermon be so
the
entitled,
stand
and Ex.
indeed Lactantius intended us so to under-
if
But
it.
to Tat."
xi.,
"
Commentary,
see the
On
G.
R.
xii. (xiii.) 6,
Justice."
xviii. Ibid., v. 25,
11
Brandt,
p.
579
Fritzsche,
ii.
60.
The Worthiest Sacrifice to God
Also in that
"Perfect
when he heard
Sermon,"
Asclepius enquiring of his son,3 whether
pleasing to his
1
Notio
That
That
del.
is,
is,
father, that incense
2
Namely
Hermes' son Tat.
Tat's father, Hermes.
ii.
15,
it would be
and other perfumes
q.v. for
comment.
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
244
should be offered in their holy rite to God, [Hermes]
exclaimed
FKAGMENT
Nay, nay
Asclepius
VIII.
speak more propitiously,
For very great impiety
is
[my]
to let
it
mind any such thought about that
One and Only Good.
come
in the
These things, and things like these, are not
appropriate to Him.
For
that exist and least of
all
He
is full
He
stands
of all things
in need [of
aught].
But
The
let
us worship pouring forth our thanks.
[worthiest] sacrifice to
Him
is
blessing, [and
blessing] only.
With
compare the passage in P. S. A., xli. 2
Here again we have the means
of controlling the old Latin translator, but not with
such exactitude as before, for Lactantius has also
turned the Greek text into Latin. But not only from
this
(p. 61, 16, Goldb.).
Hermes
the other specimens of Lactantius'
transla-
but also from his present close reproduction of
the ordinary wording of the Trismegistic treatises, we
tions,
may
be further confident that the Old Latin translation
is free,
paraphrastic, and rhetorical, as
we have
already
remarked.
xix. Ibid., vii. 4, 3
Brandt,
Man made
in
p.
593
Fritzsohe,
ii.
69.
the Image of God
But Hermes was not ignorant that man was made
by God and in the Image of God. 1
1
See above,
ibid., ii. 10, 13,
Comment.
LAOTANTIUS
xx. Ibid.,
vii. 9,
11; Brandt,
p.
245
612; Fritzsche,
82.
ii.
Contemplation
man
(Speaking of
being the only animal that has
body upright, and face raised
towards his Maker, Lactantius says
his
And
this " looking "
to heaven, looking
:)
Hermes has most
rightly
named
contemplation. 1
xxi. Ibid., vii. 13,
3; Brandt, p. 624; Fritzsche,
ii.
90.
The Dual Nature of Man
Hermes, in describing the nature
that he might teach
man, in order
of
how he was made by God,
brings
forward the following
FEAGMENT
From
mortal,
IX.
two natures, the deathless and
the
He made
one nature,
one and the self-same thing
that
man,
of
and having made
the self-same [man] both somehow deathless and
somehow
set
mortal,
He
him up betwixt
brought him forth, and
the godlike and immortal
1 OeoTTTiav^Oewpiav.
See, for instance, G. if., xiv. (xv.) 1, and
K. K., 1, 38, 51 also Frag. ap. Stob., Flor., xi. 23; and also
compare G. H., iv. (v.) 2 " For contemplator (eear^s) of God's
works did man become." It is also of interest to note that Justin
Martyr (Dial. c. Tryph., 218 c) enumerates the Theoretics or
Contemplatives, among the most famous sects of Philosophers,
;
naming them
in the following order
Platonics, Stoics, Peri-
patetics, Theoretics, Pythagorics.
2 Compare the "setting up betwixt" (eV^ueVy
the " setting up " of the mind "in the midst " (4v fxecnp
.
of 0. #., iv. (v.) 3.
'{dpvo-w)
with
idpv<r6ai)
THEICE-GREATEST HERMES
246
nature and the mortal, that seeing
wonder
at
all
he might
all.
Wonder the Beginning
This idea of "
wondering
of Philosophy
" was, doubtless, a
common-
place in Hellenistic philosophical circles and looked
back to the Platonic saying: "There is no other beginning of Philosophy than wondering/' Compare also
one of the newest found "Logoi of Jesus," from the
rubbish heaps of Oxyrhynchus, which runs
him that seeketh
"
Let not
when
cease until he find, and
he finds he shall wonder; wondering he shall reign,
and reigning he shall rest." 1
Wondering
this makes
and thus master of gods and
men, and so he has peace. The translation of fiacriXevcrei
by Grenfell and Hunt as " reach the kingdom " seems
to me to have no justification.
Lactantius here quotes the Greek text of P. S. A.,
viii. 3, and so once again we can control the Old Latin
version.
The Church Father is plainly the more
reliable, reproducing as he does familiar Hermetic
phrasing and style and we thus again have an insight
into the methods of our rhetorical, truncated, and in-
man
king
is
the beginning of Gnosis
of himself,
terpolated Latin Version.
xxii.
Ibid., vii. 18,
3; Brandt,
p.
640; Fritzsche,
ii.
99.
The Cosmic Eestoration
And Hermes
world]
1
p.
states
plainly.
Cf. iv. 7 above.
[the
destruction
of
For in that book which bears the
Grenfell (B. P.) and
13 (London, 1904).
this
Hunt
(A.
S.),
New
the
title
Sayings of Jesus,
247
LACTANTIUS
of "
The Perfect Sermon," after an enumeration
which we have spoken, he adds
of the
evils of
FKAGMENT
Now when
have
then will [our] Lord and
Sire,
these things shall be, as
said, Asclepius,
God and Maker
the
X.
of the First and the
God, 1 look down on what
firm His Will,
that
is
order, recalling error,
is
done, and,
the Good,
One
making
against
dis-
and purging out the bad,
by washing it away with water-flood, or
burning it away with swiftest fire, or forcibly
He [then]
expelling it with war and famine,
will bring again His Cosmos to its former state,
either
and so achieve
xxiii. Ibid.,
its
Eestoration.
Epitome,
4,
679; Fritzsche,
4; Brandt, p
117.
ii.
Of Hermes and
Hermes,
ledge of
who
his Doctrine concerning
who, on account
many
arts,
of his virtue
gained the
philosophers,
and who
declaring
is
He
the greatness of the
(p.
has no name, for
Gf. Frag. v.
Lactantius quotes the original Greek of P. S. A., xxvi. 1
48, 24, Goldb.), so that we can thus once more remark the
liberties
3
One and
Him God and
that He has no
as He alone is,
praises, calls
need for a distinctive name,3 inasmuch
2
preceded the
worshipped as god among the
Only God with unending
Father, [and says]
and know-
title of Thrice-greatest,
also in the antiquity of his doctrine
Egyptians,
God
Gf.
which the Old Latin translation has taken with the
Frag.
ii.
text.
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
248
He
nor has
any parents, in that
He
is
both from
Himself and by Himself. 1
In writing to his son [Tat] he begins as follows
To comprehend God is difficult, to speak [of Him]
impossible, even for one who can comprehend for the
Perfect cannot be comprehended by the imperfect, nor
"
the Invisible by the visible/'
685; Fritzsche,
xxiv. Ibid., Ep., 14; Brandt, p.
ii.
121.
Repetition
(Lactantius repeats in almost identical words what he
has written in
i.
11.)
xxv. Ibid., Ep., 37 (42), 2; Brandt, p.
ii.
712;
Fritzsche,
140.
Plato as Prophet follows Trismegistus
By means
says,
of
He [God
him [the Logos]
as Demiurge, 3 as
Hermes
the Father] hath devised the beautiful
and wondrous creation of the world.
Finally Plato has spoken concerning the
.
second God, not
plainly as
and
first
philosopher, but
as
prophet, perchance in this following Trismegistus, whose
words I have added in translation from the Greek.
(Lactantius then translates verbally from the Greek
text he has quoted in
last clause
1
See
The
i.
iv.
6, 4,
omitting, however, the
and the parenthesis in the middle.)
6 and
iv.
8 above.
is a verbatim translation of the text of the
Stobsean Extract ii., while the second is a paraphrase even of L.'s
own version from the Greek (see ii. 8 above). We learn, however, the new scrap of information that the quotation is from the
first
clause
beginning of the sermon.
3
The
reference to the "
Demiurge " looks back
to iv. 6, 9.
VIII.
AUGUSTINE
i.
De
Givitate Dei, xxiii.
Hoffmann
(E.),
i.
392 (Vienna,
1899-1900). 1
Three Quotations from the Old Latin Version
of the "Perfect Sermon"
Augustine
(first
"
half
is
arguing against the views of Appuleius
of the
second century) on the cult of the
daimones ," and in so doing introduces a long disquisi-
tion on the doctrine of " Egyptian
call Thrice-greatest,"
Hermes,
whom
they
concerning image-worship, or the
consecrated and "ensouled," or "animated," statues of
the gods.
In the course of his remarks the Bishop
quotes at length from a current Latin version
of
2
Hippo
The
of "
Sermon " or " Asclepius " (though without himany title), which we see at once must have
been the very same text that has come down to us in
It is precisely the same text, word for
its entirety.
Perfect
self giving
word, with ours
the variants being practically of the
most minute character.
1
Corpus Scriptorum Ecclesiasticorum Latinorum, vol. xxx.
(Imp. Acad, of Vienna). The date of the writing of the treatise,
Be Givitate Dei, is fixed as being about 413-426 a.d.
2 Hujus JEgyptii
sunt
verba, sicut in nostram
249
linguam interpretata
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
250
First of all Augustine quotes from P. S. A., xxiii. 3,
This "prophecy" of the downfall of the
2.
Egyptian religion Augustine naturally takes as referring to the triumph of Christianity, and so he ridicules
xxiv.
Hermes
"[qui]
tarn
impudenter
dolebat,
quam im-
prudentur sciebat"
ii.
Ibid., xxiv.
The Bishop
Hoffmann,
of
his next chapter with
S. A., xxxvii.
and proceeds scornfully
subject,
iii.
396.
Hippo begins
a quotation from P.
ments
i.
1,
2,
on the same
to criticise the state-
of the Trismegistic writer.
Ibid., xxvi.
Hoffmann,
i.
402.
After quoting the sentence, from P.
8. A., xxiv.
3,
which Hermes says that the pure temples of Egypt
will all be polluted with tombs and corpses, Augustine
proceeds to contend that the gods of Egypt are all
dead men, and in support of his contention he quotes
P. S. A. xxxvii. 3, 4.
in
IX.
CYRIL OF ALEXANDRIA
i.
Contra Julimum,
i.
30
Migne,
Cyril's Corpus of
col.
a. 2
548
XV. Books
(Cyril, after claiming that Pythagoras and Plato ob-
tained their
wisdom
in
Egypt from what, he
they had heard of Moses there, proceeds
And
I think the Egyptian
considered worthy of
of the
some
title of
:)
Hermes
mention
who, they say, bears the
professes,
also should be
and recollection
he
Thrice-greatest because
honour paid him by his contemporaries, and, as
think, in comparison with
Hermes the
fabled son
Zeus and Maia.
of
This Hermes of Egypt, then, although an initiator
into mysteries,3
and though he never ceased
to cleave
to the shrines of idols, is [nevertheless] found to
grasped the doctrines of Moses,
correctness,
1
and beyond
all cavil,
if
yet
still
in part.
The date of Cyril's patriarchate is 412-444 a.d.
Migne (J. P.), Patrologice Gursus Gompletus, Series
torn, lxxvi. (Paris, 1859).
Beligione adversus
is also
S. P. iV. Gyrilli
Julianum Imperatorem Libri
given R. 211, n.
1.
251
have
not with entire
Grseca,
Pro Ghristiana
Decern.
The
text
"
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
252
For both [Hermes] himself has been benefitted [by
made
who put
Moses], and reminder of this [fact] has also been
in his
own
writings by [the editor] at Athens
together the fifteen books entitled " Hermaica."
concerning him [Hermes] in the
editor] writes
book, putting the words into the
priests of the sacred rites
"
In order then that
have
mouth
of
[This
first
one of the
we may come
to things of a like
you not heard that our Hermes
Egypt into allotments and portions,
measuring off the acres with the chain, 1 and cut canals
for irrigation purposes, and made nomes,2 and named
the lands [comprised in them] after them, and established the interchange of contracts, and drew up a list
of the risings of the stars, and [the proper times 3 ] to cut
and beyond all this he discovered and beplants
queathed to posterity numbers, and calculations, and
geometry, and astronomy, and astrology, and music, and
the whole of grammar ?
nature
(?),
divided the whole of
This Corpus of
XV. Books
is
evidently the source of
and he takes the above quotation
from the Introduction, which purported to be written
by an Egyptian priest (as is also the case in the treatise
Cyril's information,
De
Mysteriis, traditionally ascribed to Jamblichus), but
which Cyril says was written at Athens, by presumably
some Greek editor. 4
1
lit.
"Acres," lit. = areas
= measuring cord.
Or provinces
Sc. of the
100 Egyptian cubits square
and " chain,"
Migne's Latin translator gives this as " laws "
moon.
4 6 o-vvredeiKcbs 'AOrivrKri)
a phrase which Chambers (p. 149) erroneously translates by " which he [Hermes] having composed for
R. (p. 211, n. 1) thinks this redactor was some NeoAthenians "
!
platonist.
CYRIL OF ALEXANDRIA
ii.
Ibid.,
31
i.
Migne
549
col.
253
b.
The Incokporeal Eye
Thrice-greatest
Hermes
says
somewhat
as follows
(Cyril then quotes, with four slight verbal variants,
the
first
Stobaeus, Ex.
ii.,
and then proceeds without a break :)
FKAGMENT
If,
XI.
1
then, there be an incorporeal eye, let
forth from
let it fly
it
go
body unto the Vision of the Beautiful
up and soar
aloft,
seeking to see not
form, nor body, nor [even] types
but rather That which
the
by
four paragraphs of the passage excerpted
[of things],
the Maker of
is
[all] these,
Quiet and Serene, the Stable and the
Changeless One, the
Self,
Self of self, the Self in
[alone],
That which
[yet] unlike to self,
Though Cyril runs
is
the All, the One, the
self,
the Like to Self
neither like to other, nor
and [yet] again Himself. 8
this
passage
on to
the
four
paragraphs which in the Stobaean Extract are continued
by three other paragraphs,
am
quite persuaded that
the Archbishop of Alexandria took the above from the
same
"
Sermon
Sc. the soul.
Masc, not
to
Tat " 4 as the Anthologist. 6
2
8c. ideas.
neut., as are all the preceding "self's."
There
throughout a play on "self" and "same" which is
unreproducible in English.
4
That is, presumably, the "First Sermon of the Expository
[Sermons] to Tat" (see Comment to the Stobaean Excerpt).
6
See also Fragg. xii., xiii., xv., xx., xxii., xxiii., xxiv. (?).
is
also
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
254
iii.
Ibid,,
i.
33
Migne,
col.
552
D.
The Heavenly Word Proceeding Forth
And
Thrice-greatest
Hermes thus
himself
delivers
concerning God:
FRAGMENT
XII.
For that His Word (Logos) proceeding
creative
he
as
all-perfect
and
was,
forth,
and
fecund,
in fecund Nature, falling on fecund
8
Water, made Water pregnant.
The Pyramid
And
the same again [declares]
FRAGMENT
The Pyramid,
and the
above
R.
ruling
it
(p.
all,
it
For that
the Creator- Word
who, being
hath
of the
the First Power after
mouth
of God,"
but I
adjective ySpipos ("fecund") is applied to both Logos
;
spermal
reproduced K. 43.
or
fruitful,
Compare
G. H.,
i.
it might thus be varied as seedful and
Text
and productive.
Of. Frag. xiii.
8, 14, 15.
plainly reproduced from Cyril,
4
That
Sc.
is,
This Fragment
by Suidas (q.v.).
is
also quoted,
but
the Logos.
the Pyramid, in physics the symbol of
fire.
xxii.
6
it
for introducing this symbolism.
and Physis (Nature)
below [both] Nature
43) glosses this with " out of the
no necessity
The
is
Intellectual World.
Lord of
see
then,
XIII.
driixtovpybv \6yov.
Compare
Lact.,
D.
I., iv. 6, 9.
See Frag,
CYRIL OF ALEXANDRIA
255
Him, [both] increate [and] infinite, leaned forth. *
from Him, and has his seat above, and rule o'er
He is
all that have been made through him.
the First-born of the All-perfection, His perfect,
2
fecund and true Son.
The Nature of God's Intellectual Word
And
again the same [Hermes],
Temple-folk
in Egypt questions
FEAGMENT
he
called
the
of
XIV.
most mighty Good Daimon, was
But why,
4
when one
him and says
by
name 5 by
this
the Lord of
all ?
replies
Yea, have
I told
thee in what has gone before,
but thou hast not perceived
The nature
it.
Word
of His Intellectual
a productive and creative Nature.
is
though
it
were His
[His] Nature, or [His]
1
TrpoKtyacrct.
emanation.
that
is,
(Logos)
This
is
as
or
Power-of-giving-birth,
Mode
projected,
Compare the hymn
of being, or call
it
presumably with the idea of
Heavenly Word proceeding
"
Yet leaving not the Father's side." Compare the -xapeKvtysv
i. 14, and note.
Compare 0. H. i. 6, 9, 10 xiii. (xiv.) 3 xiv. (xv.) 3. For
forth,
of G. H.,
2
slightly revised text, see R. 243, n. 3.
Keitzenstein thinks that
mind was the pyramid, or
with the sun-disk on the top.
3 renevnSbv.
The questioner was undoubtedly Osiris (see Frag,
Cyril then knows that "Osiris" was understood to
xix. below).
stand for a grade of Egyptian priests. Of. R. 131.
6 Presumably " Soul" (Psyche).
4 Presumably the Logos.
the image which the writer had in his
obelisk,
y4vt(ris.
256
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
what you
will,
He
is
only
remembering
the
Perfect in
Perfect,
Perfect makes, and creates, and
perfect
good
that
and from
the
makes to
live,
things.
He
Since, then,
He
this
thus named.
hath this nature, rightly
is
The Word of the Creator
And
"
the same [Hermes], in the First Sermon of the
Expository [Sermons] to Tat," 2 speaks thus about God
FEAGMENT
The Word {Logos)
transcends
all
sight
XV.
of the Creator,
He
[is]
[my]
self-moved
cannot be increased, nor [yet] diminished
He, and
is
identical,
alone beyond
The
first
all
He
Alone
unto Himself [Alone], equal,
like
perfect
order; for that
son,
in
He
His
is
stability,
perfect
the One, after the
in
God
knowing.
two Fragments
(xi.
and
xii.)
seem
to
be
taken from the same sermon, the contents of which
resembled the
first
part of the " Shepherd of
Men
"
it has all the appearance of a discourse addressed to Tat, and probably came in " The Expository
treatise;
Sermons."
1
This passage seems to refer to the identity of Soul and Logos.
For revised text see R. 131, and the reference there to Plato,
Gratylus, 400 b, where ^X^?, soul, is explained by the word-play
(pvorexv, that is, that which has physis, or nature, or the power of
production.
2
rcoy irpbs rbv Tclt 8ie|o5*/c&)j/.
CYRIL OF ALEXANDRIA
The
third
Fragment
(xiii.)
257
belongs to the more frankly
Egyptian type, the Agathodaimon literature, in which
Hermes, as the Good Spirit, figures as the teacher of
the Mystery-god Osiris. 1
The last Fragment (xv.) is so similar in its phrasing
Fragment xi., already given by Cyril (i. 31), that I
to
am strongly inclined to think the Archbishop took
both from the same source. If so, we can reconstruct
part of " The First Sermon of the Expository [Sermons]
which
to Tat," the beginning of
also given
by Stobseus, Ex.
ii.,
(see Lact., Mp., 4) is
with the heading from
"The [Book] to Tat," while he heads
" From the [pi.] to Tat." 2
v.
Ibid.,
ii.
35
Migne,
col.
556
Mini) of
And Hermes
other extracts
a.
Mind
also says in the Third
Sermon
of those
to Asclepius
FEAGMENT
It is
XVI.
not possible such mysteries [as these]
who
should be declared to those
initiation in the sacred
your
ears, [ears] of
But
rites.
your mind
are without
ye, lend
[me]
There was One Intellectual Light alone,
nay, Light transcending Intellectual Light.
for ever
is
Mind
of
mind
who makes
He
[that]
Light to shine.
1
See Frag. xix. below, where Cyril (ii. 56) says that this type
was found in the " Sermon to Asclepius," that is, was put with
the Aselepius-books in the collection which lay before him.
2
3
See also Fragg.
Of. K. K.> 16.
VOL.
III.
xi., xii,, xiii., xx., xxii., xxiii.,
xxiv.
(?).
17
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
258
There was no other
of Himself [alone].
for ever
doth
He
His Light and
[naught] save the Oneness
For ever
compass
Spirit.
in
all in
Himself [alone],
His own Mind,
He
And
is
All
after
some other things he says
Without
FEAGMENT XVII.
Him [is] neither god,
2
daimon, nor any other being.
of
[their] Father,
all,
and
Life,
sake.
[their]
For
He
is
Lord
God, and Source,
and Power, and Light, and Mind, and
For
Spirit.
and
nor angel, nor
all
things are in
Him and
for
His
Concerning Spirit
And
again, in the
same Third Sermon
Asclepius, in reply to one
who
of those to
questions [him] con-
cerning the Divine Spirit, the same [Hermes] says as
follows
FKAGMENT
Had
there not been
XVIII.
some Purpose 4 of the
Lord of
all,
That
Mind,
Light and Life.
See
being Life and Light."
ii.
so that I should disclose this
is,
.
Lit. outside of
For a
(iii.)
G.
if.,
i.
word
"God, the
Him.
fuller statement of the idea in this paragraph, see G. H.,
14.
Cyril thinks that the above two Fragments refer
Son (Mind of mind and Light
Ghost (the Divine supremacy and power), and
to the Father,
of light)
is
and Holy-
thus the source
of the statement in Suidas (s.v. "Hermes") that Trismegistus
spoke concerning the Trinity.
4 Or Providence, irpSvoia.
K. (203, n. 2) refers this to a belief
that only when some internal prompting gave permission to the
CYRIL OF ALEXANDRIA
ye would not have been
(logos),
great love
Of
degree,
up
raises
it
about
which
Spirit, of
spoken many times,
that
filled
with so
Now
it.
give
rest of the discourse (logos).
same
this
me
to question
ye ear unto the
259
have already
things have need
all
things, each in its
all
and makes them
live,
and gives
for
own
them
nourishment, and [finally] removes them from
its
holy source, 2 aiding the
giving
life
The
to
"
all,
spirit,
and
for ever
the [one] productive One."
To Asclepius " of Cyril's Corpus
From the above statements of Cyril we learn that in
addition to " The Expository Sermons to Tat," he had
also before
him
a collection of "
to Asclepius "
Sermons
of these there
were at
Sermon" one
of this collection?
Was
least three.
for the style of it is cast in the
"
The Perfect
It may have been;
same mould as that of
these Fragments in Cyril.
Hermes, in the Third Sermon
of Cyril's collection, is
addressing several hearers, for he uses the plural; so
also in P. S. A,,
i.
2.
Hermes
addresses Asclepius, Tat,
and Ammon.
In the Third Sermon, Hermes
possible such mysteries
also says
%poos roiovros.
That
That
is,
is,
lie
do
so.
Gf.
is
hopelessly wrong,
Comment
corrupt.
as,
;
indeed,
P.
not
Appul.,
presumably, causing their seeming death.
the individual life-breath, unless the reading
Kovpov inset par i
(xi.) 13,
" It is
should be declared to those
master to expand the teaching, could
Metam., xi. 21, 22 ; P. S. A., i.
2
The Latin
is
S. A., vi.
translator in
frequently the case.
Exx.
iv. 2,
M-
Migne goes
Gf. G.
xv. 2, xix. 3.
H,
x.
260
who
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
are without initiation in
P. S. A.
2,
i.
Hermes
declares
the saered rites"; in
:
" It is a
mark
impious mind to publish to the knowledge
of
of
an
the
crowd x a tractate 2 brimming o'er with the full grandeur
of divinity."
The numinis majestas (grandeur of
divinity) is precisely the same idea as the Spirit, the
" Divine supremacy and power," as Cyril says referring
to Hermes.
Third Sermon, Hermes makes the
remark that the Love (epoog) of the Gnosis
which urges on the disciples, is inspired by the Providence or Foresight of God that is, by His Spirit;
P. S. A., i. 28, ends with the words " To them, sunk
in fit silence reverently, their souls and minds pendent
on Hermes' lips, thus Love (epco$) Divine 3 began to
Finally, in the
striking
speak."
The
setting of the
refer
v.
them
Ibid.,
mode
of exposition is
then identi-
two Sermons, and we may thus very well
cal in the
to the
ii.
same
52; Migne,
collection.
col.
580 b.
From "The Mind"
"
To this I will add what Thrice-greatest Hermes wrote
To his own Mind," for thus the Book is called.
(Cyril then quotes, with very slight verbal variants,
the last question and answer in G.
IT., xi. (xii.)
22.)
In our Corpus the treatise is not written by Hermes
Mind, but, on the contrary, it is cast in the mould
of a revelation of " The Mind to Hermes," and is so
to the
That
Tractatus
Of. also
is,
the uninitiated, the profanum vulgus.
presumably logos in the original Greek.
;
P. S. A., xx. 2 and xxi.
1, 3,
CYRIL OF ALEXANDRIA
seems to have been mistaken. 1
Cyril thus
entitled.
261
may, then, have been that in the copy which lay
It
before the Church Father, the title read simply
"
The
Mind."
vi.
Ibid.,
ii.
55
Migne,
586
col.
d.
Osiris and Thkice-greatest Agathodaimon
But
mind the words of Hermes the
The Asclepius " 3 he says
will call to
Thrice-greatest
in "
FEAGMENT
Osiris said
[thou]
appear
Good
How,
Spirit,
when
did Earth in
its
entirety
The Great Good
By
thou Thrice-greatest,
then,
4
XIX.
Spirit
made
reply
gradual drying up, as I have said
many Waters
the
got
commandment
and
5
.
to go into themselves again, the Earth in its
entirety appeared,
muddy and
shaking.
Then, when the Sun shone forth, and without
ceasing burned and dried
compact
i
2
it
in the Waters, with
up, the Earth stood
Water
all
around. 6
Gf. E. 128, n. 1.
Texts of quotations reproduced in R. 127, n. 1.
From the quotations we can see that this could not have been
the special heading of the treatise from which Cyril quotes, and
which plainly belongs to the Agathodaimon type. Cyril prob-
ably means that the
general
4
title,
"
The
treatise, in his collection,
came under the
Asclepius."
'AyaObs Balixwv.
The reading is an untranslatable airb tov, where the lacuna is
probably to be completed with " from the Lord of all."
6 A distinction is evidently drawn between the (heavenly)
5
262
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
"Let there be Eabth"
Further, in yet another place [he writes]
FKAGMENT
XX.
The Maker and the Lord
Let there be Earth, and
appear
of all thus spake
let
the Firmament
1
!
And
forthwith the beginning of the [whole]
creation. Earth,
was brought into
existence.
The Generation of the Sun
So much about the Earth
as to the Sun, he again
says as follows
FEAGMENT
Then
[thou]
one
said
Osiris
Good
Spirit,
thou
Thrice-greatest,
whence came
this
mighty
Would'st thou,
the generation of
He came from
of
XXI.
all
yea, the
we tell to thee
the Sun, whence he appeared ?
that
Osiris,
out the Foresight of the Lord
Sun's
birth
proceedeth from
Water and water (the companion element of earth). The text is
immediately continued in Frag. xxi. below.
1
See C. H., i. 18, Commentary.
2 This seems
to be taken not from a different place in the " To
Asclepius," but from another sermon, or group of sermons, most
probably from the " First Expository Sermon to Tat " as may be
seen by comparing its phrasing with Frag. xxii. See also Fragg.
xi. } xii., xiii., xv., xxii., xxiii.,
xxiv.
(?).
CYRIL OF ALEXANDRIA
Lord of
the
263
through His Creative Holy
all,
Word. 1
"Let the Sun be!"
In like manner also in the
to Tat, "
" First
Expository Sermon
he says
FEAGMENT
XXII.
Straightway the Lord of
own Holy and
spake unto His
all
Intelligible
to
His Creative
Word (Logos) Let
And straightway
with His word
Fire that hath
nature tending upward, 2
mean pure
[Fire],
which gives greatest
that
Nature embraced
and raised
the
(logos),
most energy, and fecundates the
light, has the
most,
its
the Sun be
up
it
with her
aloft out of the
(After referring to Genesis
6:
i.
own
Spirit,
Water. 4
"And God
said,
Let there be a firmament in the midst of the waters,
and
the waters from the waters,"
let it divide
Cyril
proceeds :)
vii. Ibid.,
ii.
57
Migne,
col.
588
c.
The Firmament
Moreover the Hermes who
This
above.
is
Of.
is
with them 5 Thrice-
evidently an immediate continuation of Frag. xix.
K. 126, n.
See Frag.
Embraced the
Sc.
xiii.
1,
where the
texts are reproduced.
below, concerning the pyramid.
Fire.
the Water-Earth, one element, not yet separated, according
to G. H.,
i.
5.
For other probable quotations from
Expository Sermon to Tat," see Fragg.
xxiii., xxiv. (?).
5
Sc.
the philosophers.
xi.,
xii.,
this "First
xiii.,
xv., xx.,
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
264
greatest mentions this [that
For he describes God
is,
FKAGMENT
will
you who
laid
His creations
XXIII.
encompass you with
are disobedient to me,
on you as a
Word
the firmament] again.
as saying to
(Logos)
Command
is
Necessity,
this
which hath been
through
him ye have
for
This quotation also
as
My
own
Law.
probably taken from the same
that
from the " First
Expository Sermon to Tat." The idea and setting,
however, should also be compared with the parallel
in the K.
Excerpt (Stob., Phys., xli. 44; Gaisf.,
"
Souls, Love and Necessity shall be your
p. 408)
source as the previous passage
is,
they who are lords and marshals after
lords,
all,"
where the
" after
confirm the " up to
more
me "
me "
(/mer
ijme)
me
of
might perhaps
in the preceding note as the
correct rendering.
viii. Arid.,
ii.
64
Migne,
598
col.
d.
From the "To Asclepius"
For Hermes, who
is
called Thrice-greatest, writes
thus to Asclepius about the nature of the universe
(Here follows with a few
text of C. H., xiv. (xv.)
6,
slight verbal variants the
7,
beginning: "If, then,
all
things have been admitted to be two.")
eV >, lit. " against me," or it may perhaps be " up to
Migne's Latin translator gives " qui in mea potestatis estis"
and Chambers (p. 153), "those from me" neither of which can
1
toTs
me."
be correct.
CYRIL OF ALEXANDRIA
And some
265
he proceeds in warmer language,
lines after
setting forth a striking argument,
and says
(Then follows 8, 9 of the same sermon, except
the third sentence, and 10 omitting the last sentence.) 1
The same
must have
treatise
before
lain
Cyril
as
that contained in our Corpus in the form of a letter
with the heading, "Unto Asclepius good health
soul "
for the
Archbishop says that Hermes
thus to Asclepius."
ix.
Ibid., iv.
"
of
writes
130; Migne,
col.
702.
The Sole Protection
(After quoting Porphyry as warning against partici-
pation in blood-rites for fear of contamination from evil
daimons, Cyril proceeds
And
:)
their Thrice-greatest
Hermes seems
also to be
same opinion for he, too, writes as follows, in
the [sermon] " To Asclepius," concerning those unholy
daimons against whom we ought to protect ourselves,
and flee from them with all the speed we can
of the
"The
piety.
sole protection
For neither
and
evil
this
we must have
is
daimon, yea nor Fate, can ever
overcome or dominate a man who pious is, and pure,
and holy. For God doth save the truly pious man
from every
1
ill."
Cyril also twice omits the words "ignorance and jealousy"
"arrogance and impotence" in
" and yet the other things " in 9.
after
2
Of.
Frag,
iv.,
8,
and
also the
words
Comment.
1.
A comparison of this with Frag, iv.,
quoted by Lactantius (ii. 15), and the Commentary thereon, shows
clearly that Cyril has strengthened the original text by interpola3
Gf.
P. S. A., xxix.
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
266
Ibid., viii.
x.
274
Migne,
col.
920
D.
The Supreme Artist
Moreover, their Thrice-greatest Hermes has said some-
where about God, the Supreme Artist x
FEAGMENT XXIV.
as perfectly wise He
Moreover,
Order and
of all things
its
intellectual, as
opposite
2
;
in order
established
that things
being older and better,
might
have the government of things and the chief
place,
and that things
might be subject to
sensible, as being second,
these.
Accordingly that which tends downward, and
is
heavier than the intellectual, has in itself the
wise Creative
xi.
Ibid.
Word
(Logos)*
(?).
An
Unreferenced Quotation
(Chambers (p. 154) gives the following, " GyrilL Contra
Julian., citing Hermes" but without any reference, and
I can find it nowhere in the text :)
FEAGMENT XXV.
If
thou understandest that One and Sole God,
thou wilt find nothing impossible
for It is all
virtue.
tions.
Cyril's
Emperor
176) from Julian, in which the
Hermes, is given under " Julian."
an epithet applied by Pindar (Fr. 29) to Zeus.
quotation (v.
refers to
api<TTOT*xvov>
araiav.
This seems somewhat of a piece with the contents of the
Sermon to Tat." See Fragg. xi., xii., xiii., xv
" First Expository
xx., xxii., xxiii.
CYRIL OF ALEXANDRIA
Think not that
not that
It is
tion of
it is
It
may
267
be in some one
say
out of some one.
without termination
it is
the termina-
all.
Nothing contains It;
for
It
contains
all
in
Itself.
What
difference
body and the
Uncreated
and what
is
and things
there
then between the
Incorporeal, the created
that which
Free
is
and the
subject to necessity,
between the things
terrestrial
Celestial, the things corruptible
things Eternal
Is it
is
and
not that the One exists freely and that
the others are subject to necessity
X.
SUIDAS
Lexicon,
s.v.
'J&p/jltjs
'
6 rpio-fxiyio-Tos
Im. Bekker (Berlin
1854).
Hermes Speaks of the Trinity
Hermes
sage,
and flourished
He
was an Egyptian
He was called
before Pharaoh.
the Thrice-greatest.
Thrice-greatest because he spoke of the Trinity, declaring that in the Trinity there
follows
is
One Godhead,
as
"Before Intellectual Light was Light Intellectual;
Mind
of
mind,
too,
was there
eternally, Light-giving.
There was naught else except the Oneness
and Spirit all-embracing.
of this
[Mind]
Without this is nor god, nor angel, nor any other
For He is Lord and Father, and the God of
being.
all; and all things are beneath Him, [all things are] in
Him. 2
"
(The source
1
of Suidas, or of his editor, is
manifestly
Date uncertain; some indications point to as late as the
;
if these, however, are due to later redaction,
twelfth century
others point to the tenth century.
2
He
is
above them as Lord and Father, as Mind and Light
Him as Lady and Mother, as Spirit and Life.
and they are in
263
269
sun) as
Cyril, 0. J.,
i.
which a very
The same statement
quoted by Cedrenus, John Malalas,
35 (Fragg. xvi./
garbled edition
is
xvii.), of
reproduced.
and passage is also
and the author of the Chronieum Alexandrinum.
See
Bernhardy's edition of Suidas (Halle, 1853), i. 527,
Suidas then continues without a break :)
notes.)
His Word {Logos), all - perfect as he was, and
fecund, and creative, falling in fecund Nature, yea in
fecund Water, made Water pregnant." x
After saying this he has the following prayer
"
An
"
Orphic
Thee, Heaven, I adjure, wise work of mighty
thee I adjure,
first,
when He
Word
Word 2
the Father which
of
established all the world
He
God
spake
[0 Heaven], by the alone-begotten
{Logos) himself, and by the Father of the Word
"Thee
I adjure,
alone-begotten, yea, by the
all,
Hymn
be gracious, be gracious
This
Father
who surroundeth
"
!
not a prayer from Hermes, but three verses
is
somewhat
(the last
cerpted from Cyril,
altered) of
ibid.,
also attributed to "
i.
an Orphic
33 (Migne,
col.
hymn
552
c),
exlines
Orpheus " by Justin Martyr. The
seems to be a pure invention
last half of the prayer
of Suidas,
or of his editor, based partially on Cyril's
comments.
1
This
ibid.,
2
i.
is
33
(p<avi)v.
again,
and
Frag.
xii.
this time almost verbally, taken
from Cyril
XI.
ANONYMOUS
And
here
we may conveniently append
the Dialogue of an
to
reference
a blend Platonism, Astrology, and Chrisentitled Hermippus de Astrologia Dialogus,
astrology
tianity
ancient Christian writer on
of
from the name
of the chief speaker.
This writer was undoubtedly acquainted with our
Corpus, for he quotes
(xi.)
xvi.;
(p. 9, 3)
from
G. H.,
i.
(p. 21,
from 0. H. x.
6; in a general fashion (p. 24, 25) from G. IT.,
and phrases (p. 12, 21 and p. 14, 13) from G. H.
from
5)
0.
H.
x.
(xi.)
12
(p.
70, 17)
xviii.
1
Kroll (G.) and Viereck
Dialogus (Leipzig, 1895).
(P.),
Of.
Anonymi
R. p. 210.
270
Christiani de Astrologia
Ill
References and
Fragments
the Philosophers
in
I.
ZOSIMUS
On the Anthropos-Doctrine
(Zosimus flourished
third
and beginning
was a member
somewhere
at
the
what Eeitzenstein
of
end
of
of the fourth century a.d.
(p.
the
He
9) calls the
Poimandres-Gemeinde, and, in writing to
certain
Theosebeia, a fellow-believer in the Wisdom-tradition,
though not as yet initiated into its spiritual mysteries,
he urges her to hasten to Poimandres and baptize
herself in the Cup. 1
The following quotation
importance for the understanding
Doctrine or
Myth
of
Man
of
is of first
the Anthropos-
in the Mysteries.
Books of his great work distinguished
by the letter Omega, and dedicated to Oceanus as the
" Genesis and Seed of all the Gods,"
speaking of the
uninitiated, those still beneath the sway of the
In one
of the
Heimarmene
revelations,
or
he
Fate,
writes 2
who cannot understand
his
:)
The Processions of Fate.
Such men [our] Hermes,in his " Concerning Nature,"
hath called mind-less, naught but "processions" 3 of
1.
Op. sub.
Berthelot, Les AlcMmistes grecs, pp. 229
tit.,
p. 245.
ff.
For a revised
text, see E. pp. 102-106.
processions, shows, or pageants.
Gf, C. H., iv. (v.)
" Just as processions pass by in the middle of the way without
3 -KOfx-rtds,
VOL.
III.
273
18
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
274
Fate,
in that they have no notion
of
aught
who
incorporal, or even of Fate herself
of things
justly leads
them, but they blaspheme her corporal schoolings, and
have no notion of aught
else
but of her favours.
"The Inner Door"
But Hermes and Zoroaster have
said the Eace of
by their neither
for they have mastered
rejoicing in her favours,
not by their being struck down by her
pleasures,
for ever living at the "Inner Door," 2 and not
ills,
receiving 8 from her her fair gift, in that they look
2.
Wisdom-lovers
is
superior to
unto the termination of [her]
Fate,
ills.
3. On which account, too, Hesiod doth introduce
Prometheus counselling Epimetheus, and doth tell
him 5 not to take the Gift 6 from Zeus who rules
[thus] teaching
Olympus, but send it back again,
own
his
brother through philosophy 7 to return the
Gifts of Zeus,
4.
But
that
Zoroaster,
of Fate.
is,
boasting
in
knowledge
of
all
things Above, and in the magic of embodied speech,8
being able to do anything but take the road from others, so do
such men move in procession through the world led by their
bodies' pleasures."
1
Or "in that they display naught"
Codd.
ivav\ia.
R. reads
kv
<pavr a(o/j.vovs.
which
ivavhiy,
supported by
is
the Trismegistic treatise mentioned in the next
paragraph but one. I feel almost tempted to propose to read
the
title
of
iv avhia, (fr. &v\os
v\i)
" immaterial," the
or "matter"), and so to translate
being in a state free from
it "for ever living in the
immaterial."
3
Codd. Karadexfywoi.
R. reads Karatiexeo-dai.
I suggest Kara-
Sexofizvovs.
which
Codd.
KaKcbv,
Op.
Dies, 86.
Or wisdom-loving.
Presumably what the Vaidic theurgist would
et
I prefer to R.'s kukov.
6
Sc.
PandSra
cf.
14 and 19 below.
call
mantmvidyd.
275
zosimus
professes that all
general [ones],
of Fate,
ills
are
both
special
[ills]
and
[thus] averted.
Against Magic
Hermes, however, in his
5.
"
About the Inner Door,"
doth deprecate [this] magic even, declaring that:
The
man, [the man] who knows himself,1
spiritual
should not accomplish any thing by means of magic,
e'en though he think it a good thing, nor should he
force Necessity, but suffer [her to take her course],
and
according to her nature
decree
[he
should]
progress by seeking only, through the knowledge of
himself and God, to gain the Trinity 3 that none can
name, and
clay
that
let
is,
Fate do whate'er she will to her own
the body.
FEAGMENT XXVI.
6.
And
being so minded (he says), and so
ordering his
becoming
life,
all
he shall behold the Son of God
may
things for holy souls, that he
draw her 4 forth from out the region
of the Fate
into the Incorporeal [Man].
7.
For having power in
things, whatsoever
to the Father[
doth
He
into
the
Gf. G.
rpidda.
Of.
Sc.
will,
He becometh
all
and, in obedience
s nod], through the whole
Body
penetrate, and, pouring forth His Light
H.,
mind
i.
of every [soul],
21.
15 below.
Zosimus
original.
6
He
all,
the soul or mind.
is
He
starts
it
Or
decision or judgment.
8c,
the soul.
apparently condensing from the
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
276
back unto the Blessed Region, 1 where
before
had become
it
corporal,
was
it
following
after
Him, yearning and led by Him unto the Light.
Thoth the First
8.
Man
And [there] shall it see the Picture 2 that both
Bitos
hath described, and thrice-great Plato, and ten-thousandtimes-great Hermes, for Thoythos translated
the
sacred 4 tongue,
first
Interpreter of
maker 5
1
for all
Gf. S.,
all
Thoth
it
into
things which exist, and the
Name-
embodied things. 6
9 in the Naassene Document.
or tablet.
ir'ivaKa
Priestly or hieratic.
Lit. translates.
With this compare Syncellus' (Ghron., xl.)
from Manetho's
quotation,
the First Man, the
Sothis,
which
declares that the first
monuments recording the wisdom-mystery of most ancient Egypt
" were engraved in the sacred language by Thoth, the first Hermes
Flood they were translated from the sacred language
into the common tongue." Gf. vol. i., ch. v., on " Hermes according
to Manetho."
after the
dvofiaroiroios,
referring specially to the making of names
words corresponding
Adam
to natural cries
and sounds.
or
Compare the
of Genesis.
18 B " Some god, or rather some godman, who in Egypt their tradition says was Theuth, observing
that sound was infinite, first distinguished in this infinity a certain
number of pure sounds [or vowels], and then other letters [or
sound elements] which have sound, but are not pure sounds [the
semi-vowels] these two exist [each] in a definite number ; and
lastly he distinguished a third class of letters, which we now call
mutes and divided these, and likewise the two other classes of
vowels and semi- vowels, into their individual elements, and told
the number of them, and gave to each and all of them the names
6
Gf. Plato, Philebus,
like
(Gf Jowett's Trans., 3rd ed., iv. 583, 584.)
According to the number-system of the Gnostic Marcus, there
are seven vowels, eight semi- vowels, and nine mutes (F. F. F.,
of letters."
p.
368).
It is also of interest to notice that these elements of
sound are applied to what Marcus calls the " Configuration of the
Element" ? Sound (rb crxrjt*a fov o-rotxetov) they constitute the
zosimus
277
The Libraries of the Ptolemies
9. The Chaldaeans and Parthians and Medes and
Hebrews call Him 1 Adam, which is by interpretation
virgin Earth, and blood-red
and
Earth, and fiery
Earth,
fleshly Earth.
10.
And
collections
these indications were found in the book4
of the Ptolemies,
which they stored away
in every temple, and especially in the Serapeum,
when
they invited Asenas, the chief priest of Jerusalem, to
send a
"
Hebrew
into
Hermes,"
who
translated the whole of the
Greek and Egyptian. 6
11. So the First Man is called by us Thoyth and
by them Adam, not giving His [true] name in the
Language of the Angels, but naming Him symbolically
according to His Body by the four elements [or letters]
out of His whole Sphere, 7 whereas his Inner Man, the
Glyph
(or Character, or Impression, or Expression) of the
Figure
Diagram) of the Man of Truth. In the phrase " Glyph of the
Figure " (6 xapa/cr^p rov -ypa^aros), the word ypdfifia means either
(or
a letter of the alphabet, or
(i)
(ii)
a note of music, or
(iii)
mathematical figure or diagram (ibid., p. 367). Is there then any
connection between the Pinax of Bitos and the Diagram of the
Ophites referred to by Celsus ?
2
1
Or of the nature of blood.
Sc. the First Man.
3
Codd. irvpa ? irvpta.
Or
Much
libraries.
That is, a learned priest or scribe.
was done at that period. Com-
translation of this kind
pare the Arabic translation of a " Book of Ostanes " (Berthelot,
Age, iii. 121), in which an old inscription
on an Egyptian stele is quoted " Have you not heard the story that
La Chimie au Moyen
Egyptian priest] wrote to the Magi in
I have found a copy of a book of the ancient
Persia, saying
sages but as the book is written in Persian, I cannot read it.
Send me then one of your wise men who can read for me the
book I have found >V R. 363.
7 Presumably referring to the whole Body of the
Heavenly
Man, to whose Limbs all the letters were assigned by Marcus.
a certain philosopher
:
[i.e.
'
278
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
spiritual,
for
name and one
has [also] both an authentic
common
use. 1
NTlKOTHEOS
12.
His authentic [name], however,
owing
to the so long [lapse of time
who-is-not-to-be-found alone doth
1
this
TrpovTjyopiKSv,
signifies
know
generally
know
not,
Nikotheos 3
for
these things.
the
pramomen
as
opposed to the nomen proper.
2
5ta rb Teas,
lit. "because of the so long" ; otherwise I cannot
translate the phrase.
This would, then, presumably refer to
the length of time since the physical tradition of the ancient
Thoyth
initiates had disappeared
or the length of time the soul
Zosimus had been revolving in Genesis.
3 Lit.
God- victor, symbolizing the victory of the Inner God,
or of a man who had raised himself to the status of a god. For
Nikotheos, see the Gnostic " Untitled Apocalypse " of the Codex
Brucianus (C. Schmidt, Gnos. Schrift. in hop. Sprach. aus d. G. B.,
" Nikotheos hath spoken of Him [namely, the
p. 285), p. 12a
Alone-begotten, see ibid., p. 601], and seen Him for he is one
[sc. of those who have seen Him face to face].
He [N.] said
The Father exists exalted above all the perfect.' He [N.] hath
revealed the Invisible and the perfect Triple-power."
In the Life of Plotinus, by Porphyry (c. xiv.), among the list of
" Gnostics " against whose views on Matter the great coryphaeus
of Later Platonism wrote one of the books of his Enneads (II. ix.),
there is mention of Nikotheos in close connection with Zoroaster
and others (S. 603 ft .). If we now turn to Schmidt's Plotins
;
of
'
zum
und hirchlichen Christentum (Leipzig,
which he has examined at length the matter of the
treatise of Plotinus and the passage of Porphyry, we find him
returning to the consideration of Nikotheos (pp. 58 ff.). Schmidt
(p. 61) takes the " hidden Nikotheos" for a "heavenly being,"
indeed as identical with the Alone-begotten, and as, therefore,
Stellung
Gnosticismus
1900), in
This Alone-begotten is the " LightDarkness" of p. 13a of the "Untitled Apocalypse" of G. B. In
other words, Nikotheos seems to be a synonym of the Triumphant
See R. Liechtenhan, Die Offenbarung in Gnosticismus
Christos.
(Gottingen, 1901), p. 31. So far for the inner meaning but is
there possibly an outer one? As there was an apocalypse, for
the words of Nikotheos are quoted, there was a seer, a prophet, a
the revealer of Himself.
zosimus
But that
which
for
follows
it
common
that men
use
279
is
Man
(Phos), 1
from
are called photas.
From the Book of the Chaldeans
13. 2 "
When Light-Man
(Phos) was in Paradise, ex-
spiring 3 under the [presence of] Fate, they
Him
to clothe himself in the
[Adam]
of Fate,
him
Adam
their
persuaded
they had made, the
ills
as though
and free from
of the four elements,
[they said] being free from [her 5 ]
activities.
"And He,
on account
of this
'freedom from
who had seen and handed on.
ills/
did
somewhat remarkable
by Rabbinical
theological controversy was Balaam (Bileam), meaning " Destroyer
of the people."
Is there, then, any connection between Nikotheos on the one hand and Mko-laos (the Greek equivalent of
Balaam) on the other? There are, at any rate, many other
parallels in the Talmud Jeschu-Stories of names of dishonour on
the Rabbinical side equating with names of exalted honour on
the Gnostic and Christian side. If so dare we ask the question'?
have we in the logos of Nikotheos a fragment from an
Christos,
It
is
that one of the by-names given to Jesus (Jeschu)
" Apocalypse of Jesus "
Nay, may not Balaam-Niko-laos, to take a lesson from the
mystic word-play of the time, " allegorically " have symbolized
on the one hand the " victory of the many " (\a6s), and on the
other the " Victor of the many," for " people " in Philo signifies
the "many" as opposed to the "one'' "race" (y*vos), which
sums up all His " limbs " in the Christ ?
1
$hs,
according to the accenting of R., but <pS>s would mean
" Light."
2
This
is
evidently a quotation.
Reading BiaweSfievos with the Codd., and not Siairveoixwy
with R. This means " exhaling his light." In the Egypto-Gnostic
tradition underlying the Pistis Sophia, it is the function of the
Rulers of the Fate to "squeeze out" the light from the souls and
to devour it, or absorb it into themselves.
4
The Rulers
Sc.
the
avsvepyqrov.
of the Fate.
Seven Rulers or Energies
of
Sc. Fate's.
the Fate-sphere,
280
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
not refuse
but they boasted as though
brought into servitude [to them]." *
;
He had
been
For Hesiod said that the outer man was the
"
bond 2 by which Zeus bound Prometheus.
14.
"
Subsequently, in addition to this bond, he sends him
whom
another, Pandora,3
the Hebrews call Eve.
For Prometheus and Epimetheus
according to the system of allegory,
are
that
one
is,
Man,
Soul and
Body.
Man
And
at one time
He 5
the Mind
bears the likeness of soul, at
another of mind, at another of
flesh,
owing to the im-
perfect attention which Epimetheus paid to the counsel
of
Prometheus, his own mind. 6
15.
For our Mind 7 saith
FKAGMENT
XXVII.
For that the Son of God having power
becoming
things,
all
that
things
appeareth as he willeth to each.
1
This
of the
is
willeth,
evidently a quotation from a Greek translation of one
Books
seems to
he
in all
me
of the Chaldseans ( 9, 10) in the Serapeum.
to be a " source " on which both the Hebrew
It
and
non-Hebrew Hellenists commentated in Alexandria. Thus both
the commentator in S. and J. in the Naassene Document and the
Poemandrists of the period would use it in common.
3
Gf. 3 and 19.
Fore-thought and After-thought. 5 Sc. Man.
almost persuaded that 14 is also a quotation or
and not the simple exegesis of Zosimus; the original
Theog., 614.
That
am
summary
is,
being from the pen of some non-Hebrew Hellenistic allegorizer.
7 That is, Pcsmandres, the Shepherd of men.
8
evidently a quotation from the " Inner Door."
Gf. 7 above
Compare also the logos quoted by S. ( 8) in the Naassene Document from some Hellenistic scripture " I become what I will,
;
and am what
I am."
Do Hermes and
S.
then both depend on
281
zosimus
unto the consummation of the cosmos will
16. Yea,
He come
own,
secretly,
counselling
nay,
them
openly associating with His
secretly,
through
yea
their
minds, to settle their account with their Adam, the
blind accuser, 1 in rivalry with the spiritual
man
of
light. 2
The Counterfeit Daimon
And
17.
things come
Daimon 3 come, in
and wishing to lead them
these
to
pass
until
the
them-
with
Counterfeit
rivalry
selves,
into error, declaring
that he is Son of God, being formless in both soul
and body.
But they, becoming wiser from contemplation of
the same scripture, in the form of an apocalypse ; that is, does
Hermes in his " expository sermon" depend on the direct teaching
Mind
of the
to himself,
which would be instruction in the
first
person ?
Tvtf)\7iyopovvros.
The lexicons do not contain the word. It
probably a play on Karrjyopovpros. Gf. note on "blind from
birth" of C. in the Conclusion of Hippolytus in " Myth of Man"
1
is
(vol.
2
i.
p. 189).
presumably, though in one aspect only, the soul that
This passage
reflects the same thought-atmosphere as that which surrounds
the saying underlying Matt. v. 25 ( = Lk. xii. 57-59): "Agree
That
is,
sees in the Light as opposed to the blind body.
with thine adversary quickly whiles thou art in the way with
him, lest at any time the adversary deliver thee to the judge, and
the judge to the officer, and thou be cast into prison. Amen, I
say unto thee, thou shalt not come forth thence till thou hast
paid the uttermost farthing." The third Evangelist, instead of the
vague " agree," preserves the technical terms aTrriw&xOai, used of
the discharge of a debt
text),
and
and
(cf.
the technical KaraKKayr]v *x*
v of
our
an officer charged with the collection of taxes
This Saying was interpreted by the Gnostics as
irpdKrwp,
debts.
having reference to the reincarnation of the soul into another
body in order to discharge its karmic debts.
3 6
The term "counterfeit spirit" {avrlixifxov
avrifiiixos Saifxw.
nvevpa) occurs frequently in the Pistis Sophia.
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
282
Him who is truly Son of God, give unto him l his own
Adam for death, 2 rescuing their own light spirits for
own
[return to] their
regions where they were even
before the cosmos [existed]. 8
And
18.
Books
Hermes [which
of
man
the Hebrews alone and the Sacred
is]
[it
us] these things about
tell
Guide the Son of God, and
about the earthy Adam and his Guide, the Counterfeit,
who doth blasphemously call himself Son of God, for
the
leading
19.
who
of light
men
and
his
astray.4
But the Greeks call the earthy Adam Epimetheus,
counselled by his own mind, that is, his
is
brother, not to receive the gifts of Zeus.
being both deceived
Blessed Land.
7
.
But Prometheus, that
is
the mind, interprets
things and gives good counsel in
who have understanding and
have only
Nevertheless
and repenting,6 and seeking the
all
things to
hearing.
all
them
But they who
fleshly hearing are "processions of Fate."
2
Or execution.
The Counterfeit Daimon.
The two last paragraphs are apparently also quoted or
summarized from a Hellenistic commentary on a Book of the
1
Hebrews, translated into Greek, and found in the libraries of
It is remarkable that the contents of this book
are precisely similar not only to the contents of the Books from
which J. quotes in the Naassene Document, but also to the
ideas about the Chaldseans which the commentator of S. sets
the Ptolemies.
forth.
4
If
we can
rely
on this statement
of
Zosimus, this proves
that there was a developed Anthropos-doctrine also in the Tris-
Books, that is,
from the Chaldsean Books,
megistic Books, as apart from the Chaldeean
that the Pcemandrists did not take
it
but had it from their own immediate line of tradition, namely,
the Egyptian.
6
5
Lit. changing his mind.
Cf. 13 above.
7
We could almost persuade
lacuna occurs in the text.
ourselves that Zosimus had the text of S. and even the source
For " Blessed Land," cf. 7 above.
of J. before him.
zosimus
283
His Advice to Theosebeia
To the foregoing we may append a version
1
Zosimus' advice
of
which we
to the lady Theosebeia, to
have already referred, as offering an instructive counterpart to 0. H.y
xiii.
" false prophets/'
(xiv.).
through
After a sally against the
whom
the daimones energize,
not only requiring their offerings but also ruining their
souls, Zosimus continues
"
But be not thou,
lady, [thus] distracted, as, too,
bade thee in the actualizing
turn thyself about this
God
way and
[rites],
and do not
that in seeking after
and God shall come to
thee, He who is everywhere and not in some wee spot
as are daimonian things.
"
but in thy house be
And
having
in passions too
"
And
stilled thyself in body, still
and the twelve
still,
thou thyself
desire, [and] pleasure, rage [and] grief,
fates
of
Death.
thus set straight and upright, call thou unto
thyself Divinity
and truly
shall
He
come,
He who
is
everywhere and [yet] nowhere.
"And
without invoking them, perform the
not such as offer things
[then],
sacred rites unto the daimones,
them and soothe and nourish them, but such as
turn them from thee and destroy their power, which
Mambres 3 taught to Solomon, King of Jerusalem,
and all that Solomon himself wrote down from his
to
own wisdom.
"And
if
thou shalt effectively perform these
Berth., p. 244
The twelve tormenting
for a revised text see R. 214, n.
rites,
1.
or avenging daimones of C. H.,
xiii.
(xiv.).
3
to
The famous Egyptian Theurgist and Magician who is fabled
while others say he was the
have contended with Moses
instructor of Moses.
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
284
thou shalt obtain the physical conditions
of
pure
birth.
And so continue till thou perfect thy soul completely.
" And when thou knowest surely that thou art perfrom thee x the natural
things of matter, and make for harbour in Poemandres' 2
arms, and having dowsed thyself within His Cup,3 return
fected in thyself, then spurn
again unto thy
This was
own
The
[true] race."
how Zosimus understood
the Trismegistic tradition, for
winged
soul having
now found
the teaching of
he had experienced
itself
it.
wings and become the
globe.
eVi rhv Uoifidvavdpa (sic).
Of. 0.
iZ"., i.
26, 29.
Cf. G, T., iv. (v.) 4.
II.
JAMBLICHUS
Abammon the Teacher
The evidence
of
Jamblichus
is
of
prime importance
was he who put the Later Platonic
School, previously led by the purely philosophical
Ammonius, Plotinus and Porphyry, into conscious
touch with those centres of Gnosis into which he had
seeing that
it
and instructed it especially in the
Wisdom of Egypt in his remarkable treatise generally
known by the title On the Mysteries, The authorship
been
initiated,
this treatise is
of
who was
in
the
but as Proclus,
usually disputed;
direct
tradition,
Jamblichus, the probabilities
are
attributes
in
favour
it
of
to
its
authenticity.
Jamblichus writes with the authority
of
an accredited
Wisdom as taught in these
and under the name of "Abammon, the
exponent of the Egyptian
mysteries,
Teacher/' proceeds to resolve the doubts and difficulties
the School with regard to the principles of the
of
The exact date of Jamblichus is very conjectural. In my
sketches of the " Lives of the Later Platonists " I have suggested
1
about a.d. 255-330.
See The Theosophical Review (Aug. 1896),
xviii. 462, 463.
285
286
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
sacred science as formulated by Porphyry.
Jambliehus
begins his task with these significant words 1
Hermes the Inspired
"Hermes, the God who is our guide in [sacred]
sermons, was rightly held of old as common to all
priests.
And
seeing that
it is
he who has in charge
the real science about the Gods, he
And
[our sacred sermons]. 2
is
was
so it
the same in
to
all
him that our
ancestors attributed all the discoveries of their wisdom,
attaching the
had
to
name
of
Hermes
that share of this
which
to all the writings
do with such subjects. 3
And
God which has
if
we
fallen
also enjoy
to
our
lot,
according to our ability [to receive him], thou dost
well in submitting certain questions on theology to us
priests, as
thy friends, for their solution.
may
suppose that the letter sent to
fairly
Anebo was written
And
my
as I
disciple
to myself, I will send thee the true
answers to the questions thou
hast asked. For it
would not be proper that Pythagoras and Plato, and
Democritus and Eudoxus, and many others of the
ancient Greeks,4 should have obtained fitting instruc1
I translate
The term
from the text
\6yos
is,
of
Parthey (Berlin, 185*7).
used technically, as a sacred or
of course,
inspired sermon or course of instruction.
3
fvyy pd/xfxar a.
" The
Parthey here adds the following interesting note
Egyptian teachers of Pythagoras were GEnuphis of On (Plut., Be
Is. et Os., 10) and Sonchis (Clem. Al., Strom., i. 15, 69) ; Plato
was the pupil of Sechnuphis of On (Clem. I.e.), and of Chonuphis
Democritus was taught by Pammenes
(Plut., Be Gen. Boer., 578)
Eudoxus by Chonuphis
of Memphis (Georg. Sync, i. 471 Dind.)
To this Parthey appends a
of Memphis (Plut. and Clem. II. cc.)."
list of some of the many other famous Greeks who owed their
knowledge to Egyptian teachers, viz., Alcaeus, Anaxagoras of
Clazomense, Appuleius, Archimedes, Bias, Chrysippus of Cnidus,
Cleohulus, Daedalus, Decseneus, Diodorus Siculus, Ellopion, Euripides, Hecatseus of Abdera, Hecatseus of Miletus, Hellanicus,
irdvTa ra ot/ceTa
287
JAMBLICHUS
tion from the recorders of the sacred science of their
times,
and that thou, our contemporary, who art
mind with
like
ancients, should
these
from the now living bearers
Teachers.'"
of
of a
lack guidance
'Common
the title
From the above important passage we
among the Egyptians the books which dealt
learn that
technically
with the science of sacred things, and especially with
the science of the Gods, that is to say, with the nature
the hierarchy from
of
Euler
Eay
our system, were regarded
of
the Spiritual
of
science
man upwards
to the
Supreme
The
as " inspired."
Sun which illumined the sacred
was distinguished
as a Person,
and
this Person,
because of a partial similarity of attributes, the Greeks
had long
"
identified
common "
with their God Hermes.
He was
to the priests of the sacred science, that is
to say, it was this special Eay of the Spiritual Sun
which illumined their studies. Not, however, that all
were equally illumined, for there were many grades in
the mysteries, many steps up the holy ascent to union
Herodotus, Homerus, Lycurgus, Melampus, Musseus, (Enopides
Chios, Orpheus, Pausanias, Pherecydes, Polybius, Simmias,
of
Solon, Sphserus, Strabo, Telecles, Thales, Theodoras,
Xenophanes
have quoted this note on purpose to
show the overpowering weight of evidence which some modern
theorists have to face, in order to maintain their thesis that the
philosophy of Greece was solely a native product. The universal
testimony of the Greeks themselves is that all their greatest
of Colophon, Zamolxis.
philosophers,
geometricians,
mathematicians,
historians,
geo-
graphers, and especially their theosophists, were pupils of the
Egyptian Wisdom the modern theory of the unaided evolution
of philosophy on the soil of Greece, which is so universally
accepted, is, to my mind, entirely erroneous.
The "form" or
" manner" of "philosophizing" was of course solely due to Greek
genius, but the "matter" of it was of hoary antiquity.
Of.
;
Plutarch,
1
That
of race.
Be
Is. et Os., x.
is to say,
Op. dt.,
i.
presumably, teachers of
1.
all
without distinction
288
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
Now the Kays of the Spiritual Sun are
One Light," polarised " variously by the " spheres"
of which we have heard so much in the Trismegistic
treatises.
These Eays come forth from the Logos, and
with Deity.
really
each illuminates a certain division of the whole hierarchy of beings from the Logos to man, and characterises
further the lower kingdoms, animals and plants, and
Hence, for instance, among animals, we get
minerals.
the
to
ibis,
the ape and the dog as being especially sacred
Thoth or Hermes.
Those of the Hermaic Nature
Among men
generally, also, there are certain
characteristics are of a "
Hermaic
"
nature
whose
the more
evolved of these are adapted to certain lines of study
and research, while again among those few
who
of
of sacred things, that is to say,
among
the initiated
students or priests, the direct influence of this
or Person begins to be consciously
Jamblichus says, according
still
these
are beginning to be really conscious of the science
many
Now
felt,
Eay
by each, as
to his ability, for there are
grades.
the peculiar unanimity that prevailed in these
strictly hierarchical schools of initiation,
and the grand
doctrine of identification that ran throughout the whole
economy
whereby
the pupil became identified with
when he
received his next grade of initiation,
the master
and whereby his master was to him the living symbol
of all that was above that master, that is to say, was
Hermes for him, in that he was the messenger to him
of the Word, and was the channel whereby the divine
inspiration
came
to
him
rendered
the ascription to
1
It is from this region of ideas that the terms "mercurial
temperament," and so forth, have reached modern times over the
bridge of astrological tradition.
289
JAMBLICHUS
Hermes
of all the sacred scriptures,
such as the sermons
very natural proceeding.
of initiation, a
It
was not
the case of a modern novel-writer taking out a copyright for his
own
precious productions, but simply of
the recorder, scribe or copyist of the sacred science
handing on the
tradition.
As
long as this was confined
to the disciplined schools of the sacred science it
was
without danger, but when. irresponsible people began
copy a method, to whose discipline they refused to
to
submit, for purposes of edification, and so appended the
names
of great teachers to their
paved the way for that chaos
own
lucubrations, they
of confusion in
which we
are at present stumbling.
The Books of Hermes
Towards the end
of his treatise Jamblichus, in treating
innumerable hierarchies of being
and their sub-hierarchies, says that these are so multiplex that they had to be treated by the ancient priests
from various aspects, and even among those who were
of the question of the
"wise in great things" in his own time the teaching
was not one and the same.
"
The main states of being were completely set forth
by Hermes (in the twenty thousand books, as Seleucus x
writes, or in the thirty-six thousand five hundred and
twenty-five as Manetho relates), while the sub-states
are interpreted in many other writings by the ancients,
some of them sub-dividing 2 some of the sub-states and
others others."
At
1
first
sight
Porphyry (De
it
would seem that we are not
55) mentions a Seleucus
to sup-
whom
he
Suidas says that Seleucus of Alexandria
wrote a treatise On the Gods, in 100 books or chapters.
calls
Abs.,
a "theologist"
ii.
c.
Reading 5ia\aj8(W$ instead of
Ibid. , viii 1.
VOL.
III.
diafidAAovTs.
19
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
290
pose that
it
took 20,000 volumes to set forth the main
Jamblichus would seem
outlines of the cosmic system.
to
mean
that in the library or libraries of the books
treating of the sacred science, the general
scheme
of
the cosmos was set forth, and that the details were
filled in
very variously by
many
to the small portion of the
writers, each according
whole he had studied or
number of books again we
should not be dismayed, when we reflect that a book
did not mean a large roll or volume but a division or
chapter of such a roll. Thus we read of a single man
As
speculated on.
composing no
less
to the
than 6000
"
books
"
But on further reflection this view does not seem
satisfactory.
The ghost of the very precise number
36,525, which Jamblichus substitutes from Manetho
vague total 20,000 of Seleucus, refuses
by such a weak-kneed process.
for the
laid
We
see
once that 365*25 days
at
to
a very
is
close
We
approximation to the length of the solar year.
know
that 36,525 years was
further
Sothiac cycles (1461
x 25 = 36,525)/
sum
the
be
of
25
that most sacred
time-period of the Egyptian secret astronomy, which
was assigned
Great Year.
mean
does
of the
to the revolution
Now
that
of
supposing after
Hermes
cosmos in 36,525
the zodiac or the
all
"
books" or "chapters"; and
supposing further that these
" chapters "
written on papyrus, but in the heavens
still
further that these
many
that Jamblichus
actually did write the scheme
were not
and supposing
"chapters" were simply so
great aspects of the real sun, just as the 365*25
days were but aspects of the physical sun
in such case
the above favourite passage, which every previous writer
has referred to actual books superscribed with the
1
See Georgius Syncellus, Ghron.,
Eusebius, Chron.,
vi.
i.
97,
ed.
Dindorf.
Also
JAMBLICHUS
291
name
of Hermes, and has dragged into every treatise
on the Hermetic writings, will in future have to be
removed from the list, and one of the functions of the
real
Hermes, the Initiator and Recorder, will become
apparent to those
who
are " wise in greater things."
The Monad from the One
In the next chapter, after first speaking of the God
all, Jamblichus refers to the Logos, the God of
our system, whom he calls " God of gods, the Monad
over
from the One, prior to being and the source
And then continues
of being."
"For from
Him
being; wherefore
He
is
is
cometh the essence
He
of being
called Father of being.
and
For
prior to being, the source of spiritual existences
is He called Source of spiritual things.
These latter are the most ancient sources of all things,
wherefore also
and Hermes places them before the ^ethereal and empyrean and celestial gods, bequeathing to us a hundred
books on the history of the empyrean, and a like number on that of the aethereal, but a thousand of them
concerning the celestial."
I
am
inclined to think
that there
the numbers of these books, and that
10 assigned to the
is
a mistake in
we should have
100 to the second, and
In any case we see that all are
multiples of the perfect number 10 and that thus my
theory is still supported by the further information
that Jamblichus gives us.
1000 to the
first class,
third.
The Tradition of the Trismegistic Literature
We
with
next come to a passage which deals directly
our
Trismegistic literature.
Jamblichus tells
Porphyry that with the explanations he has already
1
Op.
cit., viii. 2.
292
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
way
given him, he will be able to find his
in the
Hermetic writings which have come into his hands.
"For the books in circulation bearing the name of
Hermes contain Hermaic doctrines, although they often
use the language of the philosophers, seeing that they
were translated from the Egyptian by men well
in philosophy."
skilled
The information given by Jamblichus
they were translations, but instead of a
precise;
is
literal
render-
ing, the translators used the usual phraseology of the
Greek philosophical
writers.
Jamblichus then goes on to say that physical
as-
tronomy and physical research generally were but a
very small part of the Hermaic science, by no means
the most important.
For " the Egyptians deny that physics are everything
on the contrary they distinguish both the life of the
soul and the life of the mind from nature, 2 not only in
the case of the cosmos but also in man. They first
posit Mind and Eeason {Logos) as having a being
peculiar to themselves, and then they tell us that the
world of becoming [or generation] is created. As Forefather of all beings in generation they place the Creator,
and are acquainted with the Life-giving Power which
prior to the celestial spaces and permeates them.
Above the universe they place Pure Mind this for the
universe as a whole is one and undivided, but it is
is
variously manifested in the several spheres. 3
And
they
do not speculate about these things with the unassisted
reason, but they announce that by the divine art of
their
priestly science
they reach higher and more
Ibid., viii. 4.
That
Lit. distributed to all the spheres as different.
8i& tt}s kpartKvs Oeovpylasy
priests.
is,
the
life of
the body.
lit.
by the theurgy known
to the
293
JAMBLICHXJS
universal states [of consciousness] above the [Seven
Spheres
God the
Destiny, ascending to
of]
Creator, 1
and that too without using any material means, or any
other [material] assistance than the observation of a
suitable opportunity.
" It
was Hermes who
first
And
taught this Path. 2
Bitys, the prophet, translated [his teachings concerning
it] for
temple
King Ammon,3 discovering them
4
in the
inner
an inscription in the sacred characters at
in
[From these writings it was that Bitys]
handed on the tradition of the Name of God, as That
"
which pervadeth the whole universe.' 5
Sais in Egypt.
'
"
As
to the
Good
all
Egyptians] regard It in
Itself [the
Divine as the God that transcends
Its relation to the
thought, and in Its relation to
man
as the at-one-
ment with Him a doctrine which Bitys translated
from the Hermaic Books." 6
From these two passages we learn that the ancient
doctrine of Hermes concerning the Path, which is the
keynote
our Trismegistic
of
tracts,
was
to
be found
either in inscriptions in the sacred script in the secret
of the temples, into which no uninitiated
person was ever permitted to enter, or in " books," also
chambers
in the sacred script
that these had never been trans-
King Ammon. 7 But what are
by translated? Into Greek? Not
but more probably interpreted from the
lated until the reign of
we
to understand
necessarily,
1
The Mind in
its
creative aspect.
Way up to
Sc.
See Commentary on G.
Op.
Identified
This
cit., viii.
God.
II. (xvi.).
5.
by some writers with one
Or
secret shrine.
6 Ibid.,
x. 7.
of the last kings of the
who reigned somewhere about 570
See Thomas Taylor, Iamblichus on the Mysteries, p. 306 n.
(2nd ed., London, 1895). But as there is no objective evidence
by which this identification can be controlled, we simply record it.
Saitic dynasty (the xxvith),
B.C.
294
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
hieroglyphic symbols into the Egyptian vernacular and
written in the demotic
(SiepjULqveueiv) clearly
The
character.
bears this sense
term
whereas
if
used
trans-
from Egyptian into Greek had been intended,
the same word
(juLTaypd<f)eiv) employed which Jamblichus uses when
lation
we should presumably have had
speaking of the Hermetic books that had been read
by Porphyry.
Eeitzenstein (p. 108), however, has
apparently no doubt that the writings of Bitys were
in Greek, and that these writings lay before Jamblichus
and were the only source of his information. But I
cannot be certain that this is the meaning of the Greek.
We have rather, according to my view, probably two
strata of " translation "
from hieroglyphic into demotic,
from demotic into Greek.
As to Bitys, we know
nothing more definite than Jamblichus
he was the
first to
first to
Perhaps
translate from the sacred hieroglyphs
into the vulgar tongue and script
the
tells us.
and by that we mean
break the ancient rule and write down in
the vulgar characters those holy sermons and treatises
which previously had never before been inscribed in
any but the most sacred characters.
We are not,
however, to suppose that Bitys was the only one to do
this.
Now
in our Trismegistic literature
addressed to a King
Ammon.
we have
a deposit
Is it then possible that
whoever he was, was the initiator of a change
of policy in the immemorial practice of the priests ?
It may be so, but at present we have not sufficient
this King,
data to decide the point.
Bitys
A further scrap of information concerning Bitys, however,
may
be gleaned from Zosimus (
8),
when, speak-
ing of the Logos, the Son of God, pouring His Light
JAMBLICHUS
into the soul and starting
the Blessed Eegion where
it
295
on its Eeturn Above, to
was before it had become
it
corporeal (as described in the Trismegistic
entitled " Concerning the Inner
"
And
there shall
it
Door ")
tractate,
he writes
see the Picture (irivag) that both
Bitos hath described, and thrice-greatest Plato, and ten-
thousand-times-great Hermes,
the
into
it
Man." 1
The identity
able. 2
sacred
first
of Bitys
and Bitos
Thoythos translated
Thoth
is
the
First
thus unquestion-
is
Eeitzenstein, however, asserts
these name-forms
that neither of
Egyptian, and therefore approves
Bitys with "Pitys
the identification of our
of
for
tongue,
the
Thessalian " of the Papyri, 3 as Dieterich has suggested.
The headings
fragments
of the
in the Papyri run
"
The
Way
of the writings of Pitys
[or
Method]
Pitys the
From
King"
"
of
Of Pitys the Thessalian."
this Eeitzenstein (n. 2) concludes that already
in the second and
included
What
of Pitys "
"The Way
"Pitys to King Ostanes Greeting";
among the
third
centuries
a.d.)
(?
Pitys
is
prophetical theologi and Magians.
the precise date of these Papyri
may
be
it is
not
easy to determine, but, whether or not they belong to
the second and third centuries,
it is
evident that Pitys
was regarded as ancient and a contemporary
Magian Sage Ostanes.
of the
King, 4 referring to a passage of the Elder Pliny (Nat.
Hist, xxx.
4),
which remarks on the similarity
of the
See notes appended to the extract from Zosimus.
As has already been supposed by Hoffmann and Riess
Pauly-Wissowa's BealencyHopadie,
3
i.
1347.
in
R. 108.
Dieterich, Jahr. f. Phil., Suppl., xvi. 753
Wessely, Denk-
K. K. Ahad. (1888), pp. 92, 95, 98.
4 King
(C. W.), The Gnostics and their Remains, 2nd ed.
(London, 1887), p. 421, who, however, does not document his
schr. d.
statement.
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
296
Magian Gnosis with the Druidical Gnosis of Gaul and
Britain, says " Pliny by his Magica understands the
rites instituted by Zoroaster, and first promulgated by
Os thanes to the outer world, this Osthanes having been
'
'
military chaplain
'
to
Xerxes during his expedition to
Greece."
This date,
if
we can
rely
upon
Conquest
the Persian
to
it,
would take us back
Egypt, but what has a
of
Thessalian Pitys to do with that
Curiously enough also Pliny in his xxviiith Book
makes use
the
of
writings
of
a certain
Bithus of
Dyrrachium, a city on the coast of Illyricum in the
Ionic Gulf, known in Grecian history as Epidamnus.
All of this
clusions
may
puzzling enough; but whatever con-
is
be drawn from the evidence, the clearest
indication is that Bitys
was
ancient,
and therefore that
whatever translating or rather "interpreting" there
may have
been,
demotic, and
was probably from hieroglyphic into
the latter was subsequently further
it
" interpreted " into
Greek.
OSTANES-ASCLBPIUS
But
is
Ostanes the Magian Sage of tradition, or
we adopt
the brilliant
conclusion
of
may
Maspero, and
equate Ostanes with Asclepius, and so place him in the
same
"
circle
Asclepius "
with Bitys, or rather see in Bitys an
?
At any rate the following interesting paragraph of
Granger 1 deserves our closest attention in this
connection, when he writes:
" Maspero, following Goodwin, has shown that Ostanes
the
is
1
name
of
Granger (F.), "
a deity
who
The Poemander
belongs to the cycle of
of
The Journal of Theological Studies,
(London), p. 398.
Hermes
vol.
v.,
Trismegistus," in
no.
19,
ap.
1904
297
JAMBLICHUS
Thoth. 1
His name, Ysdnw, was derived by
Egyptians themselves from a verb meaning 'to
tinguish,'
and he was a patron
As time went
tion.
on,
the
dis-
of intellectual percep-
he gained
importance.
in
Under the Ptolemies he was often represented upon
the Temple walls (I.e.). In Pliny he appears as an
early writer upon medicine. 2 Some of the prescriptions
quoted as from him are quite in the Egyptian style. 3
Philo Byblius, on whom, to be sure, not much reliance
can be placed,4 mentions a book
teuch. 6
Ostanes
of
collection as the six medical books
last place in Clement's
from his
list of
directly.
If
list.
authorities,
we note
Oda-
which occupy the
Now
the
with some such
It is tempting to identify this
Pliny, as
appears
does not quote
Ostanes
that Democritus
is
mentioned by
Pliny in the same context, and that Ostanes
is
the
legendary teacher of Democritus upon his journey to
Egypt, we shall consider
it
at least probable that Pliny
depends upon Democritus for his mention of Ostanes.
The Philosopher, whose visit to Egypt may be regarded
as a historical fact, would in that case be dealing with
a medical collection which passes under the
Asclepius,
Ostanes.
who appears
in
name
of
the Pcemander,
Greek equivalent of Ostanes. Thus the
Hermes and Asclepius is analogous to the
the Egyptian deities, Thoth and Ysdnw."
will be the
collocation of
kinship of
From the Hermaic Writings
That these Bitys-books contained the same doctrines
is evident from the whole
as our Trismegistic writings
1
Proc. Soc. Bibl. Arch., xx. 142.
Nat.
Hist., xxviii. 6.
P. 8. B. A.,
He, however, was very well placed
ledge on such a point. [G. R. S. M.]
ibid.,
256, 261.
have accurate know-
to
Eus.,
Pmp.
Ev.,
x. 52.
Strom., VI. iv. 37.
298
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
Jamblichus throughout bases
treatise of Jamblichus.
himself upon the doctrines of Hermes, 1 and
suggests that he does not
lations only, as
owe
clearly
his information to trans-
was the case with Porphyry, but to
but whether to the demotic
records in Egyptian;
Bitys-school or to
the heiroglyphic
records themselves he does not say.
That these doc-
treatises
of
the
were identical with the teachings in our Trismeno proof to any one who has
read our treatises and the exposition of Jamblichus;
trines
gistic literature requires
for the benefit, however, of those
Jamblichus, 2
we append
who have not
a passage to
show the
read
striking
Treating of the question of free-
similarity of ideas.
and necessity raised by Porphyry, and replying to
the objection that the Egyptians taught an astrological
fatalism, Jamblichus writes
" We must explain to you how the question stands
by some further conceptions drawn from the Hermaic
will
Man has two souls, as these writings say.
The one is from the Eirst Mind, and partakes also of
the Power of the Creator, 3 while the other, the soul
writings.
under constraint, comes from the revolution of the
celestial [Spheres]
that
is
period.
into the latter the former, the soul
the Seer of God, insinuates
This then being
us from the worlds
so,
itself
at
a later
the soul that descends into
keeps time with the circuits of
these worlds, while the soul from the Mind, existing in
us in a spiritual fashion,
1
is
free
from the whirl
of
Book VIII., which is entirely devoted to an exHermaic doctrine, and ought perhaps to be here trans-
Especially in
position of
however, preferred to select the passages
by Jamblichus as Hermaic.
2
Who must be read in the original and not in the inelegant
and puzzling version of Taylor, the only English translation.
3 The Second Mind according
to " The Shepherd."
lated in full.
I have,
definitely characterized
The Seven Spheres of the Harmony.
The Seven Spheres.
299
JAMBLICHUS
Generation; by this the bonds of Destiny are burst
asunder ; by this the Path up to the spiritual Gods is
brought to birth by such a life as this is that Great
;
Art Divine, which leads us up
Spheres
Genesis,
of
brought to
to
That beyond the
its
consummation." 2
The Cosmic Spheres
With regard
to the nature of
these Spheres,
physical planets, as
may
the
be seen from the following
De Mysteriis
With regard to partial existences,
passages of his
"
not
they are
blichus shows very clearly that
Jam-
then, I
the ease of the soul in partial manifestation,3
mean in
we must
admit something of the kind we have above. For just
such a life as the [human] soul emanated before it
entered into a human body, and just such a type as it
made ready for itself, just such a body, to use as an
instrument, does
it
have attached to
it,
and
just such a
corresponding nature accompanies [this body] and re-
more perfect
ceives the
life
the soul pours into
it.
But
with regard to superior existences and those that surround the Source of All as perfect existences, the
inferior are set within the superior, bodies in bodiless
existences,
things
made
in
their
makers;
and
the
former are kept in position by the latter enclosing
them in
" The
a sphere.
revolutions of the heavenly Bodies* therefore,
being from the
first set
in the celestial revolutions of
the aethereal Soul, 5 for ever continue in this relationship;
while the Souls of the [invisible] Worlds, 6 ex-
tending
to
their
[common] Mind,
2
are
completely
irpbs
an individual soul and not as the world-soul.
6
Physical planets.
Of all of our visible system
That is to say, the seven spheres.
rb hyhvqrov.
That
is,
Op.
cit., viii. 6.
as
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
300
surrounded by
birth in
existence."
And
also contained in superior states of
is
again in another passage Jamblichus writes
We
rest]
and from the beginning have their
in like manner, both partially
it,
And Mind
it.
and as a whole,
"
say that [the Spiritual Sun and Moon, and the
are so
from being contained within their
far
Bodies, that on the contrary,
it
is
they who contain
these Bodies of theirs within the Spheres of their
vitality
and energy.
And
own
so far are they from tending
towards their Bodies, that the tendency of these very
Bodies
is
towards their Divine Cause.
Moreover, their
Bodies do not impede the perfection of their Spiritual
and Incorporeal Nature or disturb
in
it."
it
by being situated
To this we may add what Proclus
Commentary on the Timceus of Plato
writes in
his
" Each of the [Seven] Planetary Spheres is a complete
World containing a number of divine offspring, which
are invisible to us, and over all of these Spheres the
we see is the Euler. Now Fixed Stars differ
from those 4 in the Planetary Spheres in that the former
have but one Monad, namely, their system as a whole 5
while the latter, namely the invisible globes in each of
the Planetary Spheres, which globes have an orbit of
Star 3
their
own determined by
the
respective Spheres, have a double
revolution
Monad
their
of
namely, their
system as a whole,6 and that dominant characteristic
which has been evolved by selection in the several
spheres of the system. For since globes are secondary
to
Fixed Stars they require a double order
1
Op.
That
That
tit., i. 8.
is,
visible planet.
is,
perhaps, the invisible globes.
Lit. their wholeness.
In our
case the
whole solar system.
of governIbid.,
i.
17.
JAMBLICHUS
ment,
first
subordination to their system as a whole,
and then subordination
And
301
that in each of these spheres there
the same level
extremes. 4
same
For
with each, you
if
may
the Fixed Sphere
level as itself,
spheres. 1
respective
to their
a host
is
on
from the
infer
has a host on the
and Earth has a host
earthy
of
animals, 6 just as the former a host of heavenly animals, 7
necessary that every whole 8 should have a
it is
of animals on the same level with
because
of
itself
levels,
however, are outside the range
our senses, the extremes only being
through the transcendent brilliance of
other through
It
is
chains
its
to
" of
we
the one
nature, the
its
are here dealing with
Theosophical students
as
what are
the "planetary
our system, and that therefore these Spheres
are not the physical planets
visible,
kinship with ourselves." 9
evident that
known
it is
the latter fact that they are called wholes.
The intermediate
of
number
indeed
Or, as one
the visible planets are
would say in modern Theosophical terms,
to their
planetary chains.
2
Hierarchy.
That is to say, we may infer from the fixed stars
from the globes which we can see (i.e. the visible
4
manner of those we cannot see.
5 The sphere of fixed stars or
6
That
is
a-va-roixov-
(or suns)
and
planets), the
suns.
to say, all the visible globes (vulgo planets) of our
system as a whole. An "animal" means a "living thing"; so
that here " earthy animals " mean the living vehicles of the
heavenly beings which we so erroneously call " heavenly bodies."
7
That is to say, suns or solar systems.
8
9
Here whole means plane.
That is to say, the brilliant
light of the suns in space,
and the
reflected light of the physical globes of the planetary spheres of
our system. See Proclus, Commentarius in Platonis Timceum, Bk.
The
iv., p. 279 d, E, p. 676, ed. Schneider (Vratislaviae, 1847).
passage is very difficult to translate because of its technical nature.
Taylor, in his translation (London, 1820, ii. 281, 282), misses
nearly every point.
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
302
but a very small portion of the globes of these chains,
of some of which there are no globes at all visible.
The ascription therefore of the " influence " of these
Spheres to the sun, moon, and five of the visible planets
is
"
at
best
symbolism
a
."
makeshift, a
" correspondence/'
or
III.
JULIAN THE EMPEROR
Text: ap. Cyril, Contra Julianum, v. 176; Migne, col.
770 a.
See also Neumann (C. I.), Juliani Imperatoris
Librorum contra Gliristianos quae supersunt (Leipzig, 1880),
2
p. 193.
The Disciples of Wisdom
That God, however, has not cared for the Hebrews
His love for all nations He
only, [but rather] that in
on them \sc. the Hebrews] nothing
worth very serious attention, whereas He has given
us far greater and superior gifts, consider from what
hath bestowed
The Egyptians, counting up of their own
names of not a few sages, can also say they
have had many who have followed in the steps 3 of
Hermes. I mean of the Third Hermes who used to
come down 4 [to them] in Egypt. The Chaldseans [also
can tell of] the [disciples] of Oannes and of Belus;
will follow.
race the
Julian the Emperor reigned 360-363 a.d.
It
was during
the last year of his reign that he wrote Contra Christianos.
2
Also Taylor (Thomas), The Arguments of
the
Emperor Julian
against the Christians (London, 1809), p. 36.
" from the succession "
Lit.
im<f>oiT'f}(rai'ros i
of the "
" to come
(tiiatioxrjs).
habitually to "
coming upon one," or inspiration
303
of a
iirKpolrria-is is
God.
used
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
304
and the Greeks
Wisdom] from
of tens
of
Cheiron. 1
thousands [who have the
For
it is
from him that they
derived their initiation into the mysteries of nature,
and their knowledge
[in
of divine things
so that indeed
comparison] the Hebrews seem only to give them-
selves airs about their
own
[attainments].
Here we learn from Julian that the Third Hermes,
Hermes presumably of our Sermons, was known,
by those initiated into the Gnosis, to be no physical
historical Teacher, but a Teaching Power or Person,
the
who taught from within
1
Partially quoted
spiritually.
by Reitzenstein
(p. 175, n. 1).
IV.
FULGENTIUS THE MYTHO-
GRAPHER
An
intermediate of the parent copy of our Corpus in
every probability lay before Fulgentius.
him
(p. 26,
18 H
find
referring to the first sermon, though
enough,
barbarously
Thus we
phrase:
the
in
"Hermes
in
Opinandre Mbro" and quoting from the introductory
words; he also quotes
E.
G.
xii.
88,
(p.
3)
some words from
them to Plato,
stupidly referring
(xiii.),
adding in Greek:
FKAGMENT
The human mind
XXVIII.
god
is
if it
be good,
God
[then] doth shower His benefits [upon us].
And twice (p. 85, 21, and p. 74, 11) Fulgentius refers
in all probability to the lost ending of " The Definitions
Asclepius," in the latter passage telling us, "as
of
Hermes Trismegistus
of music,
that
1
The
namely
is,
"
says," that there
were three kinds
adomeno^psallomenon, aulumenon"
and
singing, harping,
piping.
date of this Afro-Latin writer cannot be later than the
sixth century.
2
Helm
(R.),
Fdbii Planciadis Fulgentii V. G. Opera (Leipzig,
1898).
VOL.
III.
305
20
IV
Conclusion
AN ATTEMPT AT CLASSIFYING
THE EXTANT LITERATURE
Before we proceed
append our concluding remarks,
down some attempt at classifying our extant sermons and fragments. Unfortunately,
however, this cannot be done in any scientific manner,
it
to
will be as well to set
owing
were
to the fact that the literature, even
before us, would be found to be too chaotic.
it
fully
Indeed,
even with our fragmentary information concerning
we
are acquainted with
Corpora
those
less
own
it,
than four unrelated
that lay before Lactantius, Cyril,
Stobseus, and our
tradition.
no
and
imperfect Corpus of Byzantine
There must also have been other Corpora
or collections, as, for instance, the books that Jamblichus
used, not to mention the ancient body of
MSS. which
lay before Petosiris and Nechepso.
Of Hermes
First
and foremost, standing in a
class
by
itself,
must
be placed
C.
This
is
H.
i" The Pcemandres."
the fundamental Gospel of the School, the
Hermes- or Master-grade.
based upon it in general type, though not
Self-instruction of the
With
in form,
it,
as
must be taken
C.
H.
xi. (xii.).
"
Mind unto Hermes."
309
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
310
This
but
later date,
is of
comparatively early, for
which must be
early,
the doctrines laid
it
and
down
still
must have been
it
introduces the iEon-doctrine,
is
in C.
the esoteric instruction on
H.
The Cup "
the most important
iv. (v.)
"
which was perhaps regarded as
sermon after " The Pcemandres."
Of the lost early literature we can get no clear
indication; it may, however, be mentioned that the
"rSayings of Agathodaimon " referred to in the Tat
Sermon, C. H. xii. (xiii), probably belonged to the most
archaic deposit of the Trismegistic literature, and may be
compared with the " Sayings of Ammon " mentioned by
These belonged, presumably, originally
Justin Martyr.
solely to the Hermes-grade.
With
the same type as the conclusion of the " Poem-
andres " in
present form, that
its
is
to
say with a
later development, we must classify
(iv.). "The Sacred
C.
H.
iii.
C.
H.
vii. (viii.). "
Here also,
must place
Sermon "; and
Whither stumble ye."
for lack of a
more
satisfactory heading,
we
An Apophthegm Hermes/'
A Hymn the Gods."
Ex. xxiv.
From The Inner Door."
Frag.
For Our Mind
Frag,
Ex.
xxii.
of
"
of
"
"
xxvi.
xxvii.
The
of
last being
saith."
"
probably from one of the oldest deposits
the literature.
The next most convenient heading
is
of
for classification
that under which we can place the greatest number
pieces, namely
To Tat
We
know
that the Tat-instruction was divided into
CONCLUSION
The General Sermons,"
(a)
"The Key"
said
is
of
which
be the
to
311
H.
C.
epitome
x.
(xi.)
or
rather
summation; and (b) "The Expository Sermons/' of
which C. H. xiii. (xiv.) " The Secret Sermon on the
Mountain " was the consummation.
It is, of course, not certain whether the Tat Sermons
were divided simply into these two classes, for though
we
are certain in a
number
of instances that
we
are
dealing with an extract from an Expository Sermon,
we
when the heading is only " From the
Sermon," or " Sermons to Tat," how to classify it. We
do not know how many General Sermons there may
are often in doubt
have been, or whether they were divided into Books as
were the Expository Sermons and the " To Asclepius,"
For convenience of
though perthe sermons and fragments
at anyrate in the Corpus of Cyril.
however, we
classification,
fectly arbitrarily, that all
may
consider,
which cannot
may
fall under the heading of "Expository"
be treated as " General."
The General Sermons
C.
H.
C.
H.
(ii.). "The
viii.
General Sermon."
(ix.). "That
No One
of
Existing
Things do Perish."
Ex.
x.
"
Concerning the Eule
Ex. xi. "Of Justice."
of Providence."
Ex. xx." The Power of Choice."
Fragg.
C.
1
The
H.
vi.
x.
and
vii.
(xi.)."The Key."
text has bodily fallen out of our
Corpus with one
of the
quires.
2
C.
This seems to be a complete sermon, and to be presupposed in
xii. (xiii.) ; as also Ex. xi.
H.
3 Exx. x.-xiii. probably go here as being part of the " Sermons
on Fate to Tat" but they are assigned otherwise by Stobaeus.
;
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
312
This last
stated to be the epitome or
is
"The General Sermons."
of
Asclepius and Tat, and
with
"
It
is
summation
addressed
to
both
be taken in connection
is to
The Perfect Sermon."
The Expository Sermons
Of these there were in the Corpus
Books to
Cyril
of
three
the First of which are assigned
Fragg. xx.
Ex.
ii.
To be assigned
(?),
xxii, xxiii., xxiv.
and Fragg.
to
iii., xi., xii.,
xv. 1
"The Expository Sermons"
in
general without any clearer indications
Exx.
Ex.
iii.
iv.
Exx.
(?). "Of Truth." 2
v., vi., vii., viii., ix.
Ex. i. "Of Piety and True Philosophy."
From
the Corpus Hermeticum
assign the following to this class
C. H.
C.
C.
H.
H.
v.
(vi.). "
vii.
conjecturally
(v.). "The Cup."
iv.
we may
Though Manifest."
About the Common Mind." 7
(viii.)."
These all seem to go together from the same Sermon or Book,
which in the case of Frag. xv. is definitely assigned by Cyril to
1
the "First of the Expository Sermons." The beginning of the
Sermon is given in Lact. xxiv., and a reference in Lact. xiii.
of
Seems
By comparison with Ex.
Ex.
them
to be a complete tractate.
ix. is
all,"
vii.
and chiefest
end of one of
characterised as " the most authoritative
and therefore came, presumably,
at the
the Books of these Sermons.
5
complete tractate, containing heads or summaries of
previous sermons, and probably one towards the end of this
collection.
6
7
The esoteric counterpart of which is C. H. xi. (xii.).
These three sermons are too advanced to be classed among
CONCLUSION
Finally,
course
"Expository
these
of
consummated by what we may
is
call "
The
Tat":
Initiation of
H.
C.
whole
the
Sermons "
313
(xiv.).
xiii.
The Secret Sermon on the
"
Mountain."
We
next
pass
on
what Cyril calls the "To
The Expository Sermons,
to
Asclepius," of which, as of "
there were in his Corpus at least Three Books.
To Asclepius
In our Corpus Hermeticum the following are assigned
to Asclepius
H.
C.
ii. (iii.).
of the
"
An
Nature
Introduction to the Gnosis
of All Things."
C.
H.
vi.
(vii.). "In
C.
H.
ix.
(x.). "
C.
H.
xiv.
From
God Alone
About
(xv.). u
Sense."
A Letter
"To Asclepius"
the
is
Good/'
to Asclepius."
in Cyril's collection
we
have:
Frag. xxv.
And
"The
definitely
(?).
from the Third
"
To Asclepius "
General Sermons," and in the case of the
last,
Tat
is
questioner and not a hearer as he indubitably was in the intro-
ductory instruction.
1
This is said to follow on " The Perfect Sermon," which was
not included in our Corpus among the selections of the Poeman-
drist apologist
2
This
instruction
"To
redacted
it.
by the
editor
already given
the doctrine
(xii.)
who
said
is
"Mind
to
very similar
unto Hermes.
to
is
Asclepius."
'
to
be
an expansion
Tat, in Asclepius'
It
of
absence,
an
and
that contained in C. H. xi.
also
stood in Cyril's
(viii.)
314
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
Fragg. xvi.-xviii.
In this Third Book
Sermon
which
"
is
it is
was included in
the longest
we
probable that " The Perfect
Cyril's Corpus.
addressed to Asclepius alone, for
par
excellence "
This sermon,
was evidently
possess,
its
The Asclepius," and
originally
alternative title
my
Asclepius,
the introduction of the "holy three"-
and
Ammon is
out by
our
all
list
due to a later
editor, is
We may thus
the evidence.
is
conjecture that
Tat
amply borne
well conclude
with
"
The Perfect Sermon."
For the fragments
of the lost
Greek
original of this
important tractate, see Lactantius
Fragg.
This Sermon
is
v., viii., ix., x.
to be
taken in close connection with
"The Key" which sums up "The General Sermons"
to Tat.
To Ammon
Book or
To Ammon." These
be more appropriately
Stobseus ascribes eight of his extracts to a
Books
of his collection entitled "
excerpts, however,
would seem to
"Sermons to Tat."
under
As, however,
Johannes distinctly so describes them, we will append
classified
them
here.
Exx.
xii., xiii.
Exx. xiv.-xix." Of Soul,"
Exx.
i.-vi.
xvi.-xix. follow one another in the text of the
Excerpts by Stobseus
as Ex. xviii., however, refers to
"The General Sermons"
it
make
therefore would
us
The Expository Sermons" to Tat, or that the Ammon-grade
had already had communicated to them " The General
suppose that either we are here dealing with
"
Sermons."
The above are the four types
of Trismegistic
Sermons
CONCLUSION
we next turn
proper, and
of
315
to the writings of the Disciples
Hermes.
Of Asclepius
It
is
remarkable that Asclepius, the most learned of
the Three, writes his treatises and letters, not to philo-
sophers or priests, or students, nor yet to his younger
brother Tat
He
but
invariably to the
invariably writes to
King
"Ammon"; and
or to Kings.
the once exist-
ing literature of this class was a very rich one,
if
we
The
by
that remain, however, are
no means
can believe the writer or redactor
fragments
of C.
H.
(xvi.).
numerous, and include
H. (xvi.)." The Definitions of Asclepius." 1
iv.
Probably from the lost ending of above.
C. H. (xvii.). " Of Asclepius to the King." 2
which may, perhaps, be more
Ex. xxi. (?)
"
correctly headed " Of Asclepius to the King
"
instead of with Stobaeus Of Isis to Horus."
C.
Frag.
To neither Tat nor
when Tat
for
is
Ammon
are tractates assigned
perfected he becomes in his
Hermes, and so writes as Hermes, while
man
of action
and
affairs
who
Ammon
does not teach.
turn
the
is
May we
phenomena conclude that " Asclepius "
was the man who was skilled in theory and intellectual
grasp, but was not capable of direct illumination as
was Tat ?
The next class of literature falls under the heading
further from these
Of
Whether
we possess
Isis
or not the forms of this literature
are contemporaneous with
The end
A fragment only from
or later
which
than
is lost.
the end of the sermon
is
preserved.
316
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
the Tat and Asclepius Sermons,
we cannot
say; but
the
any case they are based on ancient types
Books of Isis to Horus." To this type we assign
in
"
Ex. xxi. " Of
Isis to
Horus."
Though, as we have suggested above, this is an error
of Johannes, and should be rather " Of Asclepius to the
King."
Ex.
xxiii.
From Aphrodite."
Where Aphrodite probably
Exx. xxv., xxvi.
Ex. xxvii.
From
"
The remaining
the
name
equates with
"The Virgin
the
of the
Sermon
Isis.
World."
of Isis to Horus."
class of literature is connected
of Osiris as the Disciple
the Thrice-greatest, and
may
with
Agathodaimon,
of
be headed as
From the Agathodaimon Literature
Our fragments
are all taken from Cyril's Corpus, and
are referred to by
him under the heading "To Asclepius/'
them under this
We
have, however, not included
heading in our tentative classification, because they are
plainly not addressed to Asclepius, but
belong to a
quite different form of literature, most probably throw-
ing back to an ancient type of the same nature as the
"
Books
To
of Isis."
this class are to be assigned
Fragg.
This
xiv., xix., xxi.
form may be
taken with the
"
xiii.,
Sayings of
"
perhaps more appropriately
Sayings of Agathodaimon " and the
Ammon "
as
Agathodaimon
both of which
pertain to the oldest types of the Trismegistic literature.
Finally, we add the appendix to our Corpus written
by a Pcemandrist rhetor and apologist
C.
H. (xviii.). " The Encomium
of Kings."
CONCLUSION
may
This
And
tion
be taken with the quotation from the editor
Corpus
of Cyril's
so
at the time
XV. Books.
of
we come
with the
end
to the
classify
it,
when
so
of
full conviction,
our tentative
classifica-
however, that as no one
the literature was extant in a
Corpora and collections
of
317
now
all sorts
of
we have only
that
number
attempted to
the flotsam and
jetsam of this once abundantly rich cargo before
inventory can be
value,
made
that
and we can at best
heaps of
disjecta
membra
us,
no
of the slightest scientific
is
offer the reader a
few sorted
of varying dates.
Of Judgments of Value
We
now approach
the conclusion of our task, but
with the feeling that the whole matter should be put
any attempt be made to set down
any judgments of value. We are as yet too much
involved in a maze of details to be able to extricate
ourselves into the clear space in which we can walk at
ease round the labyrinth and view it from a general
and detached point of view.
Nevertheless, we will endeavour to set down some
aside for years before
general impressions of our experiences in the labyrinth
of the
many
many windings we have had to traverse, and the
way out into which we have been
places with no
by following the paths of history and criticism out
which there has been time and again no egress, even
led
of
when holding
fast to the thread of light
woven out
of
the illuminating rays of the doctrines of the tradition.
It
is
indeed a difficult task to stand with the feet of
the mind set firm on the surface of objectivity, and
with the head and heart
of the subjective
superhuman task
of it in the heights
and depths
And yet this almost
Work set before every
and unmanifest.
is
scholar of the Gnosis
the Great
the man who would think
truly
318
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
and judge justly, viewing the matter from all standand appraising it from without and within,
from above and below, endeavouring to unite centre
and circumference in a blended intuitional sense that
transcends our divided senses and intellect.
The Trismegistic literature is scripture, and to its
understanding we must bring all and every faculty
that the best minds of to-day are bringing to bear upon
the special scripture which each one may believe to be
the most precious legacy from the Past to the Present.
Now the application of what is called "criticism"
to scripture is the wielding of a two-edged sword
this
sword is not only two-edged, but it is fiery.
If it is
rightly used, it will disperse the hosts of error and hew
a path into the Paradise of Truth but if it is wrongly
used, it will react on the daring soul that attempts to
grasp it, and he will find in it the flaming brand in the
hands of the Angel-Warden that keeps him from the
Gate of Heaven.
Criticism, which is regarded with such fear and
trembling by some, and is sneered at and despised by
others, is the sword that the Christ has brought on earth
There is now war in the members
in these latter days.
of the faithful, war within them, such war as they
cannot escape, if God has given them a mind with
which to reason. Every man of intelligence who loves
his own special scripture, is keenly aware of the war
within his members head against heart and heart
against head, form against substance and substance
This is keenly felt by those who love
against form.
their own special Bible; but how few can enter into
points,
the feelings of another
some other Bible?
other man's religion?
an absolutely
who
Who
loves with equal fervour
can be really
And by
this
lifeless indifference, in
fair
to
any
we do not mean
which the head
319
CONCLUSION
alone
type
is
concerned
who
but
for there are not a
few
men
of this
deal with the comparative science of religion
sympathy that knows that the other man's
and the
revelation of God's Wisdom.
a lively
religion is the highest thing on earth for him,
light-giving
The Sons of God
In treating
Gnosis
the "Keligion of the Mind," of the
of
Hermes,
of Thrice-greatest
to enter into it
entered into
have endeavoured
as I conceive the Disciples of that
it,
with love and reverence.
Way
would do
the same with any other of the Great Eeligions of
Humanity (and have done
so in some cases), if I desired
and predilections apart, I will
not say, to understand it for what mortal mind can
grasp the Divine Eevelation in any of its Great
Forms? but to share, however imperfectly, in its
illumination.
Now, this attitude of mind and love of
and
God
man is strongly deprecated by those who fear
fervently, all prejudices
to stand accused of lack of
ticular
form
of that
Great
own
par-
Faith which
God
loyalty to their
Form
of
The one object
other Great Forms of Faith is to
has given for their guidance.
enquiries into
that their
own small form
the
is
prove
"
ends, and the highest
and that the other countless forms are of
Enemy of their God.
the Father of
all
"
Great Form to which
of the
they give allegiance, is the end of
of all heights,
of their
all,
God, or rather God, for
has no enemies
brethren, and loves
refuse to believe
My
all
He
has
many
He
sons,
them equally even though they
Him.
There
is
but one Eeligion,
its
Great Forms are many, the forms of these Forms are
innumerable, as
many
as are the individual
hearts of men, and the
individual man.
many
minds and
hearts and minds of
320
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
And
here I would set forth
Form
my present
all-insufficient
known as Christianity, for there will doubtless be some who read these
volumes who will accuse me of I know not what attitude other than that of their own to that Faith.
notion of the Great
My
faith in the
Master
of .Religion
of
Christendom
I dare not limit it or qualify it
me
the
Mind
for that
of all master-hood,
is
unbounded
Master
is for
Poemandres Himself.
For how can any small mind of man dare to limit the
Illimitable, the Mystery of all mysteries, that enfolded
Jesus the Christ, and Gautama the Buddha, and
Zoroaster the Mage, and Lao-tze the Sage, and Orpheus
the Bard, and Pythagoras the Philosopher, and Hermes
the Gnostic, and all and every Master and Master of
masters ? Do I detract from the transcendency of Jesus
the Christ, when I mention His Brethren, all Sons of
God
and
apart, set over one against the other
I do not, for the
one Sonship
must be
Sons of God are not separate
of the Father,
left
those
to
they are
all
and these apparent differences
who think themselves
wise
enough to judge between them instructed enough to
know the within of the matter as well as the without,
which in no case has come down to us in any but the
most fragmentary and erroneous tradition. I do not
know I dare not judge those who are Judges of the
;
And
quick and dead.
who would
If,
nevertheless, I
by some,
so I leave this audacity to those
forget the logos of their Saviour
it is
standable.
am
still
"Judge not."
judged as a " calumniator
"
but natural injustice and quite under-
There
is,
however, no real Injustice in the
who would be
Justified and rise again
must balance mortal seeming justice and
injustice to reach the true equilibrium, and so be free
It
of mortal opinion, and stand in the Hall of Truth.
is to the bar of this Judgment Hall that all men in
universe, and he
with
Osiris,
321
CONCLUSION
the last resort appeal, whether they be born Christian
or
Mahommedan, Brahman
Zoroastrian or Pagan
manner
of faith that is
faith that includes
Christianity
is
or Jew, Buddhist or Taoist,
whether they be born to a
none of these, or to an ideal of
or
them
all.
World
the Faith of the Western
the Faith most suited to
He
in nature and in form.
it
abundance through
who gave that Faith, gave
many sources; and the greatest sign of His authority,
of His authentia was the throwing open of some part
in fullest
of
the age-long secret mystery-teaching to the
without distinction of age, sex,
nation, or of instruction.
many
class, caste, colour, or
The inner doors
Temple
of the
were thrown wide open to the Amme-ha-aretz ; but
the innermost door still remained closed, for it is a door
that is not man-made it opens into the within of
things, and not into some inner court of formal instrucThat door still remained naturally closed to the
tion.
unworthy and unknowing but no Scribe or Pharisee
of the established order of things could any longer keep
the key thereof in his selfish hands.
given to
all,
but given
The key was
mystically, for it
still
in the inner nature of each son of man, and
not in himself, searching into the depths
hidden
is
he seek
if
of
his
own
That key is the opener
and syzygy
complement
the
Gnosis,
of the Gate of the
womanof
the
husband
and spouse of Faith the virile
nature, he will never find
it.
side of the Christ-Keligion.
In the early days that Gnosis was given in greatest
Faith there was, Faith in mighty abundance,
fullness
but there was also Gnosis
and
it
was because
of this
Gnosis of not a few that the Faith of the many was
But over these mysterious days, and the
so intense.
inner in-working of
drawn
the
Mystery, a veil has been
to hide the holy operations from profane eyes
vol. in.
21
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
322
So that to-day, these
many
centuries after, the foolish
the Faith deny there was ever a Gnosis; just as
of
their
still
more
predecessors
foolish
persecuted
the
them down as AntiSatan.
The natural veil
Gnostics of Christ and howled
and First-born Sons of
was thus drawn over the too bright light of the Sacred
Marriage when Heaven had kissed the Earth once more.
christs
So great, then,
Master, so great
Gnosis.
If this
my
is
my
faith in the authentia of the
assurance of the wisdom of His
be thought "calumny" of His trans-
we are judged "calumniators" with
Knower of the Mystery, and so complimented
cendency, then
Hermes, a
immeasurably beyond our
deserts.
Concerning Dates
And now let us turn to the Eeligion of the Mind,
which is also the Eeligion of the Heart for is not
Thoth Lord of the heart of man ?
In the first place we have endeavoured faithfully to
investigate every statement or suggestion that can be
thought to be indicative
of
date,
and we have not
succeeded in any single instance in fixing a precise date
any sermon or fragment. What, however, we have
been able to do, is to clear the ground of many false
opinions, and to show the insecurity, if not the abEvery hypothesis
surdity, of any attempt at precision.
for
of precision of date,
when
that hypothesis has favoured a
any sermon, has broken down. Whenever
there has been a clearer indication, as, for instance, in
the case of the Shepherd of Hermas, and the Pcemandres
of Hermes, it has thrown the time-period backwards
late date for
and not forwards.
What
has been proved, and amply proved, however,
is
that our literature goes back in an unbroken tradition
of
type and form and content to the earliest Ptolemaic
CONCLUSION
The
times.
forms
earliest
but clear records
of its
of
323
this literature are lost,
nature remain.
Of the extant
literature there are specimens of varying date,
how they should be
what, however,
is
though
by no means clear;
that some of our documents
ordered
clear is
is
are at least contemporaneous with the earliest writings
of Christianity.
In
"
the
Prolegomena "
we have
established an
which Gnosis and
Mystery-teaching have been handed down through preChristian, Pagan and Jewish, and through Christian
hands. We have further shown that the Gnosis of our
Trismegistic documents is a simpler form than that of
unbroken
line
of
tradition
in
the great doctors of the Christianised Gnosis, Basilides
and Valentinus, who nourished in the first quarter of
the second century. The earlier of our sermons, therefore, represent one of the main streams, perhaps the
main stream, of the Unchristianised Gnosis. We have
further shown that, together with many other schools,
both our Pcemandrists and the writers of the New
Testament documents use a common theological or
theosophical nomenclature, and have a common body
of ideas.
What
is
clear
from
all
this
is
that there
is
no
plagiarism, no deliberate copying, no logoklopia of other
though there was the freest drawing on
The condition of affairs and the
a common fund.
nature of the problems involved are such, that any
men's
secrets,
theory of plagiarism at once becomes a two-edged sword
he who says that Trismegisticism copied from Christianity, can at once have his argument reversed into
the form that Christianity copied from Trismegisticism.
As
to date, then,
we
are dealing with a period
when
there was as yet no divorcement between Gnosis and
Faith even in Christianity
itself,
and therefore the
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
324
canons of judgment erected in later times by ecclesiastical self -limitation
cannot be made to apply.
The Blend of Tkaditions
The view
of
General Christianity, gradually narrowed
down by the Church Fathers
into
Mcene
dogmatic
Christianity, looked to one tradition only as the school-
master
the Faith
of
God-favoured Folk.
the
tradition
tongue and the Greek method
of
of
Israel as
the
was the fair Greek
thought that were used
Nevertheless
it
in evolving this special dispensation into a world-cult
for the
many.
The Trismegistic
limitation;
its
tradition laboured under
no such
sympathies were more catholic.
main source was
It
is
embraced
with whole-hearted affection the wisdom of Hellas and
the genius of Greece which were developed under
Divine Providence to teach the Western Nations the
At the same time
glory and beauty of the mind.
its sympathies were not divorced from the tradition of
the Hebrews, though it refused to set them apart from
the rest of humanity, and looked rather to the great
river of wisdom in the Books of the Chaldseans, Persians,
Medes, and Parthians, than to the single stream shut off
true that
in the
its
Books
writings
is
of Israel.
The
in Egypt, but
it
spirit of our Trismegistic
the same as that which inspired the Pagan and
Jewish and Christian Gnostic scribes of the Naassene
Document, all of whom believed that there was but one
Mystery which all the mystery-institutions of the
world attempted to adumbrate.
If,
then,
we were
to say for the sake of convenience
that our Trismegistic writings enshrine the
Egypt in Greek
tradition,
we should not
Wisdom
of
divorce that
Wisdom from the Wisdom of the Chaldaeans and the rest.
The Wisdom was one, the forms were many and both
;
325
CONCLUSION
Egypt and Chaldsea looked back to an Archaic Gnosis
the common mother of their most ancient
that was
forms
of
And
Mystery-teaching.
if
we say
this
Wisdom has come down
that this
us in Greek tradition,
Grsecising or
we
to
should ever remember that
philosophising has to do with the
form and not with the substance. For whence did
Thales and Pythagoras and Plato draw the inspiration
for their philosophy or love of wisdom; was it not
from Egypt? At anyrate so say the Greeks themselves
And
without a single dissentient voice.
can
we think that the Greeks, who were always so proud of
their own achievements and boasted their own genius
would have given the palm of wisdom to
Egypt had they not been compelled by overwhelming
evidence to do so ? But this does not mean that we
Hellas was
are to deprive Hellas of her just laurels.
so
loudly,
systematic
the mother of philosophy in the sense of
thinking and the development of the analytic reason
independent reand the piercing analysis of the intellect and
the beauty of clear thinking in excellent expression,
were her gifts to the "Western world. It was she
This
is
her great virtue and honour
search,
beyond the other nations that created
for herself
subtler vehicle of thought for the manifestation of the
powers
of
mental analysis.
That, however,
is
not
necessarily in itself wisdom, but the perfecting of an
instrument
whereby wisdom, if it be attained
may be the more clearly expressed
other means,
those
in
whom
the
analytic
are
faculties
by
for
being
developed.
Wisdom
cination
is
transcends this
mode
of
mind
for ratio-
not ecstasis, the practical intelligence
the contemplative mind.
contrasted with
Nor
is
mind, using
is
it
not
as
the other faculties and energies and
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
326
powers in man, the only or even the highest thing in
man. This Secret of the Sphinx Egypt had possessed
for millennia
so that her priests could say to Solon
"You Greeks
are all children"
for
the intellect in
Greece was young, though destined to grow into a
giant; whereas the hoary Gnosis of the heart of
was
and
prior to the seons,
will
continue
man
when
the
seons shall cease.
That Gnosis of Man still awaits decipherment in
Egypt it is hidden in her glyphs and symbols and holy
signs.
But that Gnosis will never yield its secret to
;
those
who
Language
persist in interpreting these
symbols
of the
Gods into their lower forms, forms
children and not for men. And indeed
of the
intended for
our Trismegistic sermons, if they should teach us nothing
else,
can at least assure us of
were
still
ear to
this, for their writers
mouth with the Living Voice of that
Our Poemandrists
once Great Church of Wisdom.
knew what
mystery-tradition inculcated
the
knew, for they had been within the holy
At anyrate
view
my
for
of the matter,
part
they
shrines.
I prefer to believe
their
than to listen to the contemptuous
patronage of modern conceit bred of complete ignor-
ance of the manifold natures and powers and energies
in man.
Of
Indeed the whole
of
Initiation
intended to lead a
to
the
portals
man up
of
the
theosophy
this
indeed of the theosophy of
all
of
Egypt, as
climes and times, was
the stairway of perf ectioning,
first
true natural
initiation,
whereby he becomes superman, or, as Hermes would
and in truth "man" and not a "procession
of Fate."
Beyond that stage are many others too sublime
and it is just because
for us in any way to understand
say, at last
CONCLUSION
327
we do not understand and
of their sublimity that
so
we
" interpret " things of the height into the lowest notions
and opinions of the most limited things of sense. For
beyond the superman stage comes the Christ, and then
but who shall speak of that which transcends even
perfected master-hood
And by
initiation, in this sense,
we do not mean
probationary forms of drama and of instruction, "of
things said and done/' but a natural thing and process, all
that which the Christ of Christendom has laboured to
inculcate with so much
wisdom even in the blurred record
To this initiation a man may
come without a physical guide or the help of any tradition
Nevertheless, he would indeed be
of formal ceremony.
down
that has come
foolish
to us.
who should say
that the greater mystery-institu-
tions which have been established by wise teachers and
the Providence of God, have been or are of no effect.
On
the contrary, the disciple of wisdom will study
every record of such institutions accessible to him, and
ponder on their marvellous multiplicity, and marvel at
the infinite modes devised to play the pedagogue, that
man may be brought unto his God. Nevertheless, if
he has not the love and wit to study such things, he
should not despair, for is he not already in the Outer
so
Court
Temple,
of the
if
he would but
lift
up
his eyes to
see the mysteries of the universe that surround
every side
We
how
all
long
him on
are babes in the
we
T
Womb
of the
Great Mother
continue as babes, as embryos, remains
for each of us to decide.
alone cannot bear
all
For in
this Birth the
the pains of labour;
Mother
we
too
and struggle and dare to breathe
within her holy Womb, so as to accustom our dead
lungs to expand, before the Great Birth can be accomplished, and we can at length walk forth into the Inner
must help and
strive
"
328
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
World
erect upon our feet and draw in at every pore
and in every atom its pure air without fear.
But
this Inner World is no thin shadow of the outer
world, as
it
may
appear to us in the dark night of our
present ignorance
it is
the Inner Cosmos, not the inner
Eapts and visions
earth.
may
let
us see some mysteries
of the inner earth,
less the
Nor
but not the mysteries
Divine Mysteries of Cosmos.
is
of Earth,
much
there any need to label these things with
now even the most experienced in
such vision can know but in part whereas then we shall
precise
terms, for
know
But
knowing this, who shall tell the Mystery, who can tell
the Mystery for is not the whole of Nature telling us
the Fullness, face to face, without a parable.
Mystery, now at every
moment with infinite voices
mouths, and yet we hear nothing ? For is
not the whole creation designed with this one purpose to
this
from
tell
infinite
every son of
man
that he
is of
Light and Life and
only happens to be out of them, as Hermes says
A
But
Last
Word
very possible that some who have done me
the honour of reading to the end, will say " This man
it is
is
a dreamer, an ecstatic
we have no
use for such in
the hard world of rigid facts that confront us in our
everyday
life
But indeed
have
little time for dreams and ecstasies
which my supposed critics would use
the words, as any one may see who can realise the
labour that has been expended on these volumes, ninetenths of which are filled with translations and commentaries, criticisms and notes, in which dreams and
ecstasies have no part, but only strenuous co-labour of
mind and soul and body. And that is just the carrying
in the sense in
out of what I hold to be the true doctrine of practical
329
CONCLUSION
mysticism, or
that
is
much
objection be taken by the reader to
if
ill-used word, of the
true that
Work
Great
It
of life.
almost impossible to talk of these
is
it
high or deep things except in language that in every
and in every word is liable to misFor even when we call them high things,
expression
construction.
they are not high in space or place, but rather in the
sense that they are of greater intensity than the shows
and appearances
of opinion that
superficialities of
our world of normal conditioning.
form the surfaces or
mind to
must work
proper dignity, nature, and
Spirit in itself is not superior to mind, or
soul,
body;
soul to
or
each
together according to their
energy,
in
and
all
equilibrium in the perfect man.
perfect
They are not descending degrees of some one thing, but
are mutually in some mysterious way all aspects of
one another.
For
we
should
regard
distinguished solely,
them
as
quantitatively
then we should be looking at
them from the point of view of divided body alone or
we regard them as qualitatively distinguished,
then we should be looking at them from the point of
;
should
view
them
separated soul alone;
of
as
regarding
we regard
we should be
or should
distinguished, then
logically
them from the standpoint
the formal
of
we should look at them
synthetically,
monadically and
we should be
reason solely
while
if
them from an abstract and not a
Nevertheless they are
in difference
and
and middle and
end
is
regarding
vital view-point.
each of other, the same
all
different in the same.
their
as wholes
Man, and
Their source
Man
alone can
reach unto the Gnosis of God.
And
therefore
we may conclude with
Hermes by the Mind
counsel given unto
fit
for
Men.
the
daring
doctrine
THRICE-GREATEST HERMES
330
thou dost not make thyself like unto God,
thou canst not know Him.
For like is knowable to
" If, then,
like alone.
Make thou
"
grow
same stature as
the Greatness which transcends all measure leap forth
from every Body transcend all Time become Eternity
and then shalt thou know God.
thyself to
to the
"
Conceiving
nothing
unto
impossible
is
think thyself deathless and able to
know
all
thyself,
all arts,
the way of every life.
Become more lofty than all height, and lower than
all sciences,
"
depth.
all
creatures
into
Collect
of
fire
thyself
senses
all
in
earth,
womb, young,
in sea, in sky; not yet begotten, in the
"
all
Think
and water, dry and moist.
that thou art at the same time in every place
old,
of
and dead, in after-death conditions.
And
thou knowest
if
all
places, doings, qualities,
these things at once
and quantities
times,
thou canst
know God."
This
is
Way, the Good's Own Path, the
the Straight
Ancient Eoad.
" If thou but
everywhere,
when thou
sett'st
'twill
thy foot thereon,
anywhere be
dost expect
it
not
journeying, by night, by
naught.
For there
is
seen,
waking,
meet thee
both where and
'twill
sleeping, sailing,
day, speaking,
naught that
is
and saying
not image
of the
Good."
And
so for the present writing
Thrice-greatest
we
bid farewell to
Hermes and the teachings
of his
Mind,
the Shepherd of all men-with heart-felt thanks that by
the Mercy of God the echo of his voice has come to us
across the ages and bidden us once more remember.
Index
Aah-Tehuti, i. 66.
Aahlu, Territory of Illumination,
i.
70.
Aall,
i.
33.
Aan, i. 55.
Ab, i. 89.
Abammon,
the Teacher,
Abbot Olympius, Story
Abercius,
Abortion,
Abraham,
285.
384.
55.
ii.
i.
iii.
of, i.
350.
ii.
Achemides, i. 400.
Active Principle, the, i. 225.
Acts of John, i. 236, ii. 55, 238,
mystery ritual in, i. 182,
iii. 157
;
ii.
156.
147.
115, 149, iii.
243,
Acts of Philip,
body
i.
of,
i.
iii.
i.
i.
277, 281 ;
i. 146.
281 ; celestial,
336.
Adam (J.),
Adam Kadmon,
i.
146.
Adamant, i. 392.
Adamas, i. 146, 159, 161.
Adams (see Marsham).
Adomenon, iii. 305.
Mon
or JSons, i. 182, ii. 240.
JEon- doctrine, the, i. 387, ii. 190.
JEonian Essence Above, i. 152.
JEonic
Consciousness,
ii.
Adrasteia,
Advent,
ii.
430,
171.
i.
iii.
" rootage"
of,
ii.
317;
type
of the, ii. 282.
Aerolites, iii. 53.
JEsculapius, cult of, i. 468.
.Ether, i. 84, 101, iii. 50, 98, 101,
125 ; the height of the, i. 233
Again-becoming,
116.
Adversary, Agree with thine,
244
407.
-ffionology,
ii.
192,
32,
248
Hellenistic origin of, i. 401, 405.
Moiis, ii. 373; father of the, i.
411 ; hymn of the, ii. 43 ; Great
Silence,
Mother of, ii. 241
of Pleroma, i. 408,
ii.
245;
i.
quintessence or, ii. 92 ; Mighty
Whirlpool, i. 451.
Ethiopia (see Ethiopia), i. 188, 281.
^Ethiopian queen, i. 316.
Adonis, i. 151, 156, 294.
Adoration of images, ii. 286.
281.
literature,
i.
410
406 Mithriac, i. 399
in Plato, i. 404
song of praise
to the, i. 408
is not time, i. 405
boundary of all universes, i. 392
wealth -giving, i. 402.
i.
Immensities of Egypt,
265.
Adam,
Acharantus, the Husbandman,
183,
i.
i.
Logos,
i.
i.
303.
103.
JEon, i. 66, 92, ii. 128, 175, 232,
370, iii. 117, 161 ; become, ii.
190 ; birth of the, iii. 160 ; circle
of infinitude, i. 399 ; communities of the, in Phoenicia, i. 403 ;
demiurgic, i. 410
eternity or,
iii. 91 ;
feast of the, i. 403
in
Mian,
Theurgic
335,
366.
253.
82, 402.
ii.
Abraxas, i.
Abraxoid, i. 82.
Abydos, i. 292.
Abyss, i. 408, ii. 27, 80, 81, 269.
Accuser, blind, iii. 281.
Achaab, the Husbandman, ii. 265.
Acbsea,
JEacus,
Agamemnon,
iii.
i.
Agathodaimon,
479,
ii.
213,
ii.
76, 83.
446.
i.
iii.
85, 98, 105, 109,
156, 157, 163
332
INDEX
Osiris
261
disciple
literature,
sayings
iii.
Age,
of,
iii.
Almond-tree,
478, iii.
257, 316
310, 316 ; type,
of,
i.
Alone-begotten,
Alter-egos,
261.
Golden,
years,
135
iii.
Agree with thine adversary,
iii.
Amenhotep,
Aion, Reitzenstein's monograph on,
337.
to,
i.
131.
467.
i.
i. 387.
Aipolos, i. 175, 177.
Air, ii. 342, iii. 6Q, 129, 210.
Amenthe,
Air very
American Encyclopaedia, i.
Amme-ha-Aretz, iii. 321.
iii.
Ammianus
Ammon, i.
318.
Ammon-Kneph, iii. 158.
Ammonius, iii. 285.
Amoun, i. 274, iii. 61
of,
i.
i.
200.
Alexandrine Gnostics and
fourth
38.
Alexarchus, i. 314.
Alkyoneus, i. 149.
calAll, ii. 310 ; in all, ii. 221
umniators of the, ii. 228 genesis
of the, i. 406 ; and Good, ii. 175
master of the, i. 409 and one,
ii. 118
is one, ii. 213, 268, 308,
309 ; one and, i. 136, ii. 230,
344
threefold divided, i. 165
;
255.
ii.
8.
All-form, ii. 185, 194.
All-god, Hymn to, ii. 108.
All-goodness, ii. 344.
All -perfection, iii. 255.
All-receiving, i. 333.
All-seed Potency, ii. 30.
All-seeing Light, ii. 253.
All-sense, ii. 364, 396.
All-soul, ii. 145.
Allegory, i. 200.
meaning
273.
Amphithemis,
Amphitrite,
Amsu,
197.
Alexandrian religio-philosophy,
All-Father Mind,
Marcellinus,
100, 101, 149, 273, 471,
i.
ii.
24.
113.
i.
Alethophilus, i. 13.
Alexander, brother of Philo, i. 204
Cornelius (Polyhistor), i. 164.
Alexandria, i. 99, 301
Jewish
colony of, i. 204 ; Library of, i.
perfected,
70.
i. 148, 286.
401.
Albinus, iii. 227.
Alchemist, the true, ii. 139.
ii.
i.
Union
of
Kronos
ii. 308; King, iii. 293;
sayings of, iii.
that is, ii. 279
words of, iii. 152, 215,
307, 313
216 ; temples of, ii. 279 (Zeus),
Alalkomeneus,
gospel,
304.
;
205.
Akasha-Ganga, i. 110.
Akhraim, i. 282.
Akron, i. 364.
Ajax, i. 446.
Alaric,
i.
Place
Amenti, i. 379
with Unseen Father, i.
air, iii. 17.
Air-spaces,
278.
iii.
Amenhotep-Asclepius, i 473.
Amentet, i. 304.
326.
i.
283.
43.
Amen, i. 74, 274,
Amen-Ra, Hymn
281.
Agrippa (Cornelius), i. 13.
Ahriman, i. 325, 326, 400.
Ahura Mazda (see Ormuzd),
ii.
ii.
403,
i.
Amasis, i. 465.
Ambrosia, i. 161.
Amelineau, i. 50.
seven
of
37.
iii.
182.
i.
Alone Good Father,
iii.
i.
i.
149.
359.
i.
327.
Amulet, i. 346, 349.
Amygdalos, i. 182.
Amyxai, i. 183.
Anacreon, cup of, i.
167, 193, 455.
180, ii. 171.
Anaximander, iii. 178, 179.
Anebo, iii. 286.
Angel, recording, i. 64 ; sovereign,
i. 371.
Angel-chief, i. 234.
Angels, the, i. 240 ; of Darkness,
evil,
i. 424; eldest of all, i. 198
of Light, i. 424 ;
ii. 355, iii. 239
paternal, i. 159 ; tongue of, ii.
32; " words," i. 243.
Anger, ii. 224.
Animal, hylic, ii. 63 ; soul, ii. 246
spirits, i. 363.
Animal-soul of cosmos, i. 353.
Animals, burials of, i. 295 celestial,
Anaktoreion,
i.
ii.
282;
circle
of,
iii.
46,
51;
earthy, iii. 301 ; sacred, ii. 52,
383, iii. 102, 288; worship of,
i. 353.
Ankh-tie, i. 61.
.
333
INDEX
Ankhnes-Ra-Neferab,
Announcement, Great,
Annu, i.
Annuals
Anpu, i.
74.
(winds),
342.
i.
73.
i.
ii.
170, 317.
316.
Anthropos, Myth of, i. 143 Prototype of humanity, i. 139.
Anthropos-doctrine,4. 193, iii. 273,
282 ; Zosimus on/ i. 196.
;
Anticleides,
314.
Antigonus the Elder, i. 298.
Antilegomena, i. 370.
Antoninus Pius, i. 464.
Ants, iii. 35, 36.
Anubis, i. 88, 100, 283, 284, 315,
322, 342.
Ape, i. 87, 95, 446, 449.
i.
Ape-form, i. 95.
Ape-Thoth, i. 462.
Apelles,
298.
i.
Aphrodite,
i. 61, 151, 181, 280, 305,
327, 350, 352, 359, ii. 345, iii.
89, 316.
Aphrodite-Helen, iii. 182.
Apion, i. 307, 387, ii. 5.
Apis, i. 267, 268, 277, 292, 303,
304, 307, 309, 311, 322, 337,
355 = Epaphos, i. 314 animated
image of Osiris, i. 321.
Apocalypse of Jesus, iii. 279
of
Thespesius, iii. 192
Untitled,
;
it 107, 282.
Apocalypsis, Vision and,
20
ii.
ff.
Apocrypha, i. 365.
Apocryphal, ii. 234, 236.
Apogeneses of souls, ii. 260.
Apokatastasis, ii. 128.
Apollo, i. 279, 298, 334, 342, 352,
;
golden
monad,
i.
Apollonius
curls
275.
of Tyana,
of,
i.
352
374,
ii.
Apophis,
i.
ii.
of Hermes, iii. 88.
Memoirs ofi. 195.
Apotheosis, ii. 163
of Hermes,
;
Appetite,
iii.
iii.
145, 181.
and heart,
75
iii.
78.
Apple, of the eye,
World-Eye,
Appuleius,
Apu,
ii.
282.
Arabs, i. 272.
i.
iii.
307.
iii.
167.
165
of the
of
88.
i.
Aristotle,
i.
perfumes,
327, 340, 362
364.
62,
i.
on
Ark, tables of the laws in the,
238.
of the Sun,
Arms
331.
Arnebeschenis, iii. 198, 209.
Aroueris, i. 279, 280.
Arrival of Isis from Phoenicia,
330.
Arsaphes, i. 314.
Art-prose, ii. 300.
i.
i.
i.
Artaud, i. 27.
Artemidorus, i. 158.
Artemis, i. 352 dyad, i. 275.
Artificer of Time, ii. 192 ; of this
;
Artist,
iii.
ii.
iii.
290
iii.
118.
Supreme, iii. 266.
40, 198 ; and sciences,
;
199, 325.
(Osiris),
i.
276
and Ast,
i.
367.
Asar-Hapi, i. 302.
Ascension of Isaiah, ii. 232.
of the Soul, ii. 41
Ascent
222.
Appendages,
241
Aristagoras, i. 267.
Aristarchus, i. 100.
Ariston, i. 314.
Asar
313.
Apophthegm
iii.
ii.
i.
Ariouth,
298.
Apostles,
66
of every other
Soul, ii. 71 ;
Time's, i. 229, ii. 193.
Archi-charila, i. 310.
Architect, iii. 122, 125, 235.
Archontics, i. 424.
Arcturus, i. 288.
Ares, i. 305, 327.
Argives, i. 299, 311.
Argo, i. 296.
Argus, iii. 232.
Aridseus, Vision of, i. 438, 452.
light,
Arts,
197, 252.
Apology of a Pcemandrist,
238.
197.
Archetype,
new World,
i.
ii.
i.
Archemachus, i. 301.
Archetypal, Form, ii. 6, 8, 9, 29 ;
Model, i. 236, 241; Pattern, i.
235 Seal, i. 235.
359
Aratus, i. 314.
Arbiter (Thoth), i. 58.
Arcadia, i. 376 ; Mount of,
Archangelic Booh of Moses,
ff.
Straight, i. 428.
Asclepieion, i. 460.
Asclepius, i. 127, 469, ii. 391, iii.
184, 198; the Healer, i. 467;
the pupil of Taautos, ii. 279.
Asclepius- Imuth, i. 461, iii. 96,
198.
Asclepiuses, many, iii, 221.
334
INDEX
Asenas, iii. 277.
Ashes, i. 355.
Authentia, iii. 318, 319.
Authentic Name, the, ii. 252.
Autozoon, i. 154, 400.
Avarice, ii. 224.
Avatara, iii. 143.
Avengers, iii. 50.
Ashvaghosha, ii, 44.
Ashvattha, ii. 317.
Aso, i. 281.
Asp, i. 356, 357.
Aspalathus, i. 365.
Asphodel, iii. 134.
Ass, i. 290, 307, 329, 422
Avenging Daimon,
;
bound,
305, 330.
Ass-like, i. 305.
Assyrians, initiations of the, i. 151
mysteries of the, i. 155, 426.
Astarte, i. 285.
i.
Astral
body, the
crater,
i.
true,
ii.
172
453.
Athena,
352,
i.
i.
i.
89.
i.
115.
311.
Bacchus, ii. 56 ; starry cup of, i.
414 infant, i. 303.
Bad, i. 341.
Balaam (Bileam), iii. 279 Jeschu,
ii. 80
the Lame Man, i. 335 ;
;
343,
hebdomad,
275;
house of, iii. 183.
Athenceum, The, i. 68.
Athenagoras, i. 59, 61,
i.
iii.
220.
Athenais, i. 285, 286.
Athenians, Colonies of the, i. 314.
Athens, i. 350.
Athlete, i. 446 Therapeut, i. 206.
Athur (Athyr), i. 282, 316, 337,
;
350.
i.
106
names,
i.
285.
Atlanticwni, i. 108.
Atlantis, Plato's, i. 176 ; Story of,
i. 285.
Atom, ii. 269.
Atomicity, i. 395.
Atoms, permanent, i. 289.
Atonement, Great Day of, i. 306.
Atropos, i. 442.
Attis, i. 152 ; the, i. 179 ; will I
sing, i. 186.
Atum, i. 130, 132, 134, 135.
Atum-Ptah-Thoth, i. 136.
Augoeides, i. 361.
Augurs, ii. 273, iii. 112.
i.
110, ii. 352 ; quotations from the old Latin version
of, iii. 249.
Aurelian Sun-God, ii. 281.
Augustine,
i.
i.
Baba, i. 329.
Babe, ii. 216.
Babel und Bibel, iii. 179.
Babes, ii. 295 new-born, ii. 296.
Babylonian cultus, i. 379 ; Tal-
mud,
62, 273, 286, 308,
Atlantic Island,
Ba,
15, 40.
160.
ii.
Bacchic caves, i. 453 ; mysteries,
i. 212 ; initiates, i.
191 ; orgies,
296.
359;
91,
that sleepest,
Azazel, Ritual of, i. 306.
Azoth, 1, 281.
Astronomers, iii. 112.
Asuras, iii. 180.
At-one-ment, ii. 50, 190, 371.
Atalanta, i. 446.
Atem-cult, i. 88.
Atf-crown, i. 71, 77.
Athanasius, ii. 72.
Atheism, i. 278.
Atheists,
i.
Awake thou
= Nicolaos,
ii.
80,
iii.
279.
Balaamites, i. 165, ii. 80.
Balance, i. 55, 64, 72, ii. 95, 118.
Balancer, i. 58, 64 ; Judge of the
two Combatant Gods, i. 56.
Baptism, in the Cup, ii. 191
of
light, ii. 255 ; spiritual, ii. 92.
;
Baptist,
Baptize,
Bardic
Barga,
Baris,
John
lore,
Da
i.
the,
i.
470.
87.
ii.
392.
i.
(P. Angelo),
i.
10.
289.
Barley-water,
i. 347.
436, ii. 32, 98, 107,
160, 400, iii. 135, 140, 145;
Exegetica of, ii. 215 ; Hermes
and, ii. 215.
Basilides,
i.
Bastardy, i. 334 ; charge of,
Bath-kol, i. 101, 279, 285.
Bats (simile), i. 161.
Battle, inner,
iii.
ii.
51.
6.
Baudissin (Count), i. 123.
Baumgarten-Crusius, i. 13, 24.
Bear,
i.
176, 295, 422,
51, 130, 131
Bears, ii. 62.
Little,
ii.
101,
iii.
51.
iii.
Beast, i. 398.
Beasts, Great, i. 424, 425.
Beautiful, the, ii. 113, 114, 118;
Vision of the, iii. 15, 53.
335
INDEX
Beauty,
ii. 8, 28, iii.
54 ; of the
Gnosis, ii. 123 ; of the Good, ii.
144, 145, 163 ; of the Truth, ii.
121.
Bebi, i. 329.
Bebon, i. 329, 343.
Becanus Goropius, i. 20.
Become iEon, ii. 190 ; all things,
194.
ii.
333.
356.
i.
i.
Beginning,
i.
of philosophy,
197,
i.
276,
iii.
295; Pinaxof, iii. 277.
Bitter Chaos, i. 92, 192 ; matter,
awesome
i.
92 ; path, ii. 362
and, i. 397 ; water, i. 92.
cup of, ii.
Bitterness, i. 92, 153
139
of God, i. 92 ; of Jacob
;
Bbhme,
274.
Behemoth,
108.
ii.
423, 424 ; monster of
the south land, i. 427.
Behnesa
i.
logoi
Oxyrhynchus),
(see
17, 239.
Belly-lust, ii. 112.
Beloved, the, ii. 35.
Belus, iii. 303.
ii.
Benci, i. 9.
Benefactor, i. 320
213.
Beqesu, i. 60.
Bergk, i. 149.
Bernays, ii. 392.
men,
of
ii.
Better One,
ii.
236
340,
the, i.
of the
ii.
291,
193;
of
Veii,
ii.
235.
iii. 282 ; Man Above,
164; Nature, i. 155;
Nature Above, i. 152 Ones, ii.
206; Region, iii. 276, 295;
i.
103.
iii.
22
from
Above,
ii.
of the JEon, iii. 160 ; blind
from, i. 189, iii. 281 ; Chamber
of, i. 75 ; of a Christ, the, ii.
conception and, iii. 68 ;
243
demiurge of, ii. 244 engine of,
essential, ii. 228, 250 ; in
ii. 39
of Horus, i. 75,
God, ii. 226
;
76, 95, ii. 242, iii. 122, 157, 160,
162; of Man, ii. 241 ; mysteries
new, ii. 239,
of a divine, i. 75
240, 250 ; of Osiris, iii. 122
bringing-into, ii.
parent of
232 ; second, i. 79 ; in understanding, ii.
226 ; virgin, ii.
240 ; way of this, ii. 244.
;
my
from birth,
iii.
i.
270.
Bodhisattvas, ii. 45.
Bodies, how composed,
everlasting,
iii.
189
i.
281.
Bliss, ii. 226.
Boat, i. 52, 89 ; Solar,
Bocchoris, i. 272.
Bbckh, i. 107.
189,
ii. 329.
Bodiless,
165.
27.
i.
Biographie GJnfrale,
iii.
107,
159,
celestial,
Bileam (Nico-laus),
iii.
Blessed Land,
i.
Beyond-same, ii. 62.
Bhakti-Marga, ii. 119.
logia,
Bitys-school, iii. 298.
Black dog-ape, i. 88 ; rite,
141, 149, 155.
Black-robed, i. 332.
Blackden, iii. 186.
Blasphemers, ii. 140, 244.
Space, ii. 98.
Blind, Accuser,
294, 297.
Bible of Hellas,
92, 397.
328,
i.
i.
Bitys (see Bitos), i. 197, iii. 294
the prophet, ii. 280, iii. 293.
Bitys-books, iii. 297.
i.
Bestiaries, iii. 112.
Bestower of the Spirit, ii. 231.
Better, i. 333 ; the, ii. 89.
239
Bitos (see Bitys),
234
i.
Begrudgeth,
Birds,
Birth,
Becoming,
Beetle,
Birthday of the Eye of Horus, i.
331 of the Sun's Staff, i. 331.
Birthdays of the Gods, i. 279 ; of
Horus, i. 332.
Bithus of Dyrrachium, iii. 296.
iii.
165
ii.
ii.
133
glory of
30
migration into,
;
88, 128
ii.
the,
65,
ii.
14.
Body,
63
iii.
of
aery, iii. 145
divine, ii. 93
Adam,
281
45
i.
of bliss,
ii.
elements of,
;
encompasses all things,
iii.
200
46; fiery, ii. 151, 154, 171; of
God, ii. 85
of the Great Man,
of
i.
425 ; house of, ii. 321
Jesus, i. 286
the last, ii. 187,
195 of the Law, ii. 44 mixture
soul
of, iii. 199
noetic, ii. 242
and, ii. 124, 130 spirituous, iii.
145, 210 ; subtle, iii. 145, 209
that can never die, ii. 221 times
;
iii.
of transformation, ii.
44 ; type of, iii. 49 ; universal,
ii. 125.
of,
iii.
336
INDEX
Bodying,
iii.
Breath,
31, 36, 38.
Bohnie, Jacob, i. 92.
Boissonade, ii. 38.
of
of Horus, i. 189, 343 ; of the
sea-hawk, i. 189, 343 ; of Typho,
Book of Breathings, i. 65.
Book of the Dead, i. 52, 54,
iii.
Ill
76.
ii.
i.
158.
i.
Brockhaus, i. 35.
Broiled fish, i. 270.
Brother, of the Lord, James,
of
Man,
i.
143
35.
21.
ii.
Brucker, i.
Brugsch, i. 49, 55, 57.
Bubble, i. 390.
Buddha, Gantama the,
Three Bodies of, ii. 44.
Buddhism, Great Vehicle
Buddhist seer, i. 379.
iii.
320
ff.
44.
of, ii.
Budge,
78.
Book of Ostanes, iii. 277.
Book, The Sacred, i. 75.
ii.
235 ; of the
Chaldseans, i. 392, ii. 81 fF., iii.
280, 321 ; preserved from flood,
on the Gnosis, iii. 231 ;
i. 113 ;
Books, canonical,
iii. 293 ; of Hermes, i.
100, 115, 196, 342, 380, iii. 282,
289; of Hermes described by Clem.
of A., iii. 222 ; hieratic, iii. 225 ;
of Isis, iii. 316 ; of Isis and
Horus, i. 481, iii. 208 ; of Isis
to Horus, iii. 316 ; Lord of, i.
53 ; of Manetho, i. 104 ; of
Moses, i. 456, ii. 158 ; of the
Saviour, i. 418 ; of Taautos, ii.
279 ; of Thoth, i. 122, 124 ;
Victim-Sealing, iii. 223, 224.
Bootes, i. 288.
Boreas, iii. 132.
Boundary, ii. 9 ; Great, ii. 35
Horos or, ii. 366 ; of the Spheres,
Hermaie,
195.
Boundless Light,
i.
93
Point, the,
184.
Boutos, i. 288.
Brain, the, i. 162, 169.
Branch, The, i. 227.
Brass, sounding, i. 303.
Bread, distribution of, iii. 224
which the Lord hath given you
to eat, i. 246 ; super- substantial,
;
i.
gift of,
232,
Bringer-of-good,
55, 69,
83, 290 ; flood in the, i. 109 ;
mysteries and the, iii. 186.
Book of Elxai, i. 369.
Book of Enoch, i. 126, 424.
Book of God, i. 467.
Book of the Great Logos according
to the Mystery, i. 166, ii. 96.
" Book of the Living," i. 367.
Book concerning the Logos, ii. 265.
Book of the Master, i, 68, 77,
i.
i.
Brimo, i. 180.
Brimos, i. 180, 314.
189, 343.
ii. 108.
Bonnet,
ii.
199
iii.
God,
Brethren, ii. 50 ; the two Horus,
6Q ; of the Lord, i. 147.
Brick-bat, i. 115.
Bone
i.
86.
Breadth-depth-length-height-ray,
94.
Breasted,
i.
130, 138.
i.
i. 52, 89, 103, 367.
Builder, mind as, ii. 153.
Builder- Souls, iii. 140.
Builders, iii. 139, 140.
Bull-born, i. 311.
Burials of Animals, i. 293, 295
Osiris, i. 295.
Burn living men, i. 355.
Burns his food publicly, i. 270.
Busiris, i. 293, 305.
Buto, i. 315, 347.
Buys Plato, i. 351.
Byblos,
of
284-286.
i.
Oabiri (Kabiri),
i.
127.
Caduceus, i. 61, iii. 232.
Camites, i. 142.
Call thou me not Good, ii. 72.
Called,
i.
147.
Calumniators,
ii. 233, 250,
277, 322.
i. 167.
Cancer, i. 415.
Candalle (Flussas), i. 10.
Cambyses,
Cana of
iii.
317.
i.
Galilee,
Canopus (Canobus), i. 296, 301.
Capitoline Zeus, i. 352.
Carapace, cosmic, ii. 321 ; of darkness, ii. 121 ; of selfhood, ii. 42.
Caravanserai, ii. 283.
Cardamum,
i.
365.
Carpenter, Estlin, i. 468.
Carriers of holy symbols,
Casaubon, i. 21.
Cask, drop from
a,
344.
Catalogue of kings,
Catharms, iii. 210.
Cat,
i.
i.
190.
i.
i,
277.
264.
INDEX
Cave, ii. 126, 128.
Cedrenus, iii. 269.
Celsus,
423;
147,
i.
True
Word
of, ii. 50.
Celts,
350.
i.
Ceremonies, Overseer of the,
iii.
223.
Chalcidius, i. 19, 435, ii. 159.
Chaldgeans, i. 196, 327, ii. 53
Books of the, i. 392, 465, ii. 81
ff., iii.
280, 324; mystery-tradition, i. 138.
Chamber of Birth, i. 75 ; of Flames,
i. 75
of Gold, i. 75.
Chambers, i. 34, iii. 218, 266
;
opinion of, i. 34 f.
Champollion, i. 27.
Chaos, i. 150, 338, 388, 389, ii. 27,
liquid,
102 the bitter, i. 192
;
191.
i.
Character, ii. 244, iii. 179.
Charila, i. 310, 311.
Chariot, celestial, i. 154, iii. 173 ;
of the Powers, i. 238.
Charioteer, i. 429, 430, ii. 270.
Charity, ii. 346.
Charops, i. 303.
Cheiron, iii. 304.
Chemia, i. 263, 309, iii. 158.
Chemmis, i. 282.
Cherubim, i. 238.
Cheyne, i. 468.
Child of the Egg, i. 139 ; of God,
ii. 255.
Child-making,
ii.
68.
Children, likeness of, iii. 89 ; recognition of, iii. 20.
Chnouphis (Chnuphis), i. 92, 477,
ii.
265.
Chnubis,
477.
477, 480, iii. 155, 159.
Choeroboscus, iii. 112.
Choir (choirs) of daimons, ii. 89,
145, 272, 273, iii. 102 ; of Gods,
Chnum,
ii.
i.
i.
Christ-stage of manhood, i. 367,
368.
Christ-state, ii. 93, 243.
Christos, descent of the, i. 90.
Chronicum (Eusebius), i. 20.
Chrysippus, i. 298.
Church, ii. 117 ; virgin, i. 377.
Churning the Ocean, iii. 180.
Chwolsohn, ii. 57.
Cicala, song of, ii. 292.
Cicero, ii. 235.
Circle of the All,
iii. 47 ; of animals,
51 ; Life-producing, iii.
51 ; of Necessity, i. 428 ; of Sun,
iii. 52 ;
of types-of-life, ii. 194,
46,
iii.
227.
Circles, seven,
ii. 76, iii. 47.
Circuit (Eudoxus), i. 269.
Circumambient, i. 300.
Circumterrene, ii. 276.
Cities of Refuge, i. 237.
Citizens, true, i. 221.
City, ii. 109 ; of the Eight, i. 57 ;
of God, i. 235, 245, 246, ii. 256 ;
i.
the
grandest,
235 ;
the
Intelligible,
i
206.
i.
154,
190.
Christ, i. 301 ; a, ii. 174 ; the, i.
160, iii. 324 ; the birth of a, ii.
241, 243; disciples of, i. 290;
garment of, ii. 249 ; of God, ii.
43; "scourge" of,
umphant, ii. 117.
Christ-baptism,
Christ-mystery,
III.
ii.
i.
ii.
93.
198.
173;
tri-
235
i.
the
Little,
293
Civ'il
Wars,
i.
352.
Claudius, i. 119.
Cleanthes, i. 347.
Clement, Second Epistle of, i. 153.
Clement of Alexandria, i. 153, ii.
on the mysteries,
215, 235, 300
on the tradition of the
iii. 150
;
Gnosis, i. 148.
Clementine Homilies, i. 388, ii. 72.
Cleombrotus, iii. 170, 175.
Cloak, hateful, ii. 121.
Closed lips, ye of the, i. 210.
i. 209.
Clotho, i. 442.
Cnossus, iii. 179.
Closet,
Cock,
iii.
162
crowing
of, iii.
161,
162.
Cocks,
Chonouphis, i. 274.
Chrism, the Ineffable,
VOL.
337
325.
Codex JBrucianus, i. 50, 93, ii. 282 ;
Untitled Apocalypse of, ii. 303.
Coffin, i. 287.
Colberg, i. 22.
Colonies of the Athenians, i. 314.
Colony, ii. 354.
Colour, one, i. 391 ; ray-like, i.
i.
224.
of Hermes, i. 112.
i. 104
Combatant Gods, Judge of, i. 53.
Combatants, Two, i. 66.
Columns,
22
;;
INDEX
338
Come unto
Comets,
us,
iii.
ii.
ii. 207 ; matter or, ii.
gaze through Me upon the,
179 ; meaning of, ii. 85
ciples of,
43.
336
52.
Common
hearth, iii. 171 ; reason,
teachers, iii. 287.
Companions of Horus, i. 270, 290 ;
of Odysseus, i. 270.
ii.
Completion-Beginning, i. 74.
Comprehensible Incomprehensibles,
thought
i.
346
184.
Conductor of Souls,
i.
text of the D. V. C.,
282
Coptos,
i.
133, 139 sensible
; sensible image
a sphere, ii. 148 ;
334
i.
ii.
161.
critical
200.
i.
iii
his,
i.
453
Creator,
of the,
God
iii.
i.
the,
256.
51.
iii.
293
Word
254.
i. 51.
Cretan civilisation, i. 149.
Crete, i. 359.
Critias, i. 106.
Criticism, iii. 315.
Crocodile, i. 77, 267, 288, 329,
330, ii. 382 ; sixty eggs, i. 356,
358 ; tongue-less, i. 357.
Crocodilopolis, ii. 382.
iii.
Creatures of Light,
i. 246, 247.
Corporality, ii. 212, 218.
Corpse, sensation's, ii. 121.
Corpus (Hermeticum), original MS.
quires lost from, ii.
of, i. 6 ;
69.
Corruption's chain, ii. 121.
Cory, i. 104, 106, 123.
Cosmogony, Chart of Orphic,
162 ; of Taaut, i. 126.
Cosmoi, Seven, i. 407.
258.
i.
291.
Creator-Word,
335.
Cronus
ii.
Cosmos, ii. 325, 337, 377, iii. 39
Animal-Soul of, i. 353 beautiful,
ii.
147 ; most wise Breath, ii.
118 of Cosmos, i. 91 course of,
ii. 133 ; divine mysteries of, iii.
egg or womb of, i. 451
325
imitator of eternity, ii. 368
second God, ii. 125
good, ii.
358; great body of, ii. 128;
Horus, i. 338
higher, ii. 378
intellect of, ii. 373
intelligible,
i.
146, ii. 167, 194, 275; prin;
of Spirit,
in
Crater, ii. 92 ; astral,
;
Orpheus, Macrobius, and Proclus,
i. 151 ; in Plato, i. 450 ; sidereal
of Father Liber, i. 451 ; vulcanic,
i. 452.
Crates, Visions of, i. 380.
Creation, new, ii. 243 ; of the
world, iii. 117.
Coriander seed,
i.
74, 75.
Gnostic Codex Brucianus,
works, the, ii. 51.
Coptic
ii.
i.
167
ii.
Creation-myths,
71
ii.
of, ii.
Cow-horns,
397.
219,
357
ii.
of, ii.
185
resense-and-
Cowherd, i. 272.
Cradle, Hall of the Child in
208.
ii.
ii.
Covent Garden theory,
Cow, i. 316, 332.
Contemplator, ii. 93.
Continence, ii. 225.
i.
of,
68.
Contemplation, iii. 94.
Contemplative or Theoretic Life,
Conybeare,
paradigm
224.
Cotta, iii. 231.
Counterfeit, iii. 282
Cone-bearing, i. 266.
Configuration of the Element, iii.
276.
Congress, ii. 240.
ii.
Consciousness,
iEonic,
244
Nirvanic, i. 51, ii. 45, 46.
Constancy, ii. 390.
Constantine, ii. 55.
Continuum,
of,
i.
this,
iii.
159.
Consummation, Supreme,
134
ii.
passions
birth
of,
Conception, ii. 390 ; and birth,
68 ; Typhon, i. 304.
Concupiscence, ii. 224.
i.
196
or hylic,
i.
order,
(see Kronos), i. 390, ii. 144,
162, iii. 234; Ammon, i. 127;
Mithriac, i. 400 ; mystery deity,
i. 400.
Cross, i. 286, ii. 367 ; seal of a, iii.
161.
Crosswise, iii. 24, 47.
Crown of lives, i. 71.
Crux ansata, i. 61.
Cry (of Nature), ii. 34.
Cudworth, i. 32.
Cult of ^Esculapius,
Jesus,
Cultores
i.
468;
et
Cul trices
pietatis,
208.
Cumont,
i.
of
138.
ii.
324, 399, 400, 401.
i.
339
INDEX
Cup,
ii.
86,
iii.
273
Darkness,
of Anacreon,
167, 193, 455 ; baptism in the,
ii.
191 ; of bitterness, ii. 139
of Dionysus, i. 452 ; of the
divine draught, i. 245 ; His, iii.
284 ; which I drink, i. 168 ; of
immortality, iii. 205 ; of initiation, ii. 94 ; in which the King
i.
drinketh,
167 ; of Living
i.
Water bubbling- forth,
i.
399
of prudence, i. 454 ; of Tantalus,
ii. 198.
Gupido, ii. 309.
Cure of intellect, ii. 347.
Cutting of wood, i. 293.
Cybele, priests of, i. 169.
Cyclic Gods, ii. 77, 89.
Cyclopaedia of Biblical Literature^
i.
91, 325, 451,
i.
79, 80, 81
carapace
comprehended
not,
it
4, 13,
ii.
121
125
of, ii.
i.
genesis of fire and,
i.
ser197
pent of, ii. 31 ; thrice-unknown,
ii. 25
torment of, ii. 226, 245.
Dawn, Land of Eternal, i. 80
;
New,
96.
iii.
Day of Light, i. 326.
De Eaye, i. 196.
De Horrack, i. 49.
Be Mysteriis, iii. 252.
De Sphcera Barbarica,
407.
i.
Dead, Book of the, i. 52, 54, 69,
judge of the, i. 64
83, 290
prayers for the, i. 78 things, if
raise, i.
ye have eaten, i. 175
resurrection of, ii. 165
373
rising from, i. 173, iii. 163
;
27.
Cyllene, i. 158, 168.
Cylinder, i. 176, 439, iii. 101, 175,
177, 178.
Cymbal, tinkling, i. 303.
Cynocephalus, i. 55, 56, 120.
Cyperus, i. 364.
Cypress, i. 364.
Cyril's Corpus of XV. Books, iii.
251.
Cytherea,
iii.
92.
from graves, the,
shall leap forth
i.
172
sheeted,
161
i.
the,
417,
39, 126, 209 ;
living, ii. 121 ; of the serpent,
ii.
300 ; there is no, ii. 124 ;
ii.
i.
twelve fates
ii.
of,
ii.
249
Way
avenging, i.
Chnum the Good,
91, ii. 15, 40
counterfeit, iii. 281
i.
477
essence of, is activity, ii. 273 ;
i. 84,
evil, i. 355 ; Good,
97,
i.
324, 443
402, ii. 156, 199, 203, 204, 206,
150, 155, 255 ; Good Holy, i.
94 ; mind a, ii. 154, 171 ; selfborn, iii. 120.
Daimon-Chief, iii. 237.
Daimones, ii. 313, 375, iii. 49
choirs of, ii. 89, 272, 273, 277,
Concerning the, ii. 282 ;
iii. 102
hierarchy of, ii. 314 ; Homer on,
incursions of, ii. 277
in
i. 299
Theory of the,
service, ii. 274
i. 298.
Daimonial Energy, ii. 137.
Daimonials, ii. 130.
Daimonic Soul, ii. 229.
Damascius, i. 91, 152, 156, ii. 19,
25, 260.
Damatrios, i. 350.
mystery, iii.
Dark mist, i. 125
149 ; space, ii. 26 ; wisdom, i.
iii.
87, 91.
of,
18.
Death-genius, i. 88.
Deathless Water, ii. 18.
Way
Deathlessness, ii. 128
;
Daimon,
i.
172.
Death,
of,
ii.
39.
Decans,
100,
i.
names of,
iii.
iii.
iii.
54
45
Egyptian
Six-and-thirty,
45, 46.
Deep, Infinite, i. 390.
Deer, form of a, i. 191.
Demon,
Delphi,
307.
i.
256 310; Oracle
i.
Demagogue
of,
i.
i.
349.
431.
305, 318, 345, 350,
Demeter, i.
232 limbs
;
at,
(in Plato),
of,
i.
347
i.
iii.
wanderings
298.
Demi-Gods, i. 106.
Demiurge, i. 130, 457, ii. 33, iii.
of birth, ii. 244 ; of God,
22, 30
the Sun, ii. 269.
iii. 240
Mind, i.
Demiurgic iEon, i. 410
Thought, iii. 56.
137, ii. 35
;
Democritus, i. 323, iii. 297.
Denderah, i. 73, 74, 75.
Deo nubere,
Depth,
i.
i.
216.
409.
Der-el-Bahari,
i.
120.
Descent of the Christos, the, i. 90 ;
from the Head Above, i. 169 of
Kore, i. 350 ; of Man, ii. 34.
;
340
INDEX
Discourse on Sense,
Desert, i. 163.
Desirable, ii. 161
Destiny,
69
iii.
299.
Destruction,
i. 182.
Detailed, ii.
264.
One,
bonds
Way
237
Determination,
Deus Lunus,
i.
ii.
of,
iii.
that leadeth to,
Discourses,
ii.
ii. 357, 358.
166.
Devas, iii. 180.
Deveria, i. 28.
Devil taking form of fisherman,
iii.
164.
Devotee of God,
139.
ii.
Devotees, race of, ii. 241.
Devotion, iii. 238 God-gnosis, ii.
and Gnosis, ii. 114
131, 136
;
Way
of, ii.
119.
289.
Devourer, i.
Devourers of the Unrighteous,
i.
425.
Dharmakaya,
ii.
44, 45.
Diabolus, iii. 238.
Diaconic, i. 300.
Diadochi, i. 102.
Dialogues with Tat,
Diaspora, i. 255.
Diaulos, i. 149.
Didymus,
ii.
Dieterich,
197.
ii.
237.
72.
i.
82,
84,
90,
92,
94,
Dreams and
Diktys, i. 271, 286.
Dinarchus, ii. 236.
Dionysiac rites, i. 256.
Dionysian night-rites, i. 311.
Dionysius (the sculptor), i. 352.
Dionysius iEgeensis, i. 62.
Dionysus, i. 281, 298, 301, 302,
310, 313, 345, 347, 416,
bull-formed, i. 311 ; cup of,
453
gladsome, i. 312 ; ivy of,
i. 452
mysteries of, i. 311
i.
314
relics of, i.
Osiris and, i. 310
312 and Semele, i. 161 Spirit
;
318.
Thrice - Greatest
Disciples
of
Hermes, i. 481.
Disciples of the Christ, i. 290 ; of
God, i. 254 ; of the Logos, i. 243 ;
is, i.
Triad of, i. 476 ; the Twelve, i.
169 of Wisdom, iii. 303.
Discipline of the Priests, iii. 224 ;
;
of Souls,
ii.
347.
ii.
ecstasies,
203
iii.
the
people of, i. 162.
Drexler, i. 115, 166.
Druidical Gnosis, iii. 296.
Diochite, i. 292.
Diocletian, ii. 300.
305,
131, 132.
264.
Disobedient Ones, iii. 143.
Dispensation of all things, ii. 158 ;
of the Universe, ii. 173.
Divider of all, the, i. 236.
Divining, art of, i. 262.
Divinity, Feminine, ii. 32 ; Greatness of. ii. 309 ; Reason of, ii.
311, 318.
Dodecagon, i. 305.
Dodecaschoenus, iii. 155.
Dog, i. 87, 90, 277, 284, 288, 295,
296, 322, 325, 342, 352, 353, 358,
422.
Dog-days, i. 355.
Dog-headed, i. 355 ; ape, i. 55.
Dog-town, i. 354.
Dolphin, iii. 113, 180.
Door, About the Inner, iii. 275 ;
Inner, iii. 274, 280.
Doser, i. 465, iii. 155.
Double, image or, i. 189.
Dove, i. 352.
Dowsing in the Mind, ii. 255.
Dragon, i. 94, 352, 422, iii. 112,
180 ; lower, i. 426.
Dragon-slayer, i. 94.
Drainer of Water, ii. 39.
Draughts, i. 278.
Dream, ii. 222 ; of Scipio, i. 413.
Dream-sight, ii. 130.
ii.
Discourses, Detailed,
254.
Drummond,
Dry,
200.
i.
iii. 66
space,
Preau, i. 10.
Dual Soul, ii. 169.
;
ii.
75, 76.
Du
Dualism,
ii. 31, 115 ff.
Dualistic, ii. 140.
Dualists, Theory of the,
Diimichen, i. 49.
i.
Duncker and Schneidewin,
323.
i.
Duration, ii. 211.
Dwarf, iii. 165.
Dwelling of the Golden One,
Dyad,
i.
143.
i.
75.
275, 414.
Eagle, i. 56, 284, 330, 422, 446, 449,
iii. 133, 180.
Earth, ii. 209, iii. 66, 130, 261 ;
the black, i. 156 ; blood-red, iii.
277
277
fiery,
depths
iii.
of,
277 fleshly, iii.
Let there
i. 413
;
INDEX
iii. 262 ; primal, i. 310
red,
150 ; Sons of God on, i. 233 ;
very earth, iii. 17 ; virgin, iii.
be,
i.
277.
Ebionites,
Ebony,
i.
321.
177.
iii.
Ecstasis,
28,
ii.
61.
iii.
251, ii. 157, 161, 303.
Eden, i. 159 ; brain, i. 187 ; river
of, i. 187.
Edersheim, i. 200.
Efflorescence, iii. 100.
Efflux, God's, iii. 121, 122.
i.
125, 126, 131, 326, 389, 462,
i.
282 Child of, i. 139 ; first, i.
391 God from, i. 392 ; skull-like,
i. 391
sphere or, i. 427 ; throbii,
137
Watchers,
i.
iii.
337
i.
54
95 ;
names
emanation
teachers of
iii.
Greeks, iii.
mysteries,
286
grades of, i. 50 ; philosophy, i.
syncretism
rhetor, ii. 299
28
1000 B.C., i. 135 ; translation
from, iii. 294.
Egyptians, Gospel according to the, i.
doctrine,
150,
153, 242,
ii.
54,
164.
i.
152.
Embalmment, Ritual
of,
i.
460.
Embarking, i. 321.
Embryology, ii. 102.
Embryonic stages of Incarnation
(Pistis Sophia),
362,
Enclistra,
iii.
68.
159,
i.
300, 435,
ii.
237.
iii.
ii.
iii.
174.
93.
Eneyclopddie, (Pauly), i. 26, 33.
Encyclopaedia Britannica, i. 34.
Encyclopsedism, i. 107, 108.
End, i. 315.
Endymion,
of, ii. 98.
Egyptian alphabet,
142,
Elysian state,
Emanation, holy, iii. 121.
Emanations, i. 84.
Emptiness,
Egypt, is body, i. 164; image of
heaven, ii. 351 holy land, i. 70 ;
sacred language of, ii. 280 ; once
sea, i. 317
geographical symbols
of, iii. 186 theosophy of, iii. 323
of Decans,
iii.
i. 59, 160.
Eleusis, i. 178, 179, 180, ii. 171.
Elis, i. 359.
Elohim, Sons of, i. 159.
Elxai, i. 71 ; Booh of, i. 369.
Empedocles,
bing, i. 182.
Egregores, iii.
126.
wisdom
and enmity with,
Elephantine, i. 320, 477.
Eleusinian logos, i. 175 ; mysteries,
369.
i.
Economy,
Energies,
i.
ii.
151.
211, 212,
iii.
37.
Energy, ii. 259 and feeling, iii.
34, 40 ; of God, ii. 160, 178,
;
180, 203.
Enformation according to Gnosis,
ii.
246.
Engine of birth,
ii.
of Justice,
34
universe, iii. 50.
;
39
ii.
cosmic, ii.
41 ; of the
Enoch, Book of, i. 126, 424.
Entrance, i. 321
of the Golden
Heavens, i. 75 ; on Light, i. 79.
;
Egyptians, Greek disciples of, i.
274.
Eight, i. 71 ; at the, ii. 228 ogdoad or, i. 275 ; spheres, ii. 275 ;
wardens, i. 85, 121.
Eight-and-twenty, i. 320.
Eighteen, i. 319.
Eighth, ii. 16 ; sphere, ii. 42 ff.
El-Khargeh Oasis, iii. 216.
El Shaddai, i. 159.
Elder Horus, i. 279, 280, 334, 343,
;
367.
Eldest of
Elect,
311.
i.
Element, Configuration of the, iii.
276 the One, ii. 195, 244.
Elements of body, iii. 200 complaint of, iii. 118 ; four, ii. 311
friendship
133.
87.
i.
Eclipses,
Ecliptic,
38,
Eleians,
Earth-and- Water, ii. 5, 8, 37.
Earth-born, ii. 49 ; folk, ii. 122.
Ebers Papyrus, i. 50.
Egg,
341
i.
all
147,
Angels,
ii.
117.
i.
198.
Envy,
224.
Epachthe, i. 350.
Epaphos, i. 314.
Epeius, i. 446.
Epicurus, i. 323.
ii.
Epimetheus, iii. 274, 280, 282.
Epiphanius, ii. 79.
Epiphany, Feast of, iii. 160.
Epiphi, i. 331.
Epopt, ii. 93, iii. 188.
Epopteia, i. 263, ii. 21, iii. 159.
Epoptic, i. 362 ; mystery, i. 362.
Equator, iii. 177.
INDEX
342
Equilateral triangle, i. 305, 359.
Equilibrium, i. 56.
Er, "Vision of, i. 413, 426, 428,
437, ii. 15, 40, 187.
Erataoth, i. 422.
Erdmann,
i.
32.
Evoi, i. 186.
Excerpts from Theodotus, ii. 251.
Executioner, mind the, ii. 201.
Exegetica of Basilides, ii. 215.
Exhalation, iii. 206.
Existing Non-existences, i. 184.
125.
Eros, i. 125, ii. 309, 345.
Error, ii. 224.
Esaldaios, i. 159, 166.
Experience and memory, iii. 195.
Expository Sermons, ii. 250, 264,
iii. 54 ; to Tat, iii. 216, 256, 257,
Eschenbach,
Eye, altogether
Erebus,
i.
i.
259, 262, 263, 264, 266.
62.
first, iii.
Essence, ii. 269, iii. 84
of God, ii. 113, 199 ; in55
moist,
telligible, ii. 276, iii. 57
i. 187, 388,
390, 454, ii. 4, 75 ;
one, i. 391 ; primal, iii. 56 ; of
;
156.
Essence-chief, ii. 341.
Essenes, i. 30, 208, 369, 373, ii.
395.
Essential, iii. 236 ; birth, the, ii.
250 ; man, ii. 116, 251, 321.
Eternity, ii. 325, 366 ; Mon, i. 229,
seed,
i.
91 ; become, ii. 188 ; cosmos
of eternity, i.
imitator of, 368
moving image of, i. 405
91
illumined by Logos, i.
399 ;
maker of, i. 66 ; prince of, i. 132.
Etesian Winds, i. 316.
Ether, i. 125.
Etheric double, iii. 206 ; link, iii.
206.
iii.
Ethiopia (see ^Ethiopia), i. 98.
Ethiopian, i. 88 ; enchanters,
i.
Eucharist,
ii.
Eudoxus,
i.
(see
Eunomus the
106.
94.
269,
332, 343, 345.
Euhemerus
i.
274,
293,
Evemerus),
ii.
305,
162.
Locrian, ii. 300.
Eunuch, business of, i. 186.
Euphrates, i. 188; waters of the,
i. 426.
Euripides, i. 323, 352, 357.
Eusebius, i. 20, 123, 370.
Eustathius, i. 172.
Eve, iii. 280.
Eve, Gospel of, i. 142, ii. 24, 25,
238.
Evemerus (see Euhemerus), i. 257,
296, 297 theory of, i. 295.
Everard, i. 12.
239 ;
Evil angels, ii. 355, iii.
create, i. 91 ; Daimon, i. 355 ;
pleroma of, ii. 113.
;
i.
ii.
Ezekiel, Hebrew poet, i. 164.
Ezekiel, i. 154, 227, 379 ; Mercabah, or Chariot of, i. 238 ; Wheels
of, iii. 173.
Fabricius,
5,
i.
263.
ii.
Face, i. 433 ; of God, i. 218.
Fairbanks, i. 159.
Famine Years, Inscription of the
Seven, i. 466.
Famines, plagues and, iii. 49."
Farrar, ii. 55.
Fast to the world,
ii.
239.
Fate (see Heimarmene),
domad
385
iii.
of, ii.
7,
ii.
201,
61, 85, 265 ; heb251 ; and necessity,
procession of, ii. 49, iii.
273, 282, 326 ; providence and,
iii. 36, 55, 60 ; Sermons on, ii.
217.
Fate-Sphere, ii. 41, 282, 283.
Fates, i. 439.
Father of the seons, i. 411 ; Alone
Good, ii. 283 ; who is in the
Hidden, i. 209 House of the, i.
224 ; own, iii. 242.
ii.
Ethiopian History,
all,
165; heart's,
iii.
202, 273,
119.
214
apple
of
121
Horus, i. 336 House of, i. 288
iucorporeal, iii. 253
of intellect,
of mind, ii. 253 ; pupil
ii. 308
of,
Pupil of the
i.
84, 394
World's, iii. 159 ; of the soul, iii.
i.
129 ; spiritual,
214.
of,
Father-God,
Fatherhood,
ii.
i.
6.
150;
of
God,
i.
73.
Fatherless,
iii.
242.
Fawn-skin, i. 191, 311.
Fecund, iii. 254, 269.
Feeling, energy and, iii. 34.
Fellow-rulers of height, ii. 302.
Fence of fire, i. 427 ; of iniquity,
427 ; of the teeth, i. 162.
Ferment, i. 125, 396.
Fever, iii. 115.
i.
INDEX
Few, the,
i.
207,
346,
ii.
Ficinio, Marsiglio,
iii.
in
Fiery body, ii. 154, 171 ; ruler,
166 ; whirlwinds, i. 409.
Fifth part, a, ii. 318.
Fifty-six-angled,
Fig-leaf, i. 312.
Figs, i. 349.
i.
Flood,
11.
8, 9, 19.
i.
194
Foresight,
or layers,
iii.
Firmicus Maternus, i. 477.
i. 391 ; essence, iii. 55
God, i. 339, iii. 85 ; Hermes, ii.
83 ; man, i. 115, 139, ii. 27 ;
cube (Poseidon), i. 275 ; woman,
First, egg,
139,
ii.
27.
First-born God, ii. 203; His, i.
227 of water, i. 398.
Fish, broiled, i. 270 ; cosmic, ii.
great, i. 425 ; taboos, i
56
269.
Fish-eater (Oannes), i. 149.
Fisher-soul, i. 271.
Fishers, i. 59, 61 ; of men, i. 59,
372.
Fishes, i. 373.
Five, i. 336; branched, i. 266,
;
285
curii,
Fifths, the,
i.
203
Mer-
109.
i.
Five-branched, nor from, i. 265.
Flame, i. 457 ; rite of the, i. 93.
Flame-coloured robe, i. 331.
Flames, Chamber of, i. 75 ; Region
of,
i.
Foreknowledge,
51.
iii.
iii.
317
i.
86.
iii.
5.
12, 58, 96.
262.
Forethought, ii. 12, 39, iii. 22, 280.
Forgiveness of sins, i. 251.
Form, ii. 9 ; archetypal, ii. 6, 8, 9,
29 ; distinctive, ii. 244 ;
of
divine similitude, ii. 319 ; one,
ii. 35 ; root of, ii. 193 ; servant's,
i.
211.
i.
Food, twofold form of, ii.
forms of, ii. 317 ; of Gods,
iii.
i.
264
317
i.
the,
Forebears, ii. 329, 381, 382,
Forefather, iii. 21, 98, 292.
Firmaments,
ii.
He who in
169, 170; of
Nile, ii. 83 ; those of the, i. 154.
Flower of Fire, iii. 138.
263,
83, iii. 154, 276
the Dead, i. 109
preserved from the, i. 113
106,
habiteth
Finger on lips, i. 349.
Fire, ii. 310
fence of, i. 427 very
fire, iii. 17 ; flower of, iii. 138
knowing, iii. 98 ; and mind,
God of, i. 130 ordeal of, i. 79
robe of, ii. 152 ; and snow, i. 95
sons of, iii. 136
sphere of, i.
428
voice of, ii. 5, 26 ; and
water, iii. 66.
Fire-tenders, iii. 199.
Fire-tree, ii. 317.
Fire- workers, iii. 199.
Firmament, iii. 262,
water above, i. 188.
i.
Booh of
books
in Egypt,
i.
305.
343
398,
Formless state,
ii.
31, 45.
Formlessness, iii. 27.
Fornication, iii. 166.
Fornicator, ii. 202.
Fortune, ii. 341.
Fount of Light, i. 74.
Four, i. 337, ii. 65 ; elements,
311 ; quarters, i. 93 sets of,
328 ; winds, i. 60, 61, 84.
Fourteen pieces, i. 288, 320.
;
Fourth Gospel from
Gnostics,
i. 194.
i.
38
ii.
Alexandrine
quotations from,
Fourth state, i. 152.
Foxes have holes, iii.
Fragrance, force
ii.
35.
394.
158. .
From Thee to Thee, ii. 231, 254.
Fruit, Perfect, i. 182.
Fruitful, i. 177.
Frazer,
of,
i.
i.
Fulgentius, iii. 305.
Fullness, iii. 325 ; of Godhead,
117.
Furies,
i.
Gabriel,
i.
ii.
327.
422,
iii.
211.
Galaxy, i. 416.
Galen, i. 100.
Mount
Flask of clay,
Galilee,
Flautists,
ii.
Fleas,
Flesh,
51.
Ganges, Heavenly, i. 110.
Garamas, i. 149.
Gardener of Life, ii. 140.
Gardthausen, i. 113.
Garment, celestial, i. 399
of the
Christ, ii. 249 ; of shame, i. 153,
iii.
i. 190.
289.
refraining
tongue
from,
31.
Fleshless meal, ii. 390.
Flies, iii. 51, 133, 190.
of, ii.
Flock, sacred,
i.
226, 238.
i.
267
of, ii.
238.
242,
ii.
42.
344
INDEX
Garments, twelve sacramental stoles
182.
Garrucci, ii. 56.
or,
;;
iii.
Gate, guardian of the, i. 428 ; of
heaven, i. 181, ii. 240 ; which
Jacob saw, i. 171 ; mystery at
third, i. 190 ; True, i. 190.
Gate-keeper, i. 311.
Gates of Celestial Nile, i. 71 ; of
Gnosis, ii. 123 ; of Oblivion and
Wailing, i. 303 ; of the Sun, i.
162.
Gautama the Buddha,
317.
iii.
Gaze into the Light, i. 93 through
Me upon the Cosmos, ii. 179.
Genera, ii. 313 ff. restorer of all,
ii. 310 ; and species, ii. 378.
General, i. 296 ; instruction, ii.
236 Sermons, the, ii. 141, 145,
;
158,
308.
219,
236, 264,
45, 77,
iii.
Sabsean,
140; end of science,
ii.
147 ; seers of, ii. 94 ; Sethian,
i. 393 ; Simonian, ii. 107 ; of teachings, ii. 257 ; they who are in, ii.
of truth, i. 207
131, 137, 138
of Trismegistic documents, iii.
Unchristianised, iii. 323 ;
323
virtue of soul, ii. 167 ; way of, ii.
ii.
Generated Ingenerables,
184.
i.
Generation, i. 333.
Generative Law, the,
Geneses of Souls,
i. 191.
260.
ii.
26 of the
all, i.
and darkness,
i, 197
ground of, i. 337 matter's
becoming or, ii. 177
moist
and seed of
essence of, i. 170
all the gods, iii. 273
soul is
vase of,
cause of all in, i. 151
iii. 26
wheel of, i. 426, ii. 274,
Genesis,
148, 177,
406 ; of fire
ii.
iii.
mystic, iii.
sacred lands, iii. 184.
Gephyrgeans, i. 350.
Geryones, i. 147, 166.
130
of
Gnostic,
nias,
i.
i.
elements in HerFew, the, i. 382
250, ii. 348 ; Jottings,
377
376
Glories,
Horos, i.
things seen in the mysteries,
165 ; house of, i. 79
171 robe of, i. 361,
Glossalaly, i. 303.
ii.
Glosses,
i.
of,
43.
342.
Glow-Yforms,
Hermeticism
ii.
296
archaic,
iii.
322
beauty of, ii. 123 books on, iii.
231 Christianised, iii. 320 devotion joined with, ii. 114; of
things divine, iii. 233 ; of divinity,
;
ii.
another
192.
139
ii.
of piety,
5.
of,
i.
229
all-pure,
239
all,
212
ii.
295
iii.
apostles
artificer of time, i.
ii.
beyond
all names, ii. 99 ;
ii.
226; body of, ii.
85 Book of, i. 467 ; born in, ii.
244
born from rock, i. 95
breath of, i. 232, ii. 76; with
bull's foot, i. 311 ; as cause, ii.
66 celestial Messiah of, i. 226
child of, ii. 255 ; city of, i. 235,
245, 246, ii. 256 contemplator of
works of, iii. 245 cosmos, second,
ii.
125 ; creator, iii. 293
cupbearer of, i. 245 ; demiurge of, iii.
240 devotee of, ii. 131, 139 disciples of, i. 254
efHux of, iii.
122, 162 from egg, i. 392 energy
birth in,
;
391.
i.
Gnosis, i. 192, ii. 14, 17, 20, 90,
97, 131, 146, 246, iii. 76 ; of the
all,
for,
Goat-herd, i. 175.
ii.
358 ; is
king
ii.
i.
name
God,
258
80, 96.
75, 261 ; of celestial bodies,
iii.
150, 156.
iii.
i.
ii.
Goal of Gnosis,
Gibbon, i. 23.
Gift, God's greatest, ii. 95.
Gigantic Passions, i. 298.
Globe, winged, i. 390.
98.
Gnosticism,
283.
Geography,
Glory,
ii. 330 ; Druidical, iii.
296 enformation according to, ii. 246 ;
gate of, iii. 318 ; gates of, ii. 120,
123 ; goal of, ii. 139 ; of God, i.
147, ii. 150, 225, iii. 243, 326
of the Good, ii. 113, 144, 163
of Thrice -greatest Hermes, iii.
316 Introduction to the, ii. 68 ;
of joy, ii. 225 ; Judsso- Egyptian,
i. 31
to Klea concerning the, i.
261 ; light of, ii. 155 love of, iii.
260 Magian, iii. 296 ; of Man, i.
masters of, ii.
147, 178, iii. 323
162
ma thesis or, ii. 264 ; of
Mind, ii. 88, 96 ; apotheosis of
Mind, ii. 167 ; Ophite systems of,
bepath of, ii. 98, 195
i.
98
ginning of the Path, ii. 248 ;
prayerfor, ii. 49; pupil of, ii. 135 ;
INDEX
160, 178, 180, 203 ; essence
113, 199 ; essentiality of,
ii. 199 ; eye of, i. 247, ii. 312 ;
face of, i. 218 ; father, ii. 67 ;
fatherhood of, i. 73 ; of fire and
of,
ii.
of,
ii.
mind, i. 130;
85 first-born,
first,
ii.
339,
i.
203
gift
iii.
of,
gnosis of, i. 147, ii.
150, 225, iii. 243, 329 ; and
Gods, ii. 67 ; Good, ii. 240 ; is
good, ii. 66 ; Good is, ii. 110,
112; the Good of, ii. 189;
greatness of, ii. 244 ; herald of,
ii. 95 ; house of, i. 171, 181, ii.
240 ; ignorance of, ii. 120
image of, i. 232, 236, ii. 91, 92,
two images
100, iii. 236, 244
ii.
87, 95
of, ii.
326
ineffability of,
iii.
14,
knower of
294
Laughter, Son
of,
law
iii.
195
220
light of, i. 232
likeness with,
ii. 132
love of, ii. 323 lyre of,
ii. 292
Man of, i. 411 Mind is,
iii. 305 ; imperishable Mind, iii.
113 musician, ii. 288 mysteries
of, i. 213
mystery of, Son of, i.
226 ; name of, i. 198, 234, ii.
one and
344, iii. 293 one, i. 53
sole, iii. 266 ; organ of will of,
ii.
133 Osiris, a dark, iii. 156
place of, i. 233,
oracle of, i. 250
race of, i.
ii. 71
primal, i. 135
;
253 race, friend of, i. 233 ray
of, ii. 275
rays of, ii. 155 river
of, i. 244
from rock, i. 392,
399 sacrifice to, iii. 243 second,
i.
230, ii. 127, 170, 320, 365;
seeds of, ii. 131, 137; seer of,
sense-and- thought of, ii.
iii. 298
servant,
sensible, ii. 311
135
servants of, i. 212, 220
i. 251
i.
shepherd,
shadow of, i. 236
son of, i. 138, 157, 198,
226
216
true,
of,
inner,
ii.
97, 196
ii.
i.
345
280 ; way to worship, ii. 212,
243 ; who lookest behind
thee, i. 59
will of, ii. 160, 220,
wisdom of, ii. 176.
395, iii. 195
ii.
iii.
132, 133, 135.
God-gnosis, ii. 88, 93, 138, iii. 238 ;
devotion is, ii. 131, 136.
God-the-Mind, male and female,
God-circle,
ii.
7.
God- words,
i. 134.
Goddess-of-child-bed-town,
Godhead, fullness
Godlessness,
Gods,
choir
spirit of,
ii.
81
is spirit, ii.
71
beyond
228
ununderstanding, iii. 229
way of
wearied spirit, ii. 290
birth in, ii. 223, 244 ; way up to,
two temples
of,
i.
206
of,
i.
279
creation of,
iii.
Going-forth, the,
Going-home,
ii.
ii.
246.
98.
Gold, Chamber of, i. 75 heavenly
flame of Burning, i. 75.
Golden age, iii. 135 ; calf, i. 316 ;
hawk, i. 76 ; heaven of Isis, i.
75 ; Horus, i. 76 ; One, Dwelling
;
of,
75.
i.
Good,
175
163
211
Beauty
Daimon,
402,
Son
88,
ii.
of,
All and, ii.
144, 145,
ii.
i.
84, 92, 94, 97,
156, 199, 203, 204, 206,
iii. 151, 155, 255 ; Daimon,
ii.
gnosis
of, ii.
355.
i.
117.
cyclic, ii. 77, 89 ; duty of,
272 Egyptians don't mourn
if they believe in, i. 351 ; food
of, i. 86 ; genesis and seed of all,
iii.
273 ; great, i. 127, 347 ;
hymn of, iii. 91 ; inerrant, ii.
lan145 ; intelligible, iii. 25
guage of, ii. 279, iii. 323 ; immortal men, ii. 213 mother of,
i. 152, 176 ; mountain of, i. 244
;
On the, iii. 289 path up to, ii.
169, 299 ; proscription of worship
of, i. 399
scribe of, i. 53
scribe
of the nine, i. 50 six-and-thirty,
iii.
star-flocks of, i. 373
49
super-cosmic, ii. 373 ; way-ofbirth of, ii. 242 ye are, i. 163.
105
ii.
332 ; sons of, i.
sons of,
198, 229, iii. 217, 316
in Hellenistic theology, iii. 218
sower,
sons of the one, i. 234
sphere of, ii. 230
220
ii.
song
birthdays
of, ii.
213
of, ii.
200.
ii.
145
ii.
226, ii. 28, 116, 118, 133, 140,
221, 222, 241, iii. 239, 275, 280,
282
i.
f.,
of,
i.
104
efllux of,
i.
361
113, 144, 163 ; God,
ii. 240 ; is God, ii. 110, 112 ; of
God, ii. 189 ; good- will of, iii.
241 ; husbandman, ii. 213, 265 ;
imperfect, i. 320 ; Itself, iii. 293 ;
law, iii. 8 ; Logos, i. 333 ; mind,
ii. 127,
155, 156 ; news, i. 141
path of the, ii. 190 ; own path
of, ii. 189, 196, iii. 330 ; perfect,
i. 205 ; physician, i. 461, ii. 213
;
of, ii.
INDEX
346
pleroma
i.
of,
37, 373,
261
iii.
vision
of,
117
ii.
52
ii.
shepherd,
213;
ff.,
threshold of,
119, 143.
spirit,
ii.
97
ii.
Good-Doer, i. 320.
Goodness, i. 215.
Gordian, ii. 198.
Goropius Becanus, i. 20.
According
Gospel, iii. 135
;
to the
Egyptians, i. 38, 142, 150, 153,
242, ii. 54, 164
of Em, i. 85,
142, ii. 24, 25, 238 ; fragment of
a lost, i. 153 According to the
Hebrews, ii. 238 ; of Osiris, i.
;
367 ; of Perfection, i. 142 ; of
Philip, i. 142 ; proem to the
fourth, ii. 371 ; quotations from
the fourth, i. 194 ; According to
Thomas, i. 142, 155, iii. 37.
Gourd-tree, ii. 56.
Grace, ii. 20.
Grand Master,
ii.
300.
Grasshoppers, ii. 292.
Grave, three days in the, i. 71.
Graves, dead shall leap forth from,
172.
Great Announcement,
184,
i.
ii.
70, 170, 317.
299
ii. 169, iii.
beasts, i. 424
425
body of Cosmos, ii. 128 boundcreator, Light,
ary, ii. 29, 35
i. 71,
79 ; fish, i. 425 Gods, i.
127, 347 ; Green, i. 84, 92, 94,
131, 132, 176, 424, iii. 154;
heart, i. 131 ignorance, iii. 140
Jordan, i. 163 ;
initiator, ii. 21
King's viceroy, i. 226 ; likeness,
and little man, ii. 23
ii. 164
Man, i. 60, ii. 40,
lives, ii. 128
56 ; Man from Above, i. 150
Man, Body of, i. 425; Mind,
ii.
213 ; Mother, mysteries of
Mysteries, the, i.
the, i. 186
Name, i.
185, 217, 362, ii. 240
93 ; Ocean, i. 171, ii. 92 Power,
i.
184 ; Ptah, the, i. 130, 135 ;
Pyramid, i. 69 saying, iL 234
27,
sea, iii. 163 ; serpent, ii.
Vehicle of
snake, ii. 26
35
Buddhism, ii. 44; work, iii.
317, 329 ; year, iii. 290.
Great, art divine,
heast,
i.
i. 53, 88, 118 ff.
Grihastha Ashrama, ii. 73.
Griffith,
Ground of
Genesis,
337.
i.
Grudging, ii. 86, 108.
Guardian of the Gate,
Guards of the whole,
Guile,
23.
Granger, i. 36 ff., 260, ii. 50;
theory of, ii. 51.
Grasshopper, story of Pythic, ii.
i.
Greater deaths, greater lots, i. 180.
Greatness, ii. 187, 222, 244, 344 ;
a, i. 185 ; of divinity, ii. 309 ;
of God, ii. 244.
Greatnesses, i. 165, ii. 28.
Greek, disciples of Egyptians, i.
286 ; names in foreign
274,
languages, i. 342 philosophizing,
ii. 267, 281
wisdom, i. 193.
Greeks, Protrepticus, or Exhortation
to the, ii. 300.
Green, Great, i. 92, 94, 132, 176,
424, iii. 154 ; tree, i. 266.
Grenfell and Hunt, i. 93.
Grief, ii. 224, iii. 42.
i.
iii.
428.
48.
224.
ii.
Gymnosophists,
i.
208.
Habit, ii. 41.
Habitat of excarnate
souls,
iii.
210.
Hades,
i. 302, 305,
325, 327, 342,
350, 362, 453, ii. 337, 338;
vision of, i. 223 ; visit to, i.
380 ; way of salvation from, i.
152.
Hadrian, i. 195.
Haf, i. 462.
Haggadist, ii. 239.
Haimos,
169.
i.
Hall of the Altar, i. 74 ; of the
Child in his Cradle, i. 74, 75 ;
of the Golden Rays, i. 75.
Halm,
56.
iii. 101, 117.
or soma-plant, i. 325.
Harbour of good things, i. 293
salvation, ii. 123.
i.
Hands,
Haoma
Hardadaf,
of
467.
Fabricius, i. 23.
i. 174, iii. 166.
Harmonic canon, iii. 176.
Harmony, i. 323, ii. 9, 10, 15, 16,
39, 41, 89, iii. 63, 64, 66, 67, 74,
80, 86 ; heavenly, ii. 253 ; true,
ii. 251 ; of wisdom, i. 237.
Harnack, i. 469, ii. 55.
Harles,
Harlot,
i.
i.
Harnebeschenis (see Arnebeschenis),
i.
76,
iii.
209.
Harper, story
of,
ii.
291.
INDEX
Harpocrates,
291, 346, 349,
i.
ii.
265.
i.
Hating,
Hawk,
i.
115
ii.
429
i.
ii.
95.
353, 355,
golden, i. 76.
Above, descent from,
;
Head-born,
359.
Healer, Asclepius the, i. 467.
Health, iii. 203 ; of soul, ii. 257.
Hearer, i. 185, 292, ii. 255.
Heart, iii. 75 ; appetite and, iii.
78 ; eyes of, ii. 121 ; great, i.
131 ; of Ra, i. 53 ; of silence,
i. 73 ; and tongue, i. 136.
Hearth, common, iii. 171 ; of universe, iii. 172.
Heather-bush, i. 284.
Heather-tree, i. 284.
i.
Heaven, beauty
earth
of,
iii.
contrasted,
Egypt image
181,
queen
ii.
of,
160
411,
i.
ii.
240,
of, iii.
ocean,
iii.
94
iii.
351 ;
157
and
10 ;
gate of,
9,
iii.
;
Isis,
law of, iii. 62 ;
154 ; pole-lords
power to travel
176
through, ii. 197 ; seven fortunes
i.
of,
176; song of, ii. 384;
sphere-like, i. 390 ; Thee I adthird, i. 166, 173
jure, iii. 269
tongues of, ii. 32 ; voices from, i.
323 ; war in, iii. 118.
Heaven-born, ii. 162.
of,
i.
Heaven- walkers, i. 101.
Heavenly bodies, iii. 301 ; chariot,
flame of burning gold,
iii. 173
Ganges, i. 110 ; harmony,
i. 75
;
horn, i. 167, 193, 453 ;
Jerusalem, i. 74 ; Man, ii. 102,
ii.
iii.
253
277; Nile,
iii.
158;
Word
proceeding forth, iii. 254.
Heavens, Entrance of the Golden,
i. 75 ; kingdom of, i. 185 ; kingship of, i. 167, ii. 43 ; overseers
sound of, i. 161.
of, i. 126
Hebdomad, Athena, i. 275 ; celestial, i. 422 ; of Fate, ii. 251 ;
Ophite, i. 421.
:
Hebrew
384,
(Fate),
Hekekyan Bey,
Helen,
275, 341,
ii.
273.
iii.
111.
i.
147.
Heliopolis, i. 103.
i.
Heliopolitan theology,
169.
i.
i.
Heimarmene
of body,
56, 329, 330,
i.
133, 181
Head,
the,
i. 268, 274, 472.
322, 352.
Hedgehogs, i. 325.
Heh, i. 407.
Height of Cosmos to Depths of
Earth, i. 413.
Hecate,
fish,
iii.
to
238.
Hecatseus,
179.
i. 308.
Hateful cloak, ii. 121.
Hathor, i. 74, 316.
Hate
Hebrews, Gospel according
ii.
Harpocratians, i. 147.
Harris Papyrus, i. 131.
Harrison (Jane E.), i. 310.
Hatch,
347
influence,
ii.
38, 81.
i. 135.
Helios, i. 278.
Hellanicus, i. 310.
Hellas, Bible of, i. 193; wisdom
of, 186.
Hellenistic, myth of Anthropos, i.
143 ; theology, i. 200, 202, 218,
255.
Hemisphere, upper,
Hemlock juice,
Hep-Tep,
i.
148
who
61,
i.
men
271.
74.
Hephgestus,
iii.
ii.
179.
i.
is, iii.
of,
130, 307, 347,
iii.
183; Ptah
96.
Hera, i. 305, 307.
Heracleian stone,
i. 189.
Heracleides, i. 301.
Heracleitus, i. 302, 323, 327, 361
sayings of, ii. 213.
Heracles, i. 303, 318, 319.
Heracleon, i. 39.
Herald, ii. 86 ; of God,
Herb-knowers,
Herba medica,
Hercules,
of,
i.
ii.
95.
111.
293.
iii.
i.
myth
of,
i.
147
noose
61.
Hermseus, i. 314, 320.
Hermaica, iii. 252.
Hermaic, books, iii. 293 doctrines,
iii.
292 ; writings, ii. 169, iii.
;
297.
Hermanubis, i. 342.
Hermaphrodites, ii. 37.
Hermas, Apocalyptic,
i.
378 ;
Gnostic elements in, i.
376 ;
higher criticism of, i. 370 : name
of, i. 374 ; Old Latin version of,
i. 378 ; Pastoral, i. 370 ; Shepherd
of, i 369, ii. 238, 248, iii. 319
shepherd of, ii. 229, 232.
Hermeneutic, i. 300.
Hermes, i, 278, 295, 319, 334, ii.
38, iii. 234; (I.), ii. 83, iii. 147,
;
348
INDEX
152
i. 104, iii. 152
(III.),
Alchemical literature, i.
5.; all-knowing, iii. 95
apophthegm of, iii. 88 Arab tradition,
Hierarchies, ii. 276, 314, 340, 342.
Hieratic, iii. 276 ; books, iii. 225.
Hieroglyphics, i. 134, 276, 277, 312,
330.
and Asclepius, apotheosis
of, iii. 222
and Asclepius, sons
of God, iii. 217
and Basilides,
Hierophants,
iii.
(II.),
303
i.
215 beloved son of Zeus, i.
122; books of, 115, 196, 342,
380, iii. 282,
289; books of
described by Clem, of A., iii. 222
city of, i. 87 ; columns or pillars
of, i. 112
first natural philosopher, iii. 237 ; gnosis of, iii.
316 the Gnostic, iii. 320 ; grade
of, ii. 250 ; great-and-great, i.
117 inspirer, iii. 286; inventions
of, i. 5 Kriophoros, ii. 52 ; Logius,
ii. 54 ; Logos, i. 158 ; master of
all physics, iii. 226 ; mind of, iii.
260
monuments of, i. 113 ;
prior to Moses, i. 19
Paut of, i.
263 prayer of, i. 402 ; prayers,
i. 82
a race or being, iii. 135 ;
religion of, i. 82
rod of, i. 61,
160, 161 ; scriptures of, iii. 227 ;
spell of, iii. 97 ; suppliant of, ii.
236 ; teacher of reincarnation, iii.
227
ten-thousand-times-great,
iii. 276 ; Thoth the first, i. 104
writer of scripture, iii. 227
Word who brings tidings from
God, iii. 217.
Hermes-city, i. 329.
ii.
Hermeses and Asclepiuses, many,
iii.
221.
Hermetic tradition, origins of
iii.
the,
233.
Hermippus de Astrologia Dialogus,
iii.
270.
Hermodotus,
i.
298.
i.
342.
Hesiod,
265, 300, 338, 389.
305.
Hesychius, i. 100, 269.
Het-Abtit, House of the Net,
Hexads, ii. 117.
Hexsemeron, iii. 117.
128 ; of Shepherd of Hernias,
370.
Hilaria, i. 152.
Hildebrand, ii. 307, 392.
Hilgenfeld, i. 370.
Hilgers, i. 25 ; theory of, i. 369.
i.
i.
Hippocrates, i. 155.
Hippolytus, i. 94; Conclusion of,
i. 186 ; and the divulging of the
Mysteries, i. 140; Philosoph-
umena
of,
140.
i.
Hippopotamus,
Hoeffer,
i.
Hoffmann
i.
i.
329, 330, 427.
27.
(G.),
i.
33
(S. F.
W.),
9.
Holiness,
Song
of, ii.
Holy, Holy, Holy,
50.
19.
ii.
Homer, i. 309, 318, 327, 330, 388 ;
on daimones, i. 299
nodding,
;
the good, i. 196.
Homilies, Clementine,
i.
388,
ii.
72.
Honey, i. 349, 364.
Honey-brew, i. 347.
Honey-clover, i. 284, 315.
Hor, Son of the Negress, i. 88
Son of Pa-neshe, i. 119.
Horapollo, i. 48, 55, 56, 408.
Horizon, i. 74, 332 ; of Light, i. 75.
Horizoned, i. 335.
Horn, the, i. 190 ; of Men, i. 166 ;
of one-horned bull, i. 187.
Horoeus, i. 427.
Horos or Boundary, ii. 366 Great
Boundary, ii. 29 ; Gnostic, i.
250, ii. 348 ; Mighty Power, ii.
33.
Heru-p-Khart, i. 346.
Heru-ur. i. 279.
Hestia,
i.
Hermopolis, i. 56, ii. 382.
Heru-Behutet, i. 57.
Heru-em-Anpu,
i.
210,
211 ;
of
212.
Hierosolymus, i. 307.
Higher Criticism of Pcemandres,
mysteries,
'i.
Horoscopes, ii. 193, 341.
Horse, i. 290.
Horses, i. 430 yoke of, i. 430.
Horus, i. 53, 63, 77, 88, 92, 94,
132, 133, 136,
334,
ii.
51 ;
bastardy suit against, i. 291
birth of, i. 75, 76, 95, iii. 122,
157, 160, 162, 242
birthday of
Eye of, i. 331 ; Birthdays of, i.
332 ; bone of, i. 189, 343 ; how
born, i. 315; Books of Isis and, iii.
208 Books of Isis to, iii. 313 ;
;
i.
i.
58.
Hezekiah, ii. 232.^
Hibbert Journal, ii. 71.
Hidden mystery in silence, the, i.
167 ; Places, House of the, i. 68.
INDEX
brethren, i. 66 ; companions of,
i. 270, 290 ; is cosmos surrounding earth, i. 321 ; cosmos that is,
cutting up into pieces of,
i. 338
i.
291 ; elder, i. 279, 280, 334,
343, 346, 367 ; eye of, i. 336 ;
gold- miner, iii. 209 ; golden, i.
76 ; Isis to, iii. 87 ; questions of
;
290 and Set, i. 56,
white, i. 296 ; worshippers
57
the younger, i. 291.
of, i. 147
Hour, i. 72, 266.
House, ii. 117
of body, ii. 321
of virginity,
of the eye, i. 288
i.
218
of Father, i. 224
of
of God, i. 171, 181,
glory, i. 79
Hidden
Places,
i.
ii. 240
of
68
of Net, i. 58
of Osiris, i. 79
Osiris to,
i.
robber in thy,
Hu-siris,
Humanists,
17, 18
i.
Husbandman,
263
ii.
MSS., i. 8.
Achaab, ii.
265 good, ii. 213, 265.
Hyades, i. 161.
Hye Kye, i. 160.
i.
161, 310.
"Holy
Thou,"
art
19;
ii.
for
evening prayer,
ii. 252
of Re-birth, ii. 229
to
of Yalentinus,
the Sun, ii. 253
for
ii.
284.
Hymnody, secret, ii. 230
Hymns, Orphic, ii. 235.
f.
Hyparxis, ii. 269.
Hysterema, ii. 239.
120.
Illumination, i. 241, ii. 255 ; degrees of, iii. 208.
Image, ii. 35, 368 ; divine, i. 235 ;
or double, i. 89 ; of God, i. 232,
ii.
91, 92, 100, iii. 236, 244;
His, i. 233 ; after His, ii. 125 ;
of,
ii.
image of,
Images,
i. 235; of the One, ii. 118.
adoration of,
ii.
286 ;
ii.
381.
Imhotep, i. 459.
Immisch, i. 169.
Immortality, ii. 210 ; cup
draught of,
iii.
205
iii.
am
thou,
85, 87, 89,
i.
I-em-Hetep,
Ialdabaoth,
Iao,
i.
i.
i.
ii.
24.
457.
139, 159, 422.
411.
Iao Zeesar,
191.
Iamblichus (see Jamblichus).
Iatromathematici, i. 471.
Ibis, i. 48, 54 ff., 87, 353,
symbolism
of,
i.
358.
Inaction,
ii.
Inbreathing,
ii.
178.
iii.
194
of universe,
254.
Incantations, i. 88.
Incarnation, iii. 145 ; embryonic
stages of (Pistis Sophia), iii. 68.
Incarnations of Thoth, i. 463.
Incense, i. 363.
Increase and multiply, i. 37, ii. 12,
38, 82.
India, i. 208, 303,
Raj in, i. 354.
ii.
197
British
Indian, ii. 353 ; wisdom, ii. 198.
Indians, ii. 401.
Induced Days, i. 279, 280.
Inexpressible man, i. 170.
Inferi, ii. 338.
Initiates, the Bacchic, i. 191 ; of
Isis, i. 263
Orphic, i. 95, 191.
Initiation,
iii.
323 ;
"in the
black," i. 91; Cup of, ii. 94;
into Divine Mysteries, i. 208 ;
doctrines of, i. 73
final, ii. 43 ;
hall, i. 179 ; Isis a grade of, iii.
in the
208 ; mount of, ii. 238
sacred rites, iii. 257 ; of Tat, iii.
313; temples of, i. 74; theurgic
:
355;
iii.
163
163.
i.
of,
Impression of a seal, i. 215, 395.
Impulses, ii. 204.
Imuth-brotherhood, iii. 148.
Imuth-Asclepius, i. 466.
ii.
120 ; great, iii. 140 ; mystery of,
ii. 25
sea of, ii. 123
way out
of, ii. 237
web of, ii. 121 wine
philtre of,
Hyle, i. 151, 389.
Hylic animal, ii. 63 ; cosmic, ii.
319 Mind, i. 452 ; Nous, i. 416.
Hymn of the iEons, ii. 43 to AllGod, ii. 108
to Amen-Ra, i.
131
to Attis, ii. 56 ; of the
Four, ii. 389 ; of the Gods, iii.
91
to Jupiter Ammon, i. 149
Orphic, iii.
Naassene, ii. 109
269 of Osiris and Isis, iii. 124,
146 ; of Praise, ii. 49 of Praise
morning and
Idea, i. 336. ii. 185.
Ieou, First Book of, i. 172.
Iexai, ii. 242.
Ignorance, ii. 146, 246 ; of God,
Hyes (Hues),
Ibis-headed moon-god, i. 47.
Icheneumon, i. 356, 436.
sacred,
121.
ii.
310.
i.
349
rite of,
ii.
255.
350
INDEX
Initiations, iii. 171 ; of the Assyrians, i. 151 ; Therapeut, i. 251.
Initiator, iii. 251 ; Great, ii. 21 ;
Thoth
Ink,
the,
i.
149.
Inn or caravanserai, ii. 283.
Inner, doctrine of the mystery-institutions, i. 141 ; Door, i. 157,
iii.
the,
iii.
way,
274, 280
275, 295 ;
101.
i.
Door, About
man, iii. 277 ;
Iniquity, Fence of, i. 427.
Insufficiency, ii. 174, 241, 245.
Intef, Stele of, i. 138.
Intellect of Cosmos, ii. 373
eye of,
ii. 308.
Intellectual Light, iii. 257, 268.
Intelligible cosmos, i. 146, ii. 167,
194, 273, 275, 286 ; essence, ii.
model, i. 241.
276, iii. 57
Intemperance, ii. 224.
Interception, i. 319.
Intercourse of souls, ii. 314.
Interpreter, i. 158.
Intf, i. 467.
Intoxication, i. 414.
Invention, iii. 98.
Inventor of philosophy, i. 138.
Invert himself, ii. 243.
Invocation, of the powers, ii. 249 ;
theurgic rite of, ii. 245.
Io, i. 314.
Irenseus, i. 139, ii. 27.
Iris, i. 292.
Isaac, i. 217, 220, 221.
;
Isaiah,
ii.
232
The Ascension
of,
ii. 232.
Iseion, i. 263.
Ishon, iii. 165.
Isia, i. 341.
Isis,
i.
beheading
iii.
316
i.
291
books of
Horus and, i. 481 ; feminine
principle of Nature,
i.
333
Golden Heaven of, i. 75 ; hastening, i. 340 ; to Horus, iii. 87 ;
house of, iii. 163 ; true initiate
of, i. 256, 263 ; grade of initiation, iii. 208 ; Intercession of,
iii.
87; from "knowledge," i.
341 ; Lady, iii. 155 ; mysteries
of, i.
155, iii. 182; and Osiris,
texts and translations of Plutarch
on, i. 259 ; Queen of Heaven, iii.
160; robe of, i. 62, 264.
;
of,
of,
303
ii.
;
seeing,
i.
198.
Israelitismus, i. 124.
Italy, iii. 131.
Ithakesian Island men,
Ithyphallus, i. 158.
Jackal, i. 87.
Jacob, i. 217
Jamblichus,
dream
i.
112,
i.
270.
i. 223.
169, 280,
of,
ii.
iii.
285.
James, Brother of the Lord, i. 143,
147 ; the Just, i. 148 ; John, and
Peter,
475.
i.
Janus, i. 59.
Japanese, the, ii. 302.
Jennings, Hargrave, i. 12.
Jeremiah, i. 178, 217.
Jerusalem, i. 246 ; Above,
183,
245,
Below,
Jeschu,
i.
ii.
42,
251,
163,
i.
iii.
100;
178.
335, ii. 239.
i.
Jeschu (Jesus), i. 165.
Jeschu ha-Notzri, i. 270.
Jesus, i. 147; body of, i. 286;
cult of, ii. 138
the living one,
i.
93 ; logoi of, iii. 246 ; Sisters
;
of,
i.
147.
Jesus Christ, spiritual oblations
through, ii. 254 ; through, ii.
255.
Jesus (Joshua),
i.
164.
Jivanmukta, ii. 167.
Jnana-Marga, ii. 119.
Johannine document,
i.
63, 279, 332, 346, 349, 373,
30
books
ii.
ingathering of,
the myths of, i. 202
Israel,
71.
iii.
270,
Isis-Righteousness, i. 85.
Isis-Sophia, iii. 134.
sources
of,
195.
John, Acts of, ii. 55, 238.
John, the Baptist, i. 470.
Jonah, ii. 56.
Jordan, Great, i. 163.
Joseph, i. 220.
Josephus, i. 103, 113, 114.
Jothor, i. 164.
Joy, i. 220, ii. 346 ; grief and,
iii.
42 ; lord of, i. 74 ; religion
of,
i.
73.
Judseo-Egyptian gnosis, i. 31.
Judseus and Hierosolymus, i. 307.
Judge, of two combatant Gods, i.
of the dead, i. 64.
53
Judges, statues of, i. 276.
Judgment, i. 79 ; scene, i. 55.
;
Judgments
of value,
iii.
317.
351
INDEX
Julian, the Emperor, i. 113, iii.
303.
Juniper, i. 364, 365.
Jupiter, i. 416, 418, 419.
Jupiter Amnion, Hymn to, i. 149.
Just, the, i. 70, 79, 156.
Justice, i. 359, iii. 58, 243 ; engine
Justification,
Justified,
Ka,
i.
i.
79.
71,
iii.
Knife,
320.
89, 97, 132,
i.
134, 280,
133,
287.
Kabalah, i. 281.
Kabeiros, i. 149.
463,
iii. 151.
277.
Knowledge, vehicle of, i. 49.
Kopto, i. 283.
Koptos, i. 305.
Kore, i. 59, 151, 318, iii.
Descent of, i. 350.
Koreion, i. 403, iii. 161.
263.
i.
Kingsford and Maitland, i. 15.
Kingship of Heavens, i. 167, ii. 43.
to, i. 276.
Klea, i. 260, 264, 310
Kneph, i. 295.
Kneph-Kamephis,
of, ii. 41.
Justice (Maat),
and escort of souls of, iii. 127 ;
presidents of common weal and
peace, ii. 293 ; successions of, i.
315.
ii.
Kabiri (Cabiri), Seven,
127,
i.
i.
Korybantes
ii.
161
Corybantes),
(see
i.
149.
279.
Kakodaimon, i. 448.
Kamephis, iii. 107, 149, 159, 167.
Karma, instrument of, iii. 116.
Karmic, agents, ii. 282 ; scales,
Teller of the,
Kastor, i. 306.
i.
72
wheel,
ii.
Korybas, i. 169.
Koshas, ii. 168.
Kriophoros, ii. 54.
Kroll,
83.
Kathopanishad, ii. 168, 317.
Kaulakau, i. 165, ii. 80.
Kenyon,
i.
Khaibit,
i.
82, 86, 117.
76 t 89.
Khamuas, Tales
of,
118,
i.
281,
100, 101.
Cronus), i. 151, 278,
298, 307, 322, 350 ; that is,
Ammon, ii. 279 ; whether blest
child of, i. 185 ; sacred dirge on,
i. 30 ; tears of, i. 308.
Kuphi, i. 332, 364, 366.
Kuretes, i. 149.
i.
Kronos
(see
380.
Khat,
Labyrinth of
89.
i.
Khemennu,
53, 56, 58, 65
eighth city," i. 120.
Khepera,
Khmun,
Khu,
i.
i.
i.
i.
"the
191.
King, Ambassador of the, i. 250 ;
Ammon, i. 77, ii. 280 ; Correspondence of Asclepius with the,
ii. 278 ; of glory, i. 171 ; God as
shepherd and, i. 226 the highest, ii. 293
The Perfect Sermon
to the, ii. 266, 281 ; Praising of
the very statues of
the, ii. 294
the, ii. 298
the true, ii. 302.
King (L. W.). i. 61, 328, 344, 348.
;
iii.
144.
Kingdom
of the Heavens, the, i.
185 ; within man, i. 155.
Kingdoms, doivnfalls of, iii. 48.
Kings, iii. Ill, 126 ; Catalogue of,
i. 277 ; divine, i. 106 ; encomium
of,
ii.
299
eulogy
glorious fame
of, ii.
i.
Words,
89.
King-soul,
i.
ills, i.
of,
292
ii.
;
298
guard
;
191.
352.
442.
Ladder, of Being,
357.
119, 120.
Kid, thou hast fallen into the milk,
i.
Lachares,
Lachesis,
ii.
165
239.
Lady, of heart and tongue,
of all wisdom, iii. 208.
Lagides, i. 99.
Lake Mareotis, ii. 403.
Lame, i. 334.
of the
i.
iii.
208
Lamp-magic, i. 92.
Land, Black, iii. 158 ; Blessed, iii.
282; of Eternal Dawn, i. 80;
flowing with milk and honey, ii.
251 of the Living, i. 50, 51
Seriadic, i.
of the Lord, ii. 251
;
110ff.
114.
Lang, Andrew, i. 258.
Language, of Gods, ii. 279
Word,
i.
Larks, i. 356.
Lauchert, i. 56.
Laughter, i. 221
iii.
of the
54.
seven peals
of,
137.
Law, body
of, ii.
191; of God,
44 generative,
195; good, iii.
iii.
i.
8.
; ;
INDEX
352
Laws, of Lycurgus,
ii.
ii.
235
238
sacred,
235.
Laya,
260.
Layers, iii. 194.
Laying-on of hands,
Lazarel, Loys, i. 10.
ii.
Light-giver,
246
i.
Lily,
ii.
28,
278.
iii.
i.
29.
ii.
iii.
11.
77.
i.
Limbs,
346.
415.
375
i.
veil,
i.
religion
Light-word, ii. 5.
and unlike,
Like, ii. 90
Likeness (see Image).
82, 84, 90.
i.
75
i.
179.
Light-God, i. 473.
Light-man, iii. 279.
Light-spark, i. 395,
167.
Leemans,
Lentils,
of,
revealer of,
Light-Darkness,
242.
Lazarus, i. 71.
Lead, i. 282.
Leading Forth, i. 164.
Leah, i. 217.
Leaven hid in three measures of
i.
73
i.
treasure of,
29, 31.
ii.
flour,
chamber
of,
387,
ii.
iii.
277.
Leo, i.
Leontocephale, la divinite, i. 399.
Lepsius, i. 49, 69.
Lethe, Plain of, i. 447 ; River of,
Linen, i. 71, 265 ; cloth, i. 71.
Linus, i. 293 ; song of, i. 293.
Lion, i. 56, 90, 290, 314, 422, 446,
416, 452.
Leto, i. 315.
Letronne, i. 107, 117.
Leviathan, i. 267, 423, 424.
Liberation, ii. 167.
Library, i. 102 ; Alexandrian, i.
of Egyptian
catalogue
197
priestly, iii. 225 ; of Osymandias,
i. 50
of priesthood of Ra, i. 103 ;
at Thebes, i. 465.
Libya, Mount of, ii. 382.
Libyan Hill, ii. 360, 402.
Life, ii. 184 ; circle of types of, ii.
194 ; gardener of, ii. 133, 140 ;
and Light, ii. 13, 14, 20, 226,
231, iii. 325 ; lord of, i. 132 ;
place of, ii. 133 plastic, iii. 210
Lionardo of Pistoja,
449,
i.
(see
Beh-
ii.
24,
116,
239,
Logoi, Behnesa,
ii.
17,
239
234
Logos,
406
79.
Life-giving one,
292.
268; and life
77 Logos is,
manifestation to, iii. 160
i. 231
mountain of, ii.
moist, i, 391
iii.
;
257,
lily of,
i.
171
362
68,
i.
;
Book
disciples
(see life)
iii.
of,
activity,"
i.
iii.
Mori the,
concerning,
" cause of
iii.
Life-producing circle, iii. 51.
Lift up the gates, i. 170.
Light, all-seeing, ii. 253 ; baptism
of, ii. 255 ; boundless, i. 93
creatures of, i. 51 ; day of, i. 326 ;
entrance on, i. 79 ; exhaling his,
fount of, i. 74 gnosis
iii. 279
of, ii. 155 ; of God, i. 232 ; the
great creator, i. 71, 79 ; horizon
of, i. 75 ; hymn, i. 94 ; intellectual,
i.
of Jesus,
or logia, ii. 234.
Logoklopia, iii. 323.
ideas,
power,
Oxyrhynchus
209,
ii.
nesa),
255.
46
8.
plenitude of, ii. 208 shame of, i.
242 i theoretic, ii. 163 ; tree of,
types of, ii. 245 ; way of,
i. 428
well of, i.
i.
182, ii. 15, 40, 41
iii.
i.
181.
Lionesses,
Lions, iii. 112 ; mouths, i. 314.
Lipsius, ii. 108.
Liquid Chaos, i. 191.
Littre, i. 155.
Living, Book of the, i. 367 ; death,
ii.
121 ; land of the, i. 50, 51 ;
mother of the, i. 163 ; one, i. 93 ;
water, i.
stones, ii. 254, 256
188, 190.
Locust, iii. 133, 356.
Logia, bible of, ii. 236 ; logoi or,
iii.
180.
iii.
ii.
ii.
i.
and
246
239,
265
254
243 ; Eternity
399 ; Good, i.
Image of
158
illumined by, i.
333 ; Hermes, i.
God, i. 232 ; Life and Light, i.
231 race of, ii. 18, 241 sophiaspermatic
i.
aspect of,
49 ;
essence of, i. 390 ; spiritual sun,
Thoth as, i. 63, 90.
i. 241
;
Logos-Demiurge, i. 135.
Logos -doctrine, i. 51.
Logos-Mediator, i. 249.
Longing, ii. 346.
Lord, of books, i. 53 ; Brethren of,
i.
147 of divine words, i. 53
of joy, i. 74 ; of all knowledge, i.
;
INDEX
55
i.
land of the, ii. 251 ; of life,
132 of moist nature, i. 161 ;
Malice,
Mammon,
184.
127, 157, 321, 325, 326 ;
Above, i. 149, 197 ; Adamas, i.
73
word
of,
Man,
6.
ii.
iii.
245
named
East,
227
i.
116, 251, 319, 321 ;
first, i. 115, 139, ii. 27, iii. 295 ;
gnosis of, i. 147, 178, iii. 323 ;
great, ii. 23, 40, 56 ; heavenly,
ii. 102, iii. 277
inexpressible, i.
170 ; inner, iii. 277 ; of light, iii.
after
ii.
likeness,
281 ;
277
material, ii. 132 ; of mighty
names, i. 146, ii. 109, 254; a
essential,
ii.
92.
i.
i.
an
of, ii.
Loves, the, iii. 95.
Lowrie, ii. 55. v -
Lucian, i. 158.
Lycopolitans,
iii.
9,
appearance, iii. 21 ;
241 brother of, ii.
35 ; celestial, ii. 37 ; cosmic, ii.
12, 116, 382 ; daring of, iii. 114
descent of, ii. 34 ; dual nature of,
;
birth
Lychnomancy,
ii.
148
Loreto, i. 469.
Lost sheep, the, i. 191.
Lotus, i. 347, 458.
Lourdes, i. 469.
Love, i. 77, 125, 338, ii. 12, 39, iii.
259 birth of, i. 338 of gnosis,
iii. 260 ; divine, ii. 94, 309, 346,
iii.
260 ; Himself, ii. 297 ; and
necessity, iii. 110, 264 ; pure, ii.
332 ; single, ii. 330.
;
224.
ii.
Malkander, i. 285.
Mambres, iii. 283.
of palingenesis, i. 50
of rebirth,
i.
50
of time, i. 76 ; of two
lands, i. 134 ; of unseen world,
i.
353
305.
Lycurgus, i. 274 laws
Lydus, i. 403, 404, ii.
;
235.
342, 361,
of, ii.
385.
Lyre, Pythagoreans used,
strings, i. 335.
Lysippus, i. 298.
i.
366
mighty wonder, ii. 315
the
mind, iii. 280
mind-led, ii.
203 ; mystery of, i. 141 ; new,
ii. 43 ; one, ii. 222, 244
original,
i.
168
Phos, iii. 279
Plato's
definition of, i. 433 ; principles
;
149 ; second, i. 139, ii. 27 ;
shall not live by bread alone, i.
248 ; son of, i. 160, ii. 43, 138 ;
sons of one, i. 197, 234 ; substantial, ii. 132 ; size of thumb,
iii. 165;
Thv, ii. 232; true, i.
228 ; of truth, figure of, iii. 277 ;
twofold, ii. 319 ; typal, i. 168.
of, ii.
Maasse, i. 418.
Maat, i. 52, 64, 89, 99, 458.
M'Clintock, i. 27.
M'Lennan,
i.
Macrobius
on
353.
Soul," i. 413.
Macroprosopus,
Madiam,
Magi,
i.
" Descent
ii.
the
iii.
182,
282.
164.
207, 326,
i.
of
ii.
170,
Man-mystery, the,
Man-Shepherd, ii.
277.
Magian
gnosis,
Magic,
iii.
papyri,
Magica,
ii.
iii.
275
iii.
;
296.
formulae,
i.
50
Making-new- again,
ii.
33.
VOL.
III.
i.
15.
5,
ii.
10, 12,
14, 15,
6,
/Shdstra,
ii.
73.
Maneros, i. 287, 288, 293, 294.
Manes, i. 297.
Manetho, i. 99 if., 103, 273, iii.
Beloved of
289, 302, 329, 355
Thoth, i. 102 ff.
books of, i.
104 ; Sothis of, i. 117, 121 trans;
lation activity of,
ii.
280.
of,
i.
368.
Manic,
75, 83, 128.
Malalas, iii. 269.
Male-female, i. 146, 152,
198.
Mangey, i. 200.
Manhood, christ-stage
44.
Maia, iii. 251.
Maitland, Kingsford and,
Making-manifest, ii. 99.
i.
3,
17, 18, 19, 52.
Mdnava Dharma
252.
296.
Magna Mater Mysteries, i. 179.
Magnet, i. 189, ii. 91.
Maha-vakyam, ii. 234.
Mahdbhdrata, ii. 235, 242.
Mahayana, ii. 44.
Mahdydna-shraddhotpdda - shdstra,
ii.
Man-after-His-Likeness, i. 198, 234.
Man-doctrine, i. 138, 193, 197.
297.
246.
Mansoul, Siege of, iii. 187.
Mantra-vidya, i. 64, iii. 274.
Mantrah, i. 64, 365.
Manna,
i.
i.
23
367,
INDEX
354
Maim,
Many,
ii.
with,
Mayin,
107.
i. 400.
Mazdes, i. 297.
Means, i. 338.
Measure, six-and-fiftieth
112.
i.
Manvantara,
Avoid converse
unknowing, ii. 250.
131, 308
11
iii.
Many-named, i. 184.
Maps of the world, iii.
185, 187.
Marcella, Porphyry's Letter to,
260.
Marcellus, i. 106.
Marcion, ii. 72.
Marcus, Gnostic,
Marduk,
Measurer, the great,
i.
the,
Meinian, i. 273.
Meinis, i. 272.
Melchizedec, i. 127,
of,
Melilote,
i.
8,
i.
Martial,
i.
108.
ii.
71 ; Magdalene, i. 147
Concerning the Offspring of, i.
142 ; Questions of, i. 142.
Masdesin, i. 297.
Mason, Master, i. 466.
Maspero, i. 130.
Mass, ii. 269.
Master, of the All, i. 409 Booh of
;
245
466
78; of feast, i.
Mason, i.
23
of the
of masters, iii. 317
68,
i.
ii.
iii.
of,
iii.
103
fourfold,
181
root of,
Maya,
i.
is one,
ii.
324.
26.
106
ff.
blend
of, ii. 177
cosmos, ii. 336 ;
;
i.
166
Menelaos,
389 ; by itself, ii.
pure, ii. 7
ii. 118
ii.
Menander
ii.
becoming
278
first,
of, ii. 213
37 fishers of, i. 59, 372 of
Hephaestus, iii. 183 burn living,
nourishgods, iii. 136
i. 355
ment of, i. 133 perfect, ii. 87,
sacred or typical, iii. 138
97
seven, ii. 11 ; Shepherd of, i.
ii.
ii.
;
acts
Menard, views
Mendes, i. 320
Mene, iii. 91.
212, 218.
Mathematici, i. 292, 336; theory
of, i. 318.
Mathesis, i. 262, ii. 264, 372, iii. 5.
Matter, i. 225, 276, 334, 336, 338,
339, 389, 390, 415, 451, ii. 125,
176, 210, 211, 241, 269, 332,
333, 335, 343, iii. 26, 66, 226,
Materiality,
i.
231.
heavenly horn
of,
i.
167, 455.
wheels, iii. 120.
Master-architect, i. 48.
Masterhood, ii. 47,
Mastery, i. 80.
Mastich, i. 365.
195; restored,
Men, benefactor
Men,
iii.
372, 375,
77,
grand,
50.
ii. 221.
105, 292, 293, 347,
460 ; brazen gates at, i. 303 ;
Ptah-priests of, i. 135.
and,
Memphis,
i.
the,
211.
iii.
Memoirs of the Apostles, i. 195.
Memory, i. 433, ii. 397 experience
71, 147.
116.
Martyrdom of Peter
Mary,
127.
i.
284.
i. 135.
Memnon, i. 96.
Memnonium, i.
opinion
19.
i.
Martha,
Thoth,
i.
Members,
68, 81.
i.
Medinet Habu, i. 463.
Megaloi Theoi (see Cabiri),
Marsiglio Ficino,
53
i.
66.
i.
Mediator, i. 58, 325.
Medici, Cosimo, i. 8.
Mareotis, Lake, ii. 403.
Mariam, the sought-for, i. 164.
Mariamne, i. 143, 147, 301.
Marriage, with right reason, i. 223
sacred, i. 182, 216, 224, ii. 96,
137, 173, 240, 241, iii. 156, 157,
319.
Mars,"i. 416, 418, 419.
Marsham Adams,
i.
Medes, i. 196.
Median, i. 197.
276.
iii.
even,
305.
60.
i.
ii.
Mazdseans,
137.
iii.
Menander,
;
i.
351.
27 ff.
goat at, i. 356.
of,
i.
i. 296.
iii. 173 ; or Chariot of
Ezekiel, i. 238 ; vision of, i.
154.
Merciful (Potency), i. 237.
Mercury, i. 417, 418, 419.
Mercy-seat, i. 238.
Merriment, ii. 346.
Mesopotamia, i. 171.
Mesore, i. 349.
Mesotes, ii. 251.
Messala, i. 403, 407.
Messiah-ites, i. 190.
Metamorphoses, i. 150 ; of soul, ii.
163.
Mercabah,
INDEX
Metempsychosis,
ii.
164, 166, iii.
110, 142, 228; concerning,
i. 429 ; Plotinus on, i. 434.
Methyer, i. 337.
Meyer, ii. 300.
Michael, i. 422, iii. 211.
26,
Middle Way,
Midst,
96.
ii.
316.
ii.
Mighty Power,
ii.
29, 33.
Migration into other bodies,
329
Milky* Way, i. 414.
ii.
Miller, i. 140.
Million, i. 407.
Min, i. 337.
Mind, ii. 6, 86 All-father, ii. 8 ;
born in, ii. 221 ; as builder, ii.
153 counterpart of, ii. 40 cup
of, ii. 242 ; a daimon, ii. 154,
demiurgic, i. 137, ii. 35 ;
171
door-keeper, ii. 14 dowsing in,
eye of, ii. 228, 230, 253
ii. 255
;
gnosis of,
apotheosis
95
gnosis
of, ii. 167 ; good, ii.
imperishable, iii.
127, 155, 156
88,
ii.
113
great, ii. 213
hylic, i.
452 joy of, ii. 230 ; judge, ii.
201 man, iii. 280 ; of all masterhood, ii. 3, 4, 229
of mind, iii.
257 of my own mind, iii. 104 ;
pilot, ii. 201
pure, ii. 324, iii.
292
religion of, i. 91, ii. 401,
iii. 316 ; of universals, i. 225.
Mind-consciousness, ii. 239.
Mind-led man, ii. 203.
;
Minerva Mundi,
Ministers,
iii.
iii.
93.
50.
Minoides Mynas,
Minos, i. 149.
Mint, i. 293.
i.
140.
Minutoli, i. 465.
Mirrors, ii. 285.
Mist, dark, i. 125.
Mithras, i. 325, iii. 181.
Mithriac, Mon, i. 399 Cronus, i.
400 ; mysteries, i. 290, iii. 180 ;
mystery- tradition, i. 95.
Mithriaca, i. 173, 179, 182, ii. 276,
iii. 181.
Mixture, iii. 102.
Mnaseas, i. 314.
Mnevis, i. 272, 309.
;
Mbhler,
i.
25.
Moirogenesis, i. 465.
Moist, i. 309, iii. Q6 ; essence, i.
170, 187, 388, 390, 454, ii. 4, 75 ;
355
i.
391 ; nature, i. 151,
310, 312, 313, ii. 4, 5, 13, 26.
Moistened, i. 161.
Moistener, i. 161, 279.
Moisture, i. 313.
Moly, i. 325.
Momos, iii. 115, 116, 142, 182;
speech of, iii. 113.
Monad, i. 359, 395, 404, 414, 456,
light,
90
One,
ii.
from the
i. 275
pleroma, i. 405
Apollo,
291
iii.
quintessence, i. 403.
Monastery, i. 209, iii. 93.
Montanus, ii. 292.
Montet, i. 387,
Moon, i. 319, 321, 332, 417, 419,
ii. 180, 312.
Moon-God Thoth,
Morning,
i.
Infinite,
i.
72.
80.
Moses, ii. 38 ; Archangelie Book of,
i. 197 ; Books of, i. 456, ii. 158 ;
companions
Book
of,
i.
Eighth
244
hierophant
;
197, 411
and prophet, i. 247.
of, i.
Mot
(see Mut), i. 125, 126.
Mother, of Gods, i. 152, 176 Holy
of living, i. 163
Spirit, ii. 238
own, iii. 242 wisdom, i. 224
;
womb
of great,
Mother-iEon,
iii.
324.
163.
Mother-city, best, i. 237.
Motion,
ii.
61.
ii.
Mount, of Arcadia,
140
375
ii.
238
Athos,
of Galilee, ii. 238 ; holy,
of initiation, ii. 238 ; of
i.
;
Olives, ii. 54 ; Passing o'er the,
ii.
171 ; of perfection, ii. 24
i.
Tabor, ii. 238 ; way up to, ii.
150, 171 ; wending up, ii. 219,
237 ; mountain, i. 377 ; of light,
238 ;
234
Mozley, i.
Mukti, ii.
Secret
ii,
ii.
Sermon on,
i.
56,
top of, ii. 237.
34 on poles, i. 176.
;
167.
Mulberry-tree,
i.
284.
Mulberry-wood, tables
of, iii.
216.
104, 117.
Miiller (0.), i. 107, 123.
Mummification, iii. 123.
Mummy, i. 71.
Miiller,
i.
Muratorian Fragment, i. 378.
Murderer, ii. 202.
Muses, i. 280, 287, ii. 323 ; the
nine or ennead, i. 85 ; prophets
of the,
Museum,
ii.
i.
292.
102.
356
INDEX
Music,
Naas,
324, 331.
ii.
Music-maker, ii. 290, 291.
Musician, God, ii. 288 ; the,
Mustard
seed,
Mut
Mot),
(see
i.
i.
ii.
291.
247.
337.
iii.
Anthropos251 ;
theory of, i. 193 ; of Assyrians,
i. 155
Bacchic or Corybantic, i.
below, the, iii. 94
and
212
Book of the Dead, iii. 186 ; of
Dionysus, i. 311
Eleusinian, i.
the Great, i. 217, 362, ii.
59
of Great Mother, i. 186 ;
240
hierophants of, i. 212 Hippolytus
and divulging of, i. 140
most
holy, i. 221
ineffable, i. 210
Lesser, i. 180,
of Isis, iii. 182
of light and
ii.
159, 214, 240
birth, i.
divine
Magna
75
Mithriac, i. 290,
Mater, i. 179
iii. 180
On the, iii. 285 punishment for revealing, i. 213 ; of
of regeneration,
purity, i. 154
ii. 240
scribe of, iii. 223
of
solemn life, i. 209
of godlike
Mysteries,
;
207.
Mysterious black, iii. 158.
Mystery, of birth from virgin womb,
ii. 240 ;
of blessed bliss, i. 154 ;
Booh of the Great Logos according
to,
i.
166 ; dark, iii. 149 ; of
deity, i. 225 ; deity, Cronus, i.
400 ; epoptic, i. 178 ; at third
gate, i. 190 ; of Heavenly Man,
226 ; of ignorance, ii. 25 ; of
i.
man, i. 141 ; of repentance, ii.
245 ; ritual in Acts of John, i.
182, 183 ; of sameness, ii. 241 ;
of Samothracians, i.
168 ; of
virgin-birth, i. 211.
iii.
Mystery- institutions,
327 ;
inner doctrine of, i. 141.
virtues,
i.
Mystery-myth, the, i. 278 ff.
Mystery-play of all time, i. 377.
Mystes, i. 210, ii. 93, iii. 188.
Mystic, ii. 240, iii. 184 enclosure,
eucharist, ii. 94
images,
i. 179
spectacle, iii. 107.
i. 207
Mystical god-blending, i. 156.
Mysticism, practical, iii. 325, 326.
treatment
Myths, of Plato, i. 109
;
of,
i.
201.
200
i.
332, 364, 366.
i.
187, 192.
142.
Naassene
Myer, Qabbalah of, i. 281.
Myriad-eyed, i. 184.
Myrrh,
i.
Naassene Document, i. 92, 390, ii.
analysis of,
54, 91, iii. 280, 282
under-meaning
of,
i.
Hymn,
109.
ii.
Naassenes, i. 141.
Naasseni, i. 146.
Nai, i. 294.
Nakdimon, Rabbi,
ii. 239.
211, 213, 373, 374.
Name, i. 85, ii. 343 ; authentic, ii.
252 of God, i. 198, 234, ii. 344,
iii. 293
ogdoad, ii. 252.
Name-maker, iii. 276.
Names, i. 352 of power, ii. 279 ;
energetic speech of, ii. 267.
Naos, i. 187.
Nature, iii. 25 Arise blessed, i
Naked,
i.
155 ; by-products of, iii. 52
contemplators of, i. 206 ; fairest
part of, ii. 348, 350 moist, i.
;
151, 161, 310, 312, 313,
13,
26
original,
4,
ii.
155
i.
5,
pro-
ductive,
Q6 ; seven-robed, i.
156 vaporous, iii. 209.
Naughtiness, superfluity of, i. 451.
Naumann, History of Music of i.
iii.
294.
Nazorenes, i. 369.
Nebris, fawn-skin,
i.
Necessity,
ii.
264
i.
101,
191.
211,
iii.
61,
daughters
of, i. 442
fate and, ii. 385
foreknowledge and, iii. 12, 58
love and, iii. 110, 264 ; spindle
of, i.
throne of, i. 447 ;
440
utterance of, ii. 362.
Nechepso, i. 100 ff., 464, 472, 477.
Necheus, i. 464.
Nectar, i. 415.
Nefer-Tem, i. 458.
Negress, Hor, son of, i. 88.
;
circle of,
i.
428
Nehe-maut,
i.
49.
Neilos, i. 307.
Neilotis, i. 115.
Neith, i. 108, 273.
Nemanous, i. 285.
Nemesis, iii. 116.
Neophytes, i. 214.
Nephthys, i. 280, 284, 315, 322
337, 340, 344.
Nesert, i. 457.
Net, i. 58 ff., 62 house of, i. 58 ;
temple of, i. 62 ; of Vulcan, i.
;
62.
Netting,
i.
62.
INDEX
Nicolaitans,
i.
165,
ii.
Olympian path, the, ii.
Olympic stole, iii. 182.
Olympus, i. 61, 299.
Omar Khayyam, i. 167.
Omega, iii. 273.
Omniform, ii. 194, 245,
79.
Night, i. 91, iii. 94, 114.
Night-stool boy, i. 298.
Nightingale, i. 445, 449.
Nigidius, i. 407.
Nikolaos, iii. 279.
Nikotheos, iii. 278.
Nile,
i.
345,
Omphis,
267, 269, 308, 314, 316,
347, 384, ii. 265, iii. 148,
celestial, i. 70, 92, 156, iii.
father, i. 109 ; flood of, iii.
154
163
224 heavenly, iii. 158 ; Osiris,
i. 308
Osiris' efflux, i. 312.
Nine, ii. 16.
;
Nineteenth Century,
Nirmanakaya,
ii.
192.
ii.
44.
i.
51,
ii.
Noah,
ii.
56.
world,
iii.
Soul,
iii.
173.
Nurse,
i.
310,
ii.
i.
276, 285, 336
209.
of
all,
i.
image of, ii. 118 man, ii. 222,
244
and only, ii. 258, iii. 22
pleroma, ii. 133 ; second, ii. 118,
sense, ii. 139, 244
268
sight,
;
161
source,
65.
Obscuration, ii. 260.
Obscure Philosopher, ii. 215.
Ocean, i. 162 ; churning the, iii.
of
180 ; of divine love, ii. 94
generation, iii. 163 ; great, ii.
92 ; heaven, i. 131, iii. 154
stream of, i. 162, 282.
Oceanus, i. 310, iii. 273.
Ochus, i. 277, 307.
Odateuch, iii. 297.
Odysseus, i. 446 ; companions of,
;
270.
(Enuphis,
Ogdoad,
i.
274.
57, 120, 130, 132, 246,
263, 275, ii. 42, 228, 251 ; name,
i.
252.
Old man of sea, i. 176.
Old old path, ii. 98.
150.
One, ii. 100.
One-and-Only
ii
iii.
258.
Onnofris, i. 294.
Onoel, i. 422.
Ophianse,
Ophitse,
ii.
392,
i.
ii.
235.
27.
ii.
27.
Ophite, hebdomad,
i.
421
systems
of gnosis, i. 98.
Ophites, i. 142
diagram of, i. 422,
423, 449, iii. 277.
Opinion, i. 430 ; and sensation, iii.
84.
Oracle, at Delphi, i. 349,
Ordeal of fire, i. 79.
Oannes, i. 149, 425, iii. 303.
Oblivion (Lethe), Place of, i. 454.
Oblong, i. 319.
ii.
Numinis majestas, iii. 260.
Nuptial number, iii. 174, 336.
i.
ii.
Onomacritus,
80.
Non-Being, ii. 161.
Noose, of Hercules, i. 61.
Nourishment of gods, i. 133.
Numbers, i. 404 ; which pre-exist in
Nut,
100
ii.
197,
Oneness, ii. 90, 91, 92,
Onion, i. 271.
Only Son, ii. 196.
384.
Nochaitse, i. 142.
Noetic, body, ii. 242
341.
320.
i.
;
and all, i. 136,
118, 230, 310, 344 ; is
all, ii. 268, 308, 309 ; colour, i.
element, ii.
195, 244 ;
391
essence, i. 391 ; form, ii. 35
One,
ii.
45, 46, 98.
i.
171.
Nirvana, ii. 98.
Nirvanic consciousness,
Nitriote nome,
357
ii.
42, 228.
Order, ii. 385 ; and its opposite,
iii. 266.
Orderer of the world, iii. 208.
Orelli, i. 24, 123.
Orgies, i. 149, 155, 211, 350.
Origen, i. 140, 423, ii. 72, iii. 99 ;
Celsus and, i. 423.
Original, man, i. 168 ; nature, i.
155
Orion,
i. 155.
295, 296.
i. 325, 400
seed,
i.
Ormuzd,
servant
of,
i.
297.
Orpheus, i. 391, 392, 445, iii. 320.
Orphic, eschatology, i. 439
frag'
ments, i. 265
hymn, iii. 269
hymns, ii. 235 ; initiates, i. 191
Phanes, ii. 282
or Pythagorean
initiate, i. 95
world-egg, i. 387
;
388.
Orphicism,
392.
Osiriaca, the, i. 256, 311.
Osirian Passion, i. 288.
i.
358
INDEX
and Typhonic
Osiric
298.
Osirified,
and
i.
the,
i.
65,
65.
Passions,
120
71,
i.
Thoth
i. 63, 74, 80
193, 279, 367,
;
198 Apis animated image of,
i. 321
birth of, iii. 122 ; black,
i.
burials of, i. 293,
296, 309
320 great campaign of, i. 353 ;
dark God, iii. 156 and Dionysus, i. 310 ; disciple of Agathodaimon, i. 478, iii. 261
efflux
of, i. 328 ; eye of, iii. 158
fourteen parts of, i. 289 ; garment of,
i.
gospel of, i. 367
house
71
of, i. 79
and Ms, blessings of,
iii.
members of, i. 156
122
mystery-god, iii. 257 ; Kile, i.
308 secrets of, iii. 96 ; seeking
for, i. 332
the sun, i. 332
tombs of, i. 289, 292, 293, 312 ;
Osiris,
iii.
is water, i. 156.
Osiris-myth, i. 130.
Osiris-plant,
Ostanes,
iii.
i.
314.
295
Book
of, iii.
277,
Osymandias, library of, i. 50.
Outbreathing of universe, ii. 254.
Outline of His Face, ii. 282.
i.
ii.
47.
269, 354, iii. 246
173, 209, ii. 24,
116, 239, 255 ; logion, probable
completion of, ii. 122.
Oxyrhynchus-town, i. 354.
logia,
i.
i.
172,
Pa-neshe,
i. 119.
Psean, i. 293.
Pain, sharp tooth of, iii. 115.
Paitoni, i. 9.
Palsestinos, i. 287.
Palestine, i. 208.
Palingeneses, i. 311.
Palingenesis, i. 283, ii. 83 ; lord of,
i.
50.
Palisade, i. 163.
Palladius, ii. 50.
Pallas, iii. 181.
Pamphilus, i. 100.
Pamphus of Athens,
Pamyle, i. 279.
Pamylia, i. 279, 312.
194, 245, 341.
Paophi, i. 331.
Papa, i. 172.
Paphie, iii. 91.
Papyrus, i. 284, 289 ; Ebere, i. 50
Harris, i. 131 ; Insinger, ii. 244.
Paradigm, of cosmos, ii. 196 ; of
;
time,
196.
ii.
Paradigms,
Paradise,
iii.
56.
173, 187,
i.
279
iii.
244 celestial, i. 425
with trees, i. 189.
i.
Parallelogram, iii. 177.
Paraplex, i. 269.
Parents we are to abandon,
;
a,
planted
ii.
96.
criticism
of
Passing o'er Mount,
356, 422.
Oxyrhynchus,
ii.
text of, ii. 64.
Parthians, i. 196, 197.
Passage of Sun, i. 71, 77.
Overseer of ceremonies, iii. 223.
Overseers of heavens, i. 126.
Ox,
Pantomorph,
Panu, i. 294.
Parmenides, i. 181.
Parthey, i. 14, 26
296.
Own-form, ii. 46.
Own-nature of masterhood,
Pan, i. 186, ii. 56.
Panacea, i. 241.
Panathensea, i. 62.
Panchaea, i. 297.
Pandora, iii. 274, 280.
Panics, i. 283.
Panopolis, i. 282.
Pans, i. 282.
Panthers, i. 436.
ii. 171.
Passion, i. 283, ii. 204, 262, 288 ;
and sensation, iii. 42.
Passions, i. 277, 351, ii. 249, 262 ;
Osiric and Typhonic, i. 298 ;
Titanic, i. 311.
Passive Principle, i. 225.
Pastophors, iii. 225.
Pastos, iii. 225.
Path, i. 70, 74, ii. 89, 91, 114, 118,
iii.
bitter, ii.
293
362 ; of
gnosis, ii. 98, 195, 248 ; up to
Gods, ii. 169, iii. 299
Good's
own, ii. 189, 190, 196, iii. 327 ;
secrets of holy, i. 192 ; old old,
ii. 90, 98 ; Olympian, ii. 171
of
return, iii. 144 ; of salvation, ii.
171 ; of self-knowledge, ii. 40
moving on a soundless, i. 357
steps of, i. 79 ; to supreme, ii.
197 ; thither, iii. 6 ; to truth,
;
iii.
5.
Patrizzi,
i.
181.
i.
11.
Paul, propaganda of, i. 204.
Pauly, i. 26.
Paut, i. 57, 132 ; of Hermes,
i.
263.
INDEX
Pawnbroking bye law,
i.
242.
its, iii. 4 ; virtue
of perfect, i. 218.
Peacock, i. 391.
Pearls, i. 175.
Peisistratidse, i. 392.
Pelasgos, i. 149.
Pelousios, i. 287.
Penelope, i. 159.
Pentateuch, i. 203.
Perception, iii. 84.
Perfect, i. 434 ; blessedness, ii.
182 men, ii. 87,
Sermon, ii. 136,
266 glory of soul, ii. 165 the,
iii. 14, 256
vision, iii. 96.
Perfection, beginning of, i. 178
Gospel of, i. 142 ; mount of, ii.
24 perfect, i. 178.
Perfume-makers, i. 365.
Permanence, ii. 271.
97
fruit,
one,
i.
91
ii.
Permanent atoms,
Perret,
Persea,
ii.
i.
289.
56.
208.
Persephassa (see Proserpina),
i.
349,
Persephone,
i.
Acts
i,
Payni, i. 305.
Peace, author of
242
359
iii.
i. 301.
151, 181, 347, 350,
iii. 161.
Persia, ii. 206.
Persians, i. 207.
Person, i. 136, iii. 287, 288.
Persona, ii. 25.
Persons, of Ptah, i. 132.
Peter, James, John, and, i. 475.
Petosiris, i. 100 ff., 464, 472, 477.
Petra, iii. 161.
Petroma, iii. 232.
Petron, iii. 172.
Phseacians, i. 270.
Phsedrus, river, i. 287 ; soul and
her mysteries in the, i. 429.
Phallephoria, i. 279, 313.
Phallus, i. 289, 312.
Phamenoth, i. 321.
Phanes, i. 391, 394.
Phaophi, i. 305, 346.
Pharaoh, rat of, i. 356.
Pharisees, i. 209.
Pharos, i. 318.
Pheidias, i. 359, ii. 290.
Pheison, i. 188.
Pheneatians, iii. 232,
Pheneus, i. 376.
Pherecydes, ii. 260.
Philadelphus, i. 104.
Philse, i. 460.
of,
i.
147
of,
142.
Philo,
i. 211, ii. 128, 137 ; of Alexandria on the Man-Doctrine, i.
197 ; Bvblius, i. 122 ff. ; of
Byblos, i. 402 ; De Legatione of,
ii.
237
two Horoi
in, i. 367 ;
203 ; his method,
monotheist, i. 231.
inspiration
i.
i. 199
Philonean tractates, L 199.
Philoponus, ii. 172, iii. 209.
Philosophers, iii. Ill ; most ancient
of, iii. 215 ; prince of, ii. 38.
Philosophumena, of Hippolytus, i.
;
140.
Philosophy, beginning of, i. 274,
iii.
246 ; Egyptian, i. 28 ; inventor of, i. 138 piety and, iii.
3 ; pure, ii. 331 ; true, ii. 232 ;
;
work
233.
Philostratus, ii. 197.
of,
i.
Philtre, immortal,
Philtres, i. 88.
246.
i.
Phosilampes, ii. 107.
Photius, i. 62, 152.
Phrygian writings,
i.
303.
Phrygians, i. 350.
Phylarehus, i. 303.
Physician, good, i. 461, ii. 213.
Physicists, theory of, i. 307, 312.
Physiologus, i. 56, 330, 345,
357, iii. 112.
Physis, iii. 256.
Picture, iii. 18, 276, 295.
Pierret,
i.
356,
28.
Pietschmann,
i. 47 ff., 72, 112, 116,
119.
Piety, iii. 3, 5, 243, 265.
Pig taboos, i. 271.
Pillars of Hermes, i. 112.
Pilot, i. 296, 347
mind as, ii.
201.
Pinax, of Bitos, i. 197, iii. 277.
Pindar, i. 312, 366.
Pine, i. 364.
Pine-resin, i. 364.
Piper, the, i. 183.
Pistis Sophia, i. 84, 92, 94, 326,
general
371, 418, 426, ii. 43, 96
title of, i. 142 ; song of powers
in, ii. 241.
;
Pitra,
i.
6.
Pitys the Thessalian, iii. 295.
Pius, Bishop of Rome, i. 378.
Plague, i. 364 ; great, i. 364.
Plagues and famines, iii. 49.
360
INDEX
Plain, of Forgetful ness (Lethe), i.
447 ; of Truth, i. 430, ii. 19, 49,
50, 97,
208.
Plane,
iii.
171, 172, 189, 205,
Poor,
iii.
164.
373.
i.
Porphyry, i. 113, 123, 124, ii. 42,
229 Letter to Marcella, i. 260.
;
174.
Planetary chains, iii. 301.
Planets, five, iii. 46.
Plasm, sealing of the members of
the, iii. 70.
Plato, i. 62, 103, 113, 265, 274,
iii.
277, 297, 298, 299, 300, 333,
336, 337, 338, 340, 362, 392,
405, 406, 414, ii. 167 Atlantis
of, i. 176 ; buys, i. 351 ; crater
in, i. 450 ; definition of man by,
;
433 ; marriage scheme of, i.
336 myths of, i. 109 nuptial
number of, i. 336 transformation of soul in, iii. 110
follows
i.
Trismegistus, iii. 248.
Pleiades, i. 350.
Plenum, space a, ii. 70.
Pleroma, i. 85, 246, 335, ii. 28, 32,
93, 241 ; of bad, ii. 115 ; of evil,
ii. 113 ; common fruit of the, ii.
241 ; of Good, ii. 117 ; and
hysterema, ii. 239 ; of ideas,
128 intelligible superspatial,
one,
196 ; monad, i, 405
133
of virtues, ii. 117.
;
ii.
ii.
ii.
Pletho,
Plew,
Pontius (Pontus) Pilate,
i.
8.
Pleyte, i. 49.
Pliny, iii. 296.
Plotins Stellung
Gnosticismus,
Poimandres, the name, ii. 50.
Pole-lords of heaven, i. 176.
177.
177.
Poles, i. 87 ; seven,
Polichne, i. 292.
Poleis,
18.
first cube,
176, 318
trident of, i. 359.
Poseidonius, i. 102.
Possessions, ii. 327, 330.
Pothos, i. 125.
Poverty, i. 338.
Powers, chariot of the, i. 238 ;
invocation of the, ii. 249 ; song
of the, ii. 42, 43.
Pralaya, ii. 260, iii. 137.
Prana, i. 363, ii. 168, iii. 146,
206.
Prayer for gnosis, ii. 49.
of Essenes,
Prayers, for dead, i. 78
i.
275
i.
Hermes', i. 82.
Praying-room, i. 209.
Amygdalos
Pre-existing, i. 150
ii.
49
182.
Presence, the,
Priam, i. 299.
the,
i.
24, 47.
ii.
Prima Materia,
151.
Prince, of eternity, i. 65, 132 ; of
philosophers, ii. 38.
Principles of man, ii. 149 ; and
cosmos, ii. 207.
of sense, ii. 127.
Privation, i. 327
Probation, three stages of, ii. 236.
Probationers, the, i. 185.
of fate, ii. 49.
Procession, ii. 89
Proclus, i. 101, 106, 435, ii. 169 ;
on descent of souls, i. 435 ; on
spheres, iii. 300.
Proem to fourth gospel, ii. 371.
Prometheus, i. 263, 314, iii. 274,
280, 282.
Promise of silence, the, ii. 219.
Pronoia, ii. 39.
Prophetenpredigt, ii. 122.
Proscription of worship of gods, ii.
399.
Proserpina (Kore), i. 59.
Protection, sole, iii. 265.
Proteus, i. 176.
Prototypes, iii. 56.
Protrepticus, or Exhortation to the
Greeks, ii. 300.
Providence, ii. 39, 207, 211, 216,
and
iii. 61, 195, 235, 258, 260
i.
zum
iii. 278.
Plotinus, ii. 42, 198, 228, 302;
Life of, iii. 278 ; on metempsychosis, i. 434 soul of, iii. 32 ;
yoga of, i. 251.
Plucked green wheat-ear, i. 178.
Plumes, i. 337.
Plutarch, i. 84, 103, 223, 255, 453 ;
Consolation of i. 260 ; Yogin of,
iii. 169.
Pluto, i. 301, 362.
Poemandres, early form of the, i.
374 ; higher criticism of the, i.
128 variant spellings of, i. 3.
Poemandrist, Apology of a, ii. 298.
i.
Poleitai,
iii.
Poseidon,
115.
i.
Portrait,
fate,
i.
i.
95, 402.
i.
iii.
237
211.
36,
55,
60
ministers
legislative,
of,
iii.
205,
INDEX
Psammetichus,
Pselcis,
Psellus,
i.
7,
i.
38, 58.
ii.
Pseudo-Appuleius,
ii.
392.
Pseudo-Manetho, i. 110, 115.
Psychagogue and psychopomp,
159.
Psychosis,
Ptah,
i, Myer's, i. 281.
Questions, of Mary, i 142 ; of Osiris
to Horus, i. 290.
Quick, i. 186.
Quiet and Serene, iii. 253.
Quintessence, iii. 102, 206 ; aether,
ii. 92 ; and monad, i. 403.
268.
117.
i.
i.
99, 102, 168.
iii.
148 ; the great, i.
Hephaestus, i. 160,
iii.
96 ; noose of, i. 61
persons of, i. 132 ; hath spoken,
i.
138, iii. 148 ; temple of, i.
457,
i.
130 workshop of, i. 457.
Ptah- doctrine, i. 130.
;
Ptah-Hotep,
i.
105
(IY.),
74.
460
i.
(IX.),
i.
i.
466.
104
Letter of Manetho to, i. 103.
Pulse, i. 349.
Pupil of the eye, i. 394.
Pupilla Mundi, iii. 93.
Pupilline, l'Ame, iii. 167.
Pupils of the eyes, i. 84.
Pure, and holy love, ii. 332 ; not
lawful for, i. 265 ; matter, ii. 7 ;
mind, ii. 320, 324, iii. 292
philosophy, ii. 331 ; shepherd,
;
ii.
and Apep,
53, 68
i.
Ptah-priests of Memphis, i. 135.
Ptah-Thoth, i. 132.
Ptolemies, i. 102, 103 ; libraries of
the, iii. 277.
Ptolemy, Gnostic, ii. 371 ; the
saviour, i. 301 ; (II.), i- 103,
463; (X.), i. 466; (XL),
Ptolemy Philadelphus, i.
i.
of,
131
i. 57 ; heart
herald of will of, i.
49 ; library of, i. 103 ; light-god,
i. 473 ; tongue of, i. 49, 68.
Race, i. 205, 207, ii. 20, 50, 162,
of
221, 290 ; of Elxai, ii. 242
God, i. 253 ; without a king, i.
164 ; ineffable, i. 166 ; of Logos,
ii.
18, 241 ; self-taught, i. 174,
220, ii. 241 ; within, iii. 5.
Rachel, i. 178, 220.
Raise the dead, i. 273.
Ra,
iii.
135;
130,
382,
361
Raisins, i. 364.
Ram of perfectioning, the, i. 212.
Ramses III., i. 131.
Raphael, i. 422.
Rashness, ii. 224.
Raven, i. 286, 352, iii. 181.
Ray, iii. 288 ; of God, ii. 275.
Ray-like, i. 224.
Rays, hall of golden, i. 75.
Reason, iii. 84 articulation of, ii.
224 common, i. 346 ; continuing, i. 247
of divinity, ii. 311,
;
highest whole, ii. 320
318
marriage with right, i. 223 selfperfect, i. 222, iii. 60 ; true, ii.
;
319.
55.
t
Purpose, iii. 258.
Purgations, catharms
Purity, mysteries of,
ding garment of,
Purusha, ii. 168.
Pyauepsion, i. 350.
Pyramid, ii. 85
;
great,
i.
or, iii.
i.
ii.
154
Rebecca,
Rebirth,
210.
;
wed-
iii.
254,
255
Pyriphlegethon,
361, 362.
Pythagoras, i. 113, 274, 298, 392,
iii. 317 ; his symbols, i. 274.
Pythagorean, i. 305 ; triangle, iii.
i.
327.
Pythagorics, i. 308, 327.
Pythian oracle, ii. 42, 228.
Pytho, ii. 300.
Python, i. 298.
i.
hymn
of,
manner
275
219
ii.
author
of cosmos, ii.
229 ; lord of,
ii.
of,
226,
219,
Recording Angel, i.
Red, ass, a, i. 306
175.
Pythagoreans, i. 359.
messages,
Pythagoric,
222, 243
ii.
221, 224,
233, 264; sermon on, ii.
227, 236 ; tradition of, ii.
220 ; way of, ii. 248.
Reborn, ii. 239.
Recitation Ode, i. 192, 193.
Recognition of children, iii. 20.
Recollection, i. 433.
i.
ii.
217.
58, 353,
ii.
357 ;
50
249.
69.
opposites,
of,
i.
i.
Sea,
i.
earth,
i.
150
163.
Red-skinned,
Regeneration,
ii.
64.
;
i.
295, 305, 306.
ii.
239
mystery
of,
240.
Reincarnation, i. 137, ii. 76, 83
Hermes, teacher of, iii. 227.
362
INDEX
Reitzenstein,
i.
15, 51, 121,
monograph on "Aion,"
i.
143
387;
general view of, i. 40 ff.
Religion, of Hermes, i. 82 ; of joy,
i. 73 ;
of light, i. 73
of mind,
i. 91, ii. 401, iii. 316.
Reminiscence, ii. 241, 372.
;
Ren, i. 89.
Repentance, mystery
true,
ii.
of,
ii.
245;
98.
Round-the-same,
ii.
Rulers, seven,
7, 9
ii.
62.
;
workmen of,
70.
iii.
Rush,
Rusta,
312.
i.
70.
i.
Sacrificers, iii. 112.
Saffron-coloured, i. 342.
Sages, the seven, i. 207.
Sah,
i.
89.
Resin, i. 332, 363, 366.
Restoration, ii. 126, 128, iii. 246.
Resurrection of dead, ii. 165.
Return, the, ii. 246.
Revealer, of hidden, i. 49 ; of light,
Sai-an-Sinsin, i. 79.
Sals, i. 108, 273, ii. 280,
375.
Revelations, divine, i. 216
phant of, i. 211.
Revelling-place, i. 84, 97.
Salome,
John,
i.
Rhea,
hiero-
151, 153, 278, 305, 334,
26 ; womb of, i. 335.
Rib, i. 279.
Richter, i. 200.
Riddle, i. 273.
Riess, i. 100, 101.
Right hand, i. 348.
Righteousness, i. 53, 60, 85, 263,
ii. 225, 231.
Ring Pass not, ii. 9.
Rishis, ii. 242.
Rising from dead, i. 173.
Rite, black, iii. 107, 141, 149,
155 ; of flame, i. 93.
Ritual, i. 58, 59, 65, 72, 74, 76,
77, 79, 84 ; of Azazel, i. 306 ; of
Embalmment, i. 460 ; of Initiation in Acts of John, ii. 243.
River, of Divine Reason, i. 244 ; of
God, i. 244 ; of Heedlessness, i.
447; of Lethe, i. 416, 452.
Road, Ancient, iii. 327.
Robber in house, ii. 121.
Robe, of fire, ii. 152 ; of glory, i.
361, ii. 43, 249 ; of Isis, i. 62
single, i. 373.
Robes, her, i. 340 ; of Isis, i. 264 ;
sacred, i. 361.
Rock, God from, i. 95, 392, 399 ;
the, i. 161.
Rod of Hermes, i. 61.
Root, of form, ii. 193 ; of matter, ii.
26 ; one, ii. 269 ; of universals,
390,
i.
i.
ii.
184.
Rootage of
eeons,
Rosetta stone,
~
11.
M.
i.
ii. 317.
117.
Sakkara,
i.
372
iii.
293.
step-pyramid
of,
465.
i.
Salmon,
Salt,
i.
147, 195, 196, 421.
147, 153 ; mother of St
i.
38.
i.
267, 397.
Salvation, harbour
i.
path
of, ii.
171
120, 123
ii. 120.
of, ii.
port
of,
Sambhogakaya, ii. 45.
Same, i. 327, ii. 268, 369.
Sameness, ii. 207, 244.
Samothracians, i. 168.
Sampsaeans, i. 369.
Samsara, ii. 167, 283.
Sanchuniathon, i. 24, 112
122,
Saosis,
ii.
ff.,
113,
2,79.
285.
Sarah, i. 217, 220, 221.
Sarapis, i. 301, 302, 342.
Sassanean, i. 297.
Satan, sons of, iii. 319.
Satrap, iii. 133.
Saturn, i. 416, 418, 419.
Satyrs, i. 282.
Saulasau, i. 165.
Save
i.
i.
my
alone-begotten from lions,
170.
Saving One, i. 340.
Saviour, Books of the, i. 418
i. 241
Ptolemy the, i. 301
;
i.
my,
the,
224.
Sayings, of Good Daimon, ii. 213
f. ; of Heracleitus, ii. 213.
Scaly-coat, i. 289.
Scape-goat, i. 306.
Scarab, i. 276, 356.
Scarabseus, i. 356.
Scetis, i. 384.
Scherer, i. 36.
Schmidt, Carl, i. 50, 93.
Schmitz, i. 34.
Schneidewin, i. 143.
Sciences, iii. 40, 85, 198
ii.
322,
iii.
199.
arts and,
363
INDEX
Dream
o/, i. 413.
282.
Scourge of Christ, ii. 173.
of the nine
Scribe, of Gods, i. 53
Gods, i. 50 of the mysteries, iii.
223.
Scipio,
Scorpion,
i.
Scripture-making,
Scroll, secret,
Scyth,
77, 78.
i.
253, 401.
Sea, Great, iii. 163
ii.
ii.
123
infinite,
395,
i.
395
i.
389
of,
189, 343.
i.
79
223.
Sealers, i. 306.
Seirias,
i.
i.
111.
89, 131.
Sekhet,
i. 457.
Selene, i. 151, 278.
Seleucus, iii. 289.
Self-begotten, i. 150.
Self-taught, ii. 242 ; race,
ii. 241.
Semele, i. 161, 454.
Semiramis, i. 297.
Semitismus, i. 124.
Semneion, i. 209.
Sermons, classification
of, iii.
306
462, ii. 250, 264,
of Fate, ii. 217 ;
iii. 33, 54, 309
General, i. 462, ii. 141, 145, 236,
264, iii. 45, 77, 308.
Serpent, i. 86, 87, 97, 98, 146, 344,
of Darkness, ii.
ii.
4, 26, 301
31 ; death of, ii. 300 ; great, ii.
of
winged, i. 398
27, 35 ;
wisdom, i. 194, 480.
God,
i.
Servant of
251.
Servant-form, i. 398, 399.
Servants of God, i. 212, 220.
Seseli, i. 365.
Sesostris, i. 297.
Sesquioctave, i. 320.
Set, i. 53, 57.
Seth, i. Ill, 114, 319, 329, 343,
ii. 27 ; sons of, i. 114.
Seth-Hermes, sons of, i. 113.
Sethian, i. 139, 393, ii. 4, 27;
gnosis, i. 192, 393.
i.
Seti, (I.),
i.
174,
Sempiternity, iii. 9.
Seneca, i. 102.
Sensation, iii. 41 ; corpse of, ii.
121 ; energy and, of, iii. 40
opinion and, iii. 84 ; passion and,
iii.
i.
104 ; land, i.
107, 110 ff. ; monuments, i. 113.
Sermon, Perfect, ii. 136 ; Secret,
ii. 250 ; about sense, ii. 129 ; on
rebirth, ii. 219, 227, 236.
Seriadic, country,
Sealing members of plasm, iii. 70.
Sebennyte, i. 104.
Second, birth, i. 79 ; God, i. 230,
ii.
127, 170, 365 ; man, i. 139,
ii. 27 ; one, ii. 118, 268.
Seeds of God, ii. 137.
Seeing Israel, i. 198, 234.
Seer, ii. 255, iii. Ill ; of Gnosis, ii.
94 ; of God, iii. 298.
Seething, i. 396.
i. 115.
Seirios (see Sirius),
172.
i.
mighty type
which marked victims,
iii.
iii.
Sekhem,
Sept, i. 111.
Sepulchres, ye are whited,
Serapeum, ii. 399, iii. 277.
Expository,
Sea-hawk, bone
of,
of ignorance,
old man
;
i.
176.
of, i.
Seal,
22.
ii.
Separator or Divider, ii. 70.
Sepphora, i. 164, 217.
42.
Sense, ii. 319 ff., 340, 345 ; cosmic,
ii. 371, 372 ; discourse on, ii. 131,
132 ; higher, i. 227, ii. 338 ; one,
ii.
139, 244 ; privation of, ii.
127 ; sermon about, ii. 129 ;
single, ii. 389 ; whole, ii. 371.
Sense-and-thought, ii. 132, 134,
137 ; of cosmos, ii. 133, 139.
Sensible, ii, 286, 320, 340, 377 ; or
hylic cosmos, ii. 167.
i.
50.
Setme, i. 380.
Seven, ii. 341 ; basis, i. 419 ; circles,
ii. 76 ; cosmoi, i.
407 fortunes
halls, i. 380 ;
of heaven, i. 176
men, ii. 11
Kabiri, ii. 279
peals of laughter, iii. 137 poles,
rulers, ii. 7, 9 ; sages,
i. 95, 402
sons of Sydyk, i.
the, i. 207
127 ; spheres, iii. 60 times, i.
virgins,
i. 176
wise ones,
332 ;
worlds, the, ii. 179
i.
458
zones, i. 413,
youths, i. 176
;
ii.
42.
Seven-robed Nature, i. 156.
Sevenfold "Ha," iii. 137.
Seventeen, i. 319.
Seventy-two, i. 281.
Sex, iii. 129, 145, 203.
Shadow,
Shakti,
ii.
i.
52,
casting,
ii.
i.
326.
107.
Shame, garment of, i. 153,
Sharing-with-all, ii. 225.
Sharp-snout, i. 289, 354.
ii.
42.
;;;;
364
INDEX
Shaven, i. 265.
of ten-thousand names,
Sheep, i. 356.
Sheeted dead, the, i. 161.
She
i.
333.
JSermas,
i. 369, ii. 238, 248, iii.
229, 232, 319 ; of men, i. 375,
ii.
231, 372; pure, ii. 55; of
bright stars, i. 186, ii. 56 ; symbolic representation of, i. 372
true, i. 238 ; who hath his fold
in the west, i. 373.
Shore, other, ii. 89.
Short-armed, i. 295.
Shrine-bearers, iii. 225.
Shu, i. 131, 133.
Si-Osiri, i. 380.
ii.
Sibylline,
literature,
330
iii.
235
writers,
ii.
49.
Sickness, health and, iii. 203.
Siddhis, ii. 197.
Siege of Mansoul, iii. 186.
Sige (Silence), ii. 163.
Sight, mortal and immortal, iii.
235 ; one, ii. 161 ; of peace, i.
246.
Sigils, iii. 179.
Signs of zodiac, i. 54, ii. 52.
heart of, i. 73
Silence, ii. 19, 20
holy, ii. 163 ; promise of, ii. 219,
233 ; vow of, ii. 250.
Simon, Jules, i. 434.
Simon Magus, ii. 108.
Simonian, gnosis, ii. 107, 317
tradition, i. 184, 188.
Simonides, i. 296.
Sinai, i. 384.
Single, love, ii. 330 ; sense, ii. 389.
Sinope, i. 302.
Sins, forgiveness of, i. 251.
Siren, i. 442.
Siriad land, i. 114.
Siriadic, i. 111.
Sirius, i. 110, 314, 326.
Sister-wife, i. 147, 301.
Sistrum, i. 303, 344.
;
ii. 54.
Six-and-fiftieth
305.
Sixteen, i. 319.
Sittl,
even
iii.
i.
32.
125.
i. 343.
Snake, i. 329, 356, ii. 4, iii. 133 ;
great, ii. 26.
Snow, fire and, i. 95.
Socrates, i 406 ; Books on Rites,
i. 311.
Solar, boat, i. 270 ; table, i. 452.
Soldier, ii. 276, iii. 50.
Soli, i. 438.
Solid, iii. 174.
Solomon, iii. 283.
Solon, i. 103, 108, 274.
Son, of God, i. 138, 157, 198, 220,
226, ii. 28, 116, 118, 140, 222,
241, iii. 239, 275, 280, 282 ; only
beloved, i. 224 ; eldest, i. 227 ;
of man, i. 150, 160, ii. 43, 138 ;
of the One, ii. 228, 251 ; only, ii.
196
of virgin, iii. 160, 161 ;
younger, ii. 192, 257.
Sonchis, i. 274.
Song, of holiness, ii. 50 ; of Linus,
i. 293 ; of the powers, ii. 42, 43
;
of praise to Mon, i. 408.
Sons, of Elohim, i. 159
of Fire,
iii. 136 ; of God, i. 198, 233, iii.
of
His
eternal Likeness, i.
316 ;
234 of the one God, i. 234 ; of
one man, i. 234 ; of Satan, iii.
319 ; ofSeth, i. 113, 114.
Smu,
Shepherd, i. 371, ii. 43, 228, 229,
231; good, i. 373, ii. 213; of
oracles,
Sleep,
Slime,
measure,
i.
Sixty, iii. 168 ; spaces, iii. 192.
Skiff (baris), i. 288.
Skin, red, i. 305.
Slave, i. 91, ii. 10 ; enharmonised,
i. 183.
Sonship,
of,
i.
43, 50,
ii.
140
iii.
wings
390.
Sophia, i. 335 ; Above, i. 74, ii. 7Q.
Sophia-aspect of Logos, i. 49.
Sophia-mythus,
30, 32,
i.
334, 377,
ii.
26,
226.
431.
225.
302.
iii.
Sophist,
i.
Sorrow,
ii.
Sosibius, i.
Sothiac, i. Ill
cycles, iii. 290.
;
80, 104, 115, 117, 121,
295, 342, iii. 276 ; a forgery, i.
Sothis,
107
i.
ff.
Sotoles, i. 302.
Soul, i. 150, 414, 417, ii. 145, 182,
309, iii. 63, 194 ; animal, ii. 246 ;
ascent
of, ii. 41 ff.
of becomi.
49 ; and body, ii. 124,
130 cosmic, ii. 151, 216 daimonic, ii. 229 ; dual, ii. 169 ;
essence of, i. 225 ; eye of, iii.
129 ; eyes in, i. 214 cause of all
in genesis, i. 151
perfect glory
of, ii. 165
gnosis virtue of, ii.
;
ing,
365
INDEX
health
425
265 ; rational
impress in, i. 230 infant's, ii.
Macrobius on descent
150, 216
of, i. 413 ; masculine power of, i.
152 metamorphoses of, ii. 163
mysteries of, in Phcedrus, i. 429
numbers which pre-exist in, iii.
173
parts of, ii. 274, iii. 5
passions of, i. 177 transformation of, in Plato, iii. 110
progression of, iii. 174 ; sluggish,
ii.
157
transfiguration of, ii.
164 vehicles of, ii. 167 vision
of, iii.
188
(II.), of, iii. 65
(III.), of, iii. 72
(IV.), of, iii.
75; (V.), of, iii. 77; (VI.), of,
group,
167
of,
ii.
257,
i.
293
Spirit,
Dionysus, i. 318 ;
258 Do not soil, iii.
of
fragrance of, i. 396
174
God, ii. 81 Good, iii. 261 in
harmony, i. 183 ; sensible, iii.
82 story of the, i. 371 virginal,
divine,
iii.
Soul-gnosis,
137.
Soul-making, iii. 188.
Soul-regions, the sixty, iii. 168.
Souls, colours of, i. 223
conductor,
i.
159 ; discipline of, ii. 347 ;
fountain of, i. 452 ; habitat of
excarnate, iii. 210 ; intercourse
iii.
190
two,
298
iii.
warder
195.
Sound
of heavens, i. 161.
brass, i. 303.
Source, i. 234, ii. 90, 176 ; one, ii.
150 of stars, i. 232.
Sovereign, angel, i. 371
potency,
i. 237.
Sovereignties, iii. 198.
Sower, the, i. 174.
Space, ii. 60, 71, 212, 334, 376, iii.
dry, ii. 75, 76
63 ; dark, ii. 26
a plenum, ii. 70.
Spaces, sixty, iii. 192.
Species, ii. 313 ; genera and, ii.
378.
Speech, ii. 206.
Spermatic essence of Logos, i. 390.
cosmos a, ii.
Sphere, ii. 126, 337
148 ; egg, i. 427 ; eighth, ii. 42
ff. ; of fire, i. 428 ; God's deathless, ii. 230 ; watery, iii. 209.
Spheres, boundary of the, ii. 195 ;
cosmic, iii. 299 ; of destiny, iii.
Sounding
;
i.
181, 182,
Spirit-air,
kinds of, iii. 78 ;
155, 314
of kings, iii. 127 ; lamenting of,
iii. 108 ; equal to stars, iii. 100 ;
ordering of, iii. 191 ; power of
sight of, i. 214 ; Proclus on
descent of, i. 435 ; royal, iii. 125 ;
simile of animals in a cage and,
of, ii.
of, iii.
66, 81, bestower of,
iii.
281
68,
80.
iii.
seven
part played by, in conception, iii. 66 ; counterfeit, iii.
231
ii.
iii.
275
168, 318, 332, 336,
33,
ii.
390, 396,
ii.
177.
eight,
planetary, iii. 60, 300 ; Proclus
on, iii. 300 ; six, ii. 276 ; Tartarean, i. 445 ; Servius on seven,
i. 418.
Sphericity, law of revolution, ii.
387.
Sphinx, secret of, iii. 323.
Spiegelberg, i. 112, 130, ii. 244.
Spiral, fashion, ii. 271 ; orbits, iii.
iii.
ii.
ii.
240, 241,
iii.
157.
34.
Spirit-matter, ii. 332, 334.
Spirit-word, ii. 5.
Spirits, iii. 25,
111 ; animal, i.
363 ; delegate, i. 184.
Spiritual, baptism, ii. 92 ; birth, i.
163 ; crucifixion, ii. 238 ; eyes,
i. 214 ; prototype of humanity,
i.
139 ; sun, ii. 253, 300 ; way,
ii. 240.
Spirituous body, iii. 210.
Spit out and cleanse the mouth, i.
291.
Sponges, iii. 210.
Square, i. 319.
Staff, i. 96, i. 373.
Stahelin, i. 196.
Stands, He who, ii. 170.
Star, native, iii. 110 ; the one, i.
232.
Star-courses, ii. 89.
Star-flocks of gods, i. 327.
Star-groups, iii. 53.
Star-mixture, iii. 74.
Starry cup of Bacchus, i. 414.
ii.
341 ;
fixed,
Stars, iii. 45 ;
groups of, ii. 273 ; long-haired,
iii. 52 ; souls equal in number to,
iii. 100 ; source of the, i. 322.
Statues, ii. 351 ; of judges, i. 276.
Stending, i. 310.
Steward, ii. 358.
Stewart, i. 429, 439.
Stigmata, iii. 162.
-
366
INDEX
Stock, Logos as, ii. 70.
Stoics, i. 83, 318, 319, 323.
Stone cut without hands, the, i.
162.
Stones, iii. 39 ; ensouled, i. 151.
Storks, i. 356.
Stretchers, iii. 50.
Strife, i. 359, ii. 362.
Strive to know yourselves, ii. 256.
Strivers,
iii.
Syncretism, i. 135, 136
Neoplatonic, i. 26.
Ta-urt,
Taaut,
i.
290.
124, 127
i.
i.
cosmogony
of,
126.
Taautos, Asclepius pupil
50.
theory of
Syria, i. 208.
Syriktes, i. 183, 398.
Syrinx, iii. 232.
of, ii.
279
Strong, i. 27, 314.
Subsistence, ii. 161.
Substance, ii. 269, 270.
Substantial, ii. 139.
Successions of Kings, i. 315.
Suchness, ii. 44.
Tables of mulberry- wood, iii. 216.
Taboos, fish, i. 269 pig, i. 271.
Tabor, Mount, ii. 238.
Talmud, i. 115, 425 Jeschu-stories,
Sudan,
i.
Tamar,
Suidas,
i.
Books
iii.
Summa
Sun,
4.
416, 419, ii. 142, 273, 294,
339, 365, 366, iii. 21, 25, 31, 126 ;
arms of, i. 331 ; as charioteer
with crown of rays, ii. 281
circle of, iii. 52 ; delineation of,
i.
demiurge, ii. 269, 281
gates of, i. 162
generation of,
iii.
262; a "head," ii. 270;
hymn to, ii. 253 ; Osiris is, i.
332 passage of, i. 77 ; ray of
spiritual, iii. 287
rays of the,
iii. 288
spiritual, ii. 253
birthii.
282
day
of staff of,
i.
iii.
323.
Super-substantial bread, i. 86.
Superfluity, i. 265, 267, 268.
Superior One, ii. 292.
Superstition, i. 278.
Supplanter, i. 220.
Suppliant, i. 376, ii. 219, 237, 238
of Hermes, ii. 236.
422.
i. 286.
Swan, i. 445, 449.
Sweet-flag, i. 365.
Swine, i. 175.
Sydyk, i. 127.
Syene, i. 269, 477.
Syncellus, i. 104, iii. 152.
Syncrasia, i. 193.
i.
Swallow,
Targum,
194.
i.
Tartarean spheres,
i. 445.
152, 338, 439, ii. 361,
zones,
i. 421.
362 of seven
distinction
Tat, and Asclepius,
between, ii. 264 ; dialogues with,
Tartarus,
i.
ii.
237
Expository Sermons
to,
216, 256, 257,
259, 262, 263, 264, 266 ; initiation of, iii. 310
priesthood, iii.
148.
Tatenen, i. 131, 134.
iii.
13,
16,
44,
Tathagatas, ii. 44.
Tatian, ii. 72.
Tax-gatherers, i. 174.
Taxis, ii. 43, iii. 145.
331.
Sun-god, ii. 391.
Sun-ship, i. 94.
Sunshine, the real, ii. 252.
Super-man, i. 301, ii. 93,
Suriel,
224.
i.
Tanitic mouth, i. 282.
Tantalus, cup of, ii. 198.
Taphosiris, i. 293.
ii.
ii.
279.
Tamarisk, i. 284.
Tanes, iii. 49.
100, iii. 268.
Suitors, i, 159.
Sulphur, i. 262.
79.
potestas,
279.
55.
Sumerian,
of, ii.
Taylor on numbers,
i.
432.
Tcheser, i. 465.
Teachers, common, iii. 287.
Technactis, i. 272.
Teephibis, i. 463.
Tefnut, i. 131, 133.
Teh, Tehu, Tehut, variants
;
Thoth,
i.
of
48.
Tehuti, i. 124 ; derivative of,
variants of, i. 112.
Telescope of Zoroaster, i. 13.
i.
54
Tern, i. 66, 337 ; Young, i. 458.
Templa, regiones coeli, ii. 273.
Templar Cod ex of Fourth Gospel,
475.
Temple-folk,
iii.
255.
Temple-watchman,
Temu,
i.
459.
iii.
162.
i.
367
INDEX
Ten, the, ii. 16, 226, 245.
Tent, ii. 211, iii. 20, 32 or taber-
Theuth, iii. 276.
Theuth-Hermes,
nacle of soul, ii. 227.
Tent-fellows, iii. 203.
Teos, i. 463.
Terebinth, i. 87.
Thiasos,
Termaximus,
i.
53.
Territory of Illumination,
Initiation,
Tertullian,
i.
i.
i.
70
of
70.
71.
Testaments, ii. 235.
Tethys, i. 310.
Tetraktys,
360.
279.
Thales, i. 103, 160, 187, 274,
Thamus, i. 472, iii. 216.
Thamyras, i. 445.
That art thou, ii. 234.
Thath, i. 112, 461, 462.
Thautabaoth, i. 422.
Thebes, i. 50, 272; library
465.
Thekla, i. 147.
Themistius, ii. 236.
Thenen, i. 460.
Theocritus, i. 373.
Theodoret, i. 139, ii. 27.
Theodoras, i. 348.
Theodotus, Excerpts from, ii.
Theognis, ii. 156.
Theophanies, i. 232.
Theopompus, i. 326, 350.
Theoretic Life, ii. 163.
Theoretics, iii. 148, 245.
Theoria, iii. 172.
Theosebeia, iii. 273 ; advice
283.
Thabion,
i.
ii.
i.
309.
at,
i.
words
i.
26,
241,
exercises,
community,
i.
208
ii.
i.
63.
to,
iii.
172;
177
initiations,
Therapeutrides, i. 208, 219.
Therapeuts, i. 30, 31 f., 200, 208,
212, 243, ii. 252, 311, 330, 402,
iii. 59 ; prayers of the Essen es
and, ii. 49.
Thersites, i. 436, 446.
Thesmophoria,
i. 350.
i.
223, 453
vision of, ii. 363, iii. 192.
Thessalians, i. 356.
Theurgic rite of initiation, ii. 255
invocation, ii. 245.
Theurgy, i. 83, ii. 163.
ff.
ii. 136.
124.
i.
110, 112, ii. 279, iii.
234, 277, 278.
Thoyth-Hermes, iii. 231.
Thoythos, iii. 276, 295.
Thracians, i. 169.
Thraemer, i. 461.
Threshold of the Good, ii. 97.
Thrice-great, i. 53.
Thrice-greatest, Egyptian equiva-
Thouth,
Thoyth,
251.
Thespesius (Aridseus),
i.
Thought, iii. 84.
Thought-and-sense,
251.
15, 95, 118,
allegorical
of,
Thoth (Tehuti), i. 47
Thoth (Tekh), i. 458.
42.
Therapeut,
i.
Gnoses of, i. 50 ; first Hermes, i.
104 ; ibis symbol of, i. 48 ;
incarnations of, i. 463 ; the
initiator, i. 71 ; as Logos, i. 48,
63, 90, 135 ; first man, iii. 295
moon-god
the measurer, i. 66
and the Osirified, i. 65
i. 72
pre-eminence of, i. 67, 467
shrine of, i. 56 variants of name,
iii. 234; the wise, i.
68, 134
the eternal wisdom, i. 71, 72
ii.
TheosopMcal Review,
iii. 216.
206, 256.
Third heaven, the, i. 166, 173.
Third-born, i. 359.
Thirty-six, ii. 341, iii. 50.
Thomas, Gospel according to, i. 142,
155, iii. 37.
Those-that-are, i. 80, 137, ii. 42.
Thoth, i. 68, 124, 136, ii. 244;
books of, i. 122, 124; eighttimes-great, i. 119 ; his company
The Great
of eight, i. 57 ff.
i.
lent
the
i.
of,
i.
title,
119
i.
Hermes,
iii.
198
66.
Thrice-unknown Darkness, ii. 25.
Throne, of Necessity, i. 447 ; of
Truth, iii. 109, 173.
Thrones, iii. 101.
Through the Word,
Thueris,
i.
ii.
255.
290.
Thyestian banquets, i. 444.
Thyiades, i. 310, 311, 312.
Thyrsus, i. 311.
Tiamat, i. 60.
Tiedemann,
i. 13, 16, 23.
188.
Time, ii. 192, 367, iii.
archetype of, i. 229,
Tigris,
;
i.
artificer of,
ii.
192
63
193 ;
grandson of
28,
ii.
INDEX
368
God, i. 229 instruments of, iii.
100 lord of, i. 76 ; paradigm of,
Twelve, disciples, the, i. 169 ; fates
of death, ii. 249
maidens, ii.
249
stoles, iii.
182 ; the, ii.
226, 245 ; tribes, i. 169 ; women
ii.
196.
Time-watcher, iii. 222.
Timceus, i. 106, ii. 70, 167.
Tinkling cymbal, i. 303.
Titanic Passions, i. 311.
Titans, i. 268, 303, iii.
or stretchers, i. 282.
Toil,
50,
163
Twin-gods, i. 131.
Two, combatants,
Tybi,
i.
121.
;
136, iii. 208.
Tongues of heaven, ii. 32.
Tormentors, ii. 223.
Torments of darkness, ii. 245.
Tortoise, i. 359.
Tosothrus-Asclepius, i. 465.
Totemism, i. 353.
Trajan, i. 145.
Transfiguration, ii. 238 ; of soul,
ii. 164.
i.
Transformation, body of, ii. 44.
Transformations, ii. 145, iii. 111.
Transmigration, ii. 166, iii. 194.
of light, i. 246.
Treasure, i. 167
Treasure-house, i. 211.
Treasury, ii. 269.
Tree of Gnosis, i. 428.
Triad of disciples, i. 476.
equilateral, i.
Triangle, iii. 172
most perfect, i. 358
305, 359
Pythagorean, iii. 175.
;
Triangles, fairest of the, i. 336.
Tribes, the twelve, i. 169.
Trikayam,
ii.
44.
Trinity, i. 214, ii. 79, iii. 258, 268,
275.
Triphyllians, i. 297.
Tritons, i. 359.
Triumphant Christ, ii. 117.
Trojan War, i. 324, iii. 183.
Trumpeters, ii. 289.
Truth, ii. 225, 231, iii. 17 beauty
of, ii. 121 ; gnosis of, i. 207
hall of, iii. 317 ; figure of man
of, iii. 277 ; path to, iii. 5 ; plain
of, i. 430, ii. 19, 49, 50, 97, iii.
171, 172, 189, 205, 208 ; is sweet,
i. 349 ; throne of, iii. 109, 173.
Turiya, i. 152.
Turmoil, ii. 167.
;
Turnebos, Adr., i. 10.
Turning-back, ii. 98.
ways,
i.
329.
i.
Typal Man, i. 168.
Type, of seons, ii. 282
292, 293, 312,
Tongue, of angels, ii. 32 of flesh,
is fortune, i. 349
heart
ii. 31
and,
QQ
i.
56.
iii.
Tombs
ii.
98.
of Osiris,
in dark robes, ii. 249.
Twice-great, i. 53.
iii.
of body,
49.
Types, of life, ii. 227, 245 of lives,
iii. 102
of wisdom and intelli;
gence,
106.
iii.
Typhon, bone of, i. 189.
Typhon, i. 279, 295, iii. 191
bone
343 concerning, i. 304
conspiracy of, i. 315 foam of, i.
308 pursuing pig, i. 272 ; reddish-yellow body, i. 309 ; virilia
of,
i.
of,
i.
Tyrant,
335.
i. 431.
Under-girdings,
440.
i.
Under-meaning of myths,
Underworkers,
Unfruitful,
i.
201.
i.
50.
iii.
175.
Unguent, scent
of,
i.
393.
Uniter of the earth, i. 59.
Unlike, ii. 90, iii. 11.
Unnu,
i.
56.
Unorder, ii. 126.
Unseemliness, i. 154.
Unseen World, i. 86, 223
; Lord of
the, i. 73.
Untitled Apocalypse of the Codex
Brucianus, ii. 107, 282, 303.
Upanishads, ii. 163, 168, 234.
Uranus,
i.
151,
144, 162,
ii.
iii.
234.
Urim and Thummin,
i.
250.
Ursin, i. 21, 110.
Urtuhet, i. 294.
Usertsen (I.), i. 458.
Vdhan,
ii.
96,
Valentinian,
Yalentinus,
284
of,
ii.
i.
94,
i.
38
letters
of,
ii.
;
ii.
32.
hymn
283
of,
ii.
psalm
217, 312.
Vanaprastha ashrama, ii. 73.
Vaporous nature, iii. 209.
Vapour, iii. 66, 200, 202, 203, 206.
Vapours, iii. 206, 210.
INDEX
Varro,
110, 407.
genesis, iii. 26.
Vedanta, ii. 107.
Vedantavadins, ii. 107.
Vegetative, iii. 210.
Void, ii. 64, 374.
Vortex, i. 389, 390, 453,
i.
Vase of
Victim-sealing books, iii. 223, 224.
Virgin, i. 179, 218, 403
birth, ii.
big
220, 240 ; church, i. 377
;
cinct of the,
147
son
182,
i.
240
ii.
161
iii.
pre-
sister,
i.
160, 161 ; womb
240 ; of the world,
of, iii.
399, ii.
iii. 93, 125.
Virgin-birth, mystery of the,
of,
i.
of Er,
power
most
blessed,
413, 426, 428,
i.
187
40,
glorious,
of godly,
143 ; of Hades,
great and little man,
ii.
Mercabah,
96
iii.
i.
154
i.
102
15,
ii.
161 ;
of Good,
of
223
238 of
ii.
19
iii.
i.
ii.
perfect,
iii.
simple, ii. 221 ; of soul,
188 ; of spiritual crucifixion,
supreme, ii.
264
visions, ii. 210
of Crates, i.
380 of Zosimus, i. 380.
ii.
238
Vital sheath, iii. 206.
Voice, direct, iii. 147 ; of tire, ii.
heavenly, i. 101 ; living,
5, 26
iii. 323.
;
VOL.
III.
Wagenfeld,
i.
Wagner,
94.
Wall,
ii.
123, 124.
90, 163.
i.
Walton, Alice, i. 461.
War, i. 327 in heaven,
iii.
Trojan,
324,
118
183.
i. 85, 121.
of the souls, iii. 195.
i.
iii.
Wardens, eight,
Warder
Warriors,
iii.
50.
Wars, Civil, i. 352.
Watcher, witness and, iii. 111.
Watchers (Egregores), i. 126,
iii.
137.
Water, iii. 189 awesome, i. 394,
395 ; deathless, ii. 18
drainer
of, ii. 39 ; fire and, iii. 66
above
firmament, i. 188 ; first-born of,
i. 398 ; living, i. 188,
190, 399 ;
Osiris is, i. 156 ; sinuous, ii. 4;
as source, i. 309 ; sprite, i. 367 ;
very water, iii. 17.
Water-earth, ii. 33, 34.
;
Virgins, seven, i. 176.
Virginal Spirit, i. 181, 182, ii. 240,
241, iii. 157.
Virginity, i. 218, 219.
Virtue, kinsmen of, i. 241 ; of
perfect peace, i. 218 ; silence on
their, ii. 250.
Virtue-lovers, i. 244.
Virtues, i. 216, ii. 245 ; company
of, ii. 245 ; seven, ii. 248 ; lists
of vices and, ii. 246.
Vishnu Purdna, iii. 180.
Vision, and apocalypsis, ii. 20 ff. ;
of Aridseus (Thespesius), i. 438,
452, ii. 363 ; of Beautiful, iii.
253
of Silence, ii. 250.
Vulcan, net of, i. 62.
Vulcanic Crater, i. 452.
Vulture, i. 90.
Vyasa, ii, 235.
211.
i.
Virgin-mother, i. 74.
Virgin-mothers, i. 220.
15, 53,
187.
ii.
Vow
Vehicles of the soul, ii. 167.
Veii, bible of the, ii. 235.
Venus (Isis), i. 382.
Vergecius, Angelus, i. 10.
Vestments, keeper of the, iii. 223.
Vestures, ii. 152.
Vettius Valens, i. 101, 102.
Vices, horde of, ii.
245 ; and
virtues, i. 377.
with child,
369
Water-rats, i. 325.
Watery sphere, iii. 209.
Way, above, ii. 15, 41 ; of birth in
God, ii. 244 ; of this birth, ii.
244 of death, ii. 18 ; of deathlessness, ii. 39 ; that leadeth to
destruction, i. 182 ; of devotion,
ii. 119 ; of gnosis, ii. 98 ;
up to
;
God, ii. 280 to worship God, ii.
212
out of ignorance, ii. 237 ;
inner, i. 101
of life, i. 182, ii.
15, 40, 41 ; middle, ii. 96 ; up to
mount, ii. 150, 171 old, old, ii.
98 ; of rebirth, ii. 248 ; straight,
;
ii.
189,
iii.
327,
ii.
40, 287.
Weasel, i. 356.
Weasel-armed,
Web
i. 295.
of ignorance, ii. 121.
Wedding garment,
Well of
Life,
Wending up
Wessely,
i.
i.
ii.
42,
ii.
the Mount,
ii.
82, 86, 93, 97.
Whale, belly
of,
i.
425.
Wheat-ear, i. 178, 179.
Wheel, karmic, ii. 83.
Wheels
249.
79.
of Ezekiel,
iii.
173.
24
219.
INDEX
370
"Whether blest child of Kronos,
i.
185.
Whirlwinds, fiery, i. 409.
White, cock, i. 342
rock,
162,
i.
163.
Whole, ii. 310 sense, ii. 371.
Whoring, iii. 166.
Whorl, i. 441, ii. 187.
Wilamowitz, i. 185, 195, ii. 300.
Will, ii. 142 ; of God, ii. 160, 220,
;
395.
Wind, i. 396.
Windows, not
Winds,
Wine,
i.
iii.
120
of,
great,
iii.
314, 326.
World, old age of, ii. 356 end of,
ii.
400 ; fast to the, ii. 239
inner, iii. 325; intelligible, ii.
;
globe,
i.
Egypt, i. 44, 69, ii. 98, iii. 321 ;
church of, iii. 323 ; Greek, i.
in harmony, i. 183
193
harmony of, i. 237 ; husband of,
218 ; Indian, ii. 198 ; lady of
i.
laws of, i. 120 ;
all, iii. 208
mother, i. 224, 228
practisers
of, i. 206 ; serpent of, i. 194,
480 spark of, i. 206 ; supreme
master of, i. 68 ; tradition of, i.
208 ; that understands in silence,
;
watcher,
iii.
first, i.
139,
Worms,
iii.
i.
of animals,
i.
strange,
396, ii. 128 ; ever-virgin,
i. 222 ; fecund, ii. 390 ; of Great
Mother, iii. 324 ; tore asunder
His, i. 182 ; impure, i. 398 ; of
Rhea, i. 335 ; is Silence, ii. 241 ;
of Virgin, i. 399.
Women, band of seven, ii. 248 ;
maladies of, iii. 225.
Wonder, ii. 93, iii. 246.
i.
298, 299.
351.
i.
320.
Yahweh,
27
187
51.
Xenophanes,
Xois,
166.
i.
of, iii.
orderer of, iii.
208 ; shrine of all, ii. 351 ;
stranger to, ii. 220 ; unseen, i.
223 ; virgin of, iii. 93.
World-citizens, i. 206.
World-egg, ii. 33 ; Orphic tradition
of, i. 387, 388.
World-eye, apple of the, iii. 167.
World-illusion, ii. 220, 237.
World-soul, i. 414, ii. 36, 70, 184,
260, iii. 173.
World-tree, the, ii. 317.
Worlds, number of, 183, iii. 171 ;
plurality of,
iii.
170 ; seven
subject, ii. 179.
Worm, i. 171.
Xenocrates,
and
111.
ii.
map
353.
Wolf, i. 87, 90, 325.
Wolf-town, i. 354.
Wolves, i. 436.
Woman,
273, 286, 302 ;
noetic, iii. 80 ;
Worse, i. 328.
Worship, ii. 323
162.
Wisdom-discipline, iii. 225.
Wisdom-lover, i. 431.
Wise, Thoth the, i. 134.
Withdrawn volumes, ii. 236.
Witness, the, ii. 50, 51 ;
iii.
Work,
ii.
390.
Wings, i. 432 ; feathers of their, i.
430 ; of sonship, i. 390.
Wisdom, i. 206, 220, 221, 223,
225, ii. 251, iii. 163 ; mass of
archaic, ii.
236 ; brotherhood
for sake of, i. 233 ; dark, i, 87,
disciples
of, iii. 303 ;
of
91 ;
Womb,
165.
109.
268.
iii.
He who
soweth the, ii. 18 ; language of
proceeding
the,
i.
the
54
thought, i. 137 ; spoken, ii. 343 ;
by whom all things were made, i.
136 through the, ii. 233, 255.
Word-play, ii. 106.
Words, of Ammon, iii. 215 whom
it is custom to call angels, i. 243 ;
ladder of, i. 139 ; of Thoth, i.
63
three more-than-mighty, i.
;
eyes,
four, i. 84.
of ignorance,
Winged
Wood, cutting of, i. 293.
Word, of creator, iii. 256
iii. 166, 167.
are Gods, i. 163.
shall leave your parents, i. 249.
are whited sepulchres, i. 172.
Year, great, iii. 290.
Year-god, i. 402.
Years, thousand, i. 432 ; ten thousand, iii. 171 ; three thousand,
i. 326.
Yedidyah ha-Alakhsanderi, i. 200.
Yoga, ii. 163 ; of Plotinus, i. 251.
Yoga-practices, ii. 197.
Yogin, Plutarch's, iii. 169.
Ye
Ye
Ye
INDEX
Yoke
Zion, foundation of,
Zodia, iii. 53.
Zodiac, i. 414, 416,
of the, ii. 52.
Zoega, i. 400.
of horses,
i. 430.
201.
Young Tern, i. 458.
Younger son, ii. 192, 257.
"Youths, seven, i. 176.
Ysdnw, iii. 297.
Yonge,
Zeesar,
Zeller,
i.
i.
i.
Zone, regal,
32, 36,
ii.
i.
ii.
341
162.
ii.
245; signs
198.
iii.
ii.
97,
42.
194,
211
i. 126.
325, 437, iii. 274, 278,
296 ; the Mage, i. 324, iii. 317
The Telescope of, i. 13.
Zorokothora, iii. 211.
Zosimus, i. 157, 270, ii. 249, 265,
Zoroaster,
gifts
of,
274 ; lame, i. 343 ; Phrygius,
172 ; sons of, iii. 217.
iii.
i.
i.
Zophasemin,
392.
400.
Zeus, i. 151, 279, 305, 313, 327,
330, 359 ; above, ii. 359 ; below,
ii., 359 ; bull of, iii. 183 ; cosmic
breath, i. 313 ; date of, i. 149 ;
essence-chief,
iii.
Zones, ii. 41,
seven, i. 413,
165.
Zervan Akarana,
371
PRINTED BY NEILL AND
iii.
i.
273
doctrine,
380.
CO., LTD.,
and the Anthropos-
i.
196
EDINBURGH.
visions of,
i.